<?xml-model href="Cruz_test_customization.rng" type="application/xml" schematypens="http://relaxng.org/ns/structure/1.0"?>
<?xml-stylesheet type="text/css" href="tei_custom.css"?>
<TEI xmlns="http://www.tei-c.org/ns/1.0" xmlns:tc="http://www.tiffanyfranchescacruz.com/ns">
   <teiHeader>
      <fileDesc>
         <titleStmt>
            <title>Wuthering Heights</title>
         </titleStmt>
         <publicationStmt>
            <p>
               <bibl>
                  <author> Emily Bronte</author>
                  <date>1847</date>
                  <note type="genre">Gothic Romance</note>
               </bibl>
            </p>
         </publicationStmt>
         <sourceDesc>
            <p>
               <title>Chapter 1</title>
            </p>
         </sourceDesc>
      </fileDesc>
   </teiHeader>
   <text>
      <body>
         <p>1801—I announced my name. I have just returned from a visit to my landlord—the solitary
            neighbour that I shall be troubled with. This is certainly a beautiful country! In all
            England, I do not believe that I could have fixed on a situation so completely removed
            from the stir of society. A perfect <tc:racedesc type="implied"
               >misanthropist’s</tc:racedesc> Heaven—and Mr. Heathcliff and I are such a suitable
            pair to divide the desolation between us. A capital fellow! He little imagined how my
            heart warmed towards him when I beheld his <tc:racedesc type="implied">black eyes
               withdraw</tc:racedesc> so suspiciously under their brows, as I rode up, and when his
            fingers sheltered themselves, with a jealous resolution, still further in his waistcoat,
            as I announced my name. </p>
         <p>“Mr. Heathcliff?” I said.</p>
         <p>A nod was the answer. </p>
         <p>“Mr. Lockwood, your new tenant, sir. I do myself the honour of calling as soon as
            possible after my arrival, to express the hope that I have not inconvenienced you by my
            perseverance in soliciting the occupation of Thrushcross Grange: I heard yesterday you
            had had some thoughts—” </p>
         <p>“Thrushcross Grange is my own, sir,” he interrupted, wincing.</p>
         <p>“I should not allow any one to inconvenience me, if I could hinder it—walk in!”</p>
         <p>The “walk in” was uttered with closed teeth, and expressed the sentiment, “Go to the
            Deuce!” even the gate over which he leant manifested no sympathising movement to the
            words; and I think that circumstance determined me to accept the invitation: I felt
            interested in a man who seemed more exaggeratedly reserved than myself.</p>
         <p>When he saw my horse’s breast fairly pushing the barrier, he did put out his hand to
            unchain it, and then sullenly preceded me up the causeway, calling, as we entered the
            court,—“Joseph, take Mr. Lockwood’s horse; and bring up some wine.” </p>
         <p>“Here we have the whole establishment of domestics, I suppose,” was the reflection
            suggested by this compound order. “No wonder the grass grows up between the flags, and
            cattle are the only hedge-cutters.”</p>
         <p> Joseph was an elderly, nay, an old man, very old, perhaps, though hale and sinewy. “The
            Lord help us!” he soliloquised in an undertone of peevish displeasure, while relieving
            me of my horse: looking, meantime, in my face so sourly that I charitably conjectured he
            must have need of divine aid to digest his dinner, and his pious ejaculation had no
            reference to my unexpected advent.</p>
         <p><name ref="person_place.xml#Liverpool">Wuthering Heights</name> is the name of Mr.
            Heathcliff’s dwelling. “Wuthering” being a significant provincial adjective, descriptive
            of the atmospheric tumult to which its station is exposed in stormy weather. Pure,
            bracing ventilation they must have up there at all times, indeed: one may guess the
            power of the north wind, blowing over the edge, by the excessive slant of a few stunted
            firs at the end of the house; and by a range of gaunt thorns all stretching their limbs
            one way, as if craving alms of the sun. Happily, the architect had foresight to build it
            strong: the narrow windows are deeply set in the wall, and the corners defended with
            large jutting stones.</p>
         <p>Before passing the threshold, I paused to admire a quantity of grotesque carving
            lavished over the front, and especially about the principal door; above which, among a
            wilderness of crumbling griffins and shameless little boys, I detected the date “1500,”
            and the name “Hareton Earnshaw.” I would have made a few comments, and requested a short
            history of the place from the surly owner; but his attitude at the door appeared to
            demand my speedy entrance, or complete departure, and I had no desire to aggravate his
            impatience previous to inspecting the penetralium.</p>
         <p>One step brought us into the family sitting-room, without any introductory lobby or
            passage: they call it here “the house” pre-eminently. It includes kitchen and parlour,
            generally; but I believe at Wuthering Heights the kitchen is forced to retreat
            altogether into another quarter: at least I distinguished a chatter of tongues, and a
            clatter of culinary utensils, deep within; and I observed no signs of roasting, boiling,
            or baking, about the huge fireplace; nor any glitter of copper saucepans and tin
            cullenders on the walls. One end, indeed, reflected splendidly both light and heat from
            ranks of immense pewter dishes, interspersed with silver jugs and tankards, towering row
            after row, on a vast oak dresser, to the very roof. The latter had never been
            under-drawn: its entire anatomy lay bare to an inquiring eye, except where a frame of
            wood laden with oatcakes and clusters of legs of beef, mutton, and ham, concealed it.
            Above the chimney were sundry villainous old guns, and a couple of horse-pistols: and,
            by way of ornament, three gaudily painted canisters disposed along its ledge. The floor
            was of smooth, white stone; the chairs, high-backed, primitive structures, painted
            green: one or two heavy black ones lurking in the shade. In an arch under the dresser
            reposed a huge, liver-coloured bitch pointer, surrounded by a swarm of squealing
            puppies; and other dogs haunted other recesses.</p>
         <p>The apartment and furniture would have been nothing extraordinary as belonging to a
            homely, northern farmer, with a stubborn countenance, and stalwart limbs set out to
            advantage in knee-breeches and gaiters. Such an individual seated in his arm-chair, his
            mug of ale frothing on the round table before him, is to be seen in any circuit of five
            or six miles among these hills, if you go at the right time after dinner. But Mr.
            Heathcliff forms a <tc:racedesc type="implied">singular contrast</tc:racedesc> to his
            abode and style of living. He is a <tc:racedesc type="explicit">dark-skinned
               gipsy</tc:racedesc> dark-skinned in aspect, <tc:racedesc type="implied">in dress and
               manners a gentleman: that is, as much a gentleman as many a country
               squire</tc:racedesc>: rather <tc:racedesc type="implied">slovenly</tc:racedesc>,
            perhaps, yet not looking amiss with his negligence, because he has an erect and handsome
            figure; and rather <tc:racedesc type="implied">morose</tc:racedesc>. Possibly, some
            people might suspect him of a degree of <tc:racedesc type="explicit">under-bred
               pride</tc:racedesc>; I have a sympathetic chord within that tells me it is nothing of
            the sort: I know, by instinct, his reserve springs from an aversion to showy displays of
            feeling—to manifestations of mutual kindliness. He’ll love and hate equally under cover,
            and esteem it a species of impertinence to be loved or hated again. No, I’m running on
            too fast: I bestow my own attributes over-liberally on him. Mr. Heathcliff may have
            entirely dissimilar reasons for keeping his hand out of the way when he meets a would-be
            acquaintance, to those which actuate me. Let me hope my constitution is almost peculiar:
            my dear mother used to say I should never have a comfortable home; and only last summer
            I proved myself perfectly unworthy of one. </p>
         <p>While enjoying a month of fine weather at the sea-coast, I was thrown into the company
            of a most fascinating creature: a real goddess in my eyes, as long as she took no notice
            of me. I “never told my love” vocally; still, if looks have language, the merest idiot
            might have guessed I was over head and ears: she understood me at last, and looked a
            return—the sweetest of all imaginable looks. And what did I do? I confess it with
            shame—shrunk icily into myself, like a snail; at every glance retired colder and
            farther; till finally the poor innocent was led to doubt her own senses, and,
            overwhelmed with confusion at her supposed mistake, persuaded her mamma to decamp.</p>
         <p>By this curious turn of disposition I have gained the reputation of deliberate
            heartlessness; how undeserved, I alone can appreciate. I took a seat at the end of the
            hearthstone opposite that towards which my landlord advanced, and filled up an interval
            of silence by attempting to caress the canine mother, who had left her nursery, and was
            sneaking wolfishly to the back of my legs, her lip curled up, and her white teeth
            watering for a snatch. My caress provoked a long, guttural gnarl. </p>
         <p> “You’d better let the dog alone,” growled Mr. Heathcliff in unison, checking fiercer
            demonstrations with a punch of his foot. “She’s not accustomed to be spoiled—not kept
            for a pet.” Then, striding to a side door, he shouted again, “Joseph!”</p>
         <p>Joseph mumbled indistinctly in the depths of the cellar, but gave no intimation of
            ascending; so his master dived down to him, leaving me vis-à-vis the ruffianly bitch and
            a pair of grim shaggy sheep-dogs, who shared with her a jealous guardianship over all my
            movements. Not anxious to come in contact with their fangs, I sat still; but, imagining
            they would scarcely understand tacit insults, I unfortunately indulged in winking and
            making faces at the trio, and some turn of my physiognomy so irritated madam, that she
            suddenly broke into a fury and leapt on my knees. I flung her back, and hastened to
            interpose the table between us. This proceeding aroused the whole hive: half-a-dozen
            four-footed fiends, of various sizes and ages, issued from hidden dens to the common
            centre. I felt my heels and coat-laps peculiar subjects of assault; and parrying off the
            larger combatants as effectually as I could with the poker, I was constrained to demand,
            aloud, assistance from some of the household in re-establishing peace. Mr. Heathcliff
            and his man climbed the cellar steps with vexatious phlegm: I don’t think they moved one
            second faster than usual, though the hearth was an absolute tempest of worrying and
            yelping. Happily, an inhabitant of the kitchen made more dispatch; a lusty dame, with
            tucked-up gown, bare arms, and fire-flushed cheeks, rushed into the midst of us
            flourishing a frying-pan: and used that weapon, and her tongue, to such purpose, that
            the storm subsided magically, and she only remained, heaving like a sea after a high
            wind, when her master entered on the scene. </p>
         <p>“What the devil is the matter?” he asked, eyeing me in a manner that I could ill endure
            after this inhospitable treatment. </p>
         <p>“What the devil, indeed!” I muttered. </p>
         <p> “The herd of possessed swine could have had no worse spirits in them than those animals
            of yours, sir. You might as well leave a stranger with a brood of tigers!” </p>
         <p> “They won’t meddle with persons who touch nothing,” he remarked, putting the bottle
            before me, and restoring the displaced table. </p>
         <p> “The dogs do right to be vigilant. Take a glass of wine?” </p>
         <p> “No, thank you.” </p>
         <p> “Not bitten, are you?” </p>
         <p> “If I had been, I would have set my signet on the biter.” </p>
         <p> Heathcliff’s countenance relaxed into a grin. “Come, come,” he said, “you are flurried,
            Mr. Lockwood. Here, take a little wine. Guests are so exceedingly rare in this house
            that I and my dogs, I am willing to own, hardly know how to receive them. Your health,
            sir?” </p>
         <p>I bowed and returned the pledge; beginning to perceive that it would be foolish to sit
            sulking for the misbehaviour of a pack of curs; besides, I felt loth to yield the fellow
            further amusement at my expense; since his humour took that turn. He—probably swayed by
            prudential consideration of the folly of offending a good tenant—relaxed a little in the
            laconic style of chipping off his pronouns and auxiliary verbs, and introduced what he
            supposed would be a subject of interest to me,—a discourse on the advantages and
            disadvantages of my present place of retirement. I found him very intelligent on the
            topics we touched; and before I went home, I was encouraged so far as to volunteer
            another visit to-morrow. He evidently wished no repetition of my intrusion. I shall go,
            notwithstanding. It is astonishing how sociable I feel myself compared with him.</p>
         <p>Chapter 2</p>
         <p>Yesterday afternoon set in misty and cold. I had half a mind to spend it by my study
            fire, instead of wading through heath and mud to Wuthering Heights. On coming up from
            dinner, however, (N.B.—I dine between twelve and one o’clock; the housekeeper, a
            matronly lady, taken as a fixture along with the house, could not, or would not,
            comprehend my request that I might be served at five)—on mounting the stairs with this
            lazy intention, and stepping into the room, I saw a servant-girl on her knees surrounded
            by brushes and coal-scuttles, and raising an infernal dust as she extinguished the
            flames with heaps of cinders. </p>
         <p>This spectacle drove me back immediately; I took my hat, and, after a four-miles’ walk,
            arrived at Heathcliff’s garden-gate just in time to escape the first feathery flakes of
            a snow shower. On that bleak hill top the earth was hard with a black frost, and the air
            made me shiver through every limb. Being unable to remove the chain, I jumped over, and,
            running up the flagged causeway bordered with straggling gooseberry-bushes, knocked
            vainly for admittance, till my knuckles tingled and the dogs howled. </p>
         <p>“Wretched inmates!” I ejaculated, mentally, “you deserve perpetual isolation from your
            species for your churlish inhospitality. At least, I would not keep my doors barred in
            the day-time. I don’t care—I will get in!” So resolved, I grasped the latch and shook it
            vehemently. Vinegar-faced Joseph projected his head from a round window of the barn. </p>
         <p>“What are ye for?” he shouted. “T’ maister’s down i’ t’ fowld. Go round by th’ end o’ t’
            laith, if ye went to spake to him.” “Is there nobody inside to open the door?” I
            hallooed, responsively. “There’s nobbut t’ missis; and shoo’ll not oppen ’t an ye mak’
            yer flaysome dins till neeght.” </p>
         <p> “Why? Cannot you tell her whom I am, eh, Joseph?” “Nor-ne me! I’ll hae no hend wi’t,”
            muttered the head, vanishing. The snow began to drive thickly. I seized the handle to
            essay another trial; when a young man without coat, and shouldering a pitchfork,
            appeared in the yard behind. He hailed me to follow him, and, after marching through a
            wash-house, and a paved area containing a coal-shed, pump, and pigeon-cot, we at length
            arrived in the huge, warm, cheerful apartment where I was formerly received. </p>
         <p> It glowed delightfully in the radiance of an immense fire, compounded of coal, peat,
            and wood; and near the table, laid for a plentiful evening meal, I was pleased to
            observe the “missis,” an individual whose existence I had never previously suspected. I
            bowed and waited, thinking she would bid me take a seat. She looked at me, leaning back
            in her chair, and remained motionless and mute. “Rough weather!” I remarked. </p>
         <p> “I’m afraid, Mrs. Heathcliff, the door must bear the consequence of your servants’
            leisure attendance: I had hard work to make them hear me.” She never opened her mouth. I
            stared—she stared also: at any rate, she kept her eyes on me in a cool, regardless
            manner, exceedingly embarrassing and disagreeable. “Sit down,” said the young man,
            gruffly. “He’ll be in soon.” I obeyed; and hemmed, and called the villain Juno, who
            deigned, at this second interview, to move the extreme tip of her tail, in token of
            owning my acquaintance. </p>
         <p> “A beautiful animal!” I commenced again. “Do you intend parting with the little ones,
            madam?” “They are not mine,” said the amiable hostess, more repellingly than Heathcliff
            himself could have replied. “Ah, your favourites are among these?” I continued, turning
            to an obscure cushion full of something like cats. “A strange choice of favourites!” she
            observed scornfully. Unluckily, it was a heap of dead rabbits. </p>
         <p> I hemmed once more, and drew closer to the hearth, repeating my comment on the wildness
            of the evening. “You should not have come out,” she said, rising and reaching from the
            chimney-piece two of the painted canisters. Her position before was sheltered from the
            light; now, I had a distinct view of her whole figure and countenance. She was slender,
            and apparently scarcely past girlhood: an admirable form, and the most exquisite little
            face that I have ever had the pleasure of beholding; small features, very fair; flaxen
            ringlets, or rather golden, hanging loose on her delicate neck; and eyes, had they been
            agreeable in expression, that would have been irresistible: fortunately for my
            susceptible heart, the only sentiment they evinced hovered between scorn and a kind of
            desperation, singularly unnatural to be detected there. The canisters were almost out of
            her reach; I made a motion to aid her; she turned upon me as a miser might turn if any
            one attempted to assist him in counting his gold. </p>
         <p> “I don’t want your help,” she snapped; “I can get them for myself.” “I beg your
            pardon!” I hastened to reply. </p>
         <p> “Were you asked to tea?” she demanded, tying an apron over her neat black frock, and
            standing with a spoonful of the leaf poised over the pot. “I shall be glad to have a
            cup,” I answered. </p>
         <p> “Were you asked?” she repeated. “No,” I said, half smiling. “You are the proper person
            to ask me.” She flung the tea back, spoon and all, and resumed her chair in a pet; her
            forehead corrugated, and her red under-lip pushed out, like a child’s ready to cry.
            Meanwhile, the young man had slung on to his person a decidedly shabby upper garment,
            and, erecting himself before the blaze, looked down on me from the corner of his eyes,
            for all the world as if there were some mortal feud unavenged between us. I began to
            doubt whether he were a servant or not: his dress and speech were both rude, entirely
            devoid of the superiority observable in Mr. and Mrs. Heathcliff; his thick brown curls
            were rough and uncultivated, his whiskers encroached bearishly over his cheeks, and his
            hands were embrowned like those of a common labourer: still his bearing was free, almost
            haughty, and he showed none of a domestic’s assiduity in attending on the lady of the
            house. In the absence of clear proofs of his condition, I deemed it best to abstain from
            noticing his curious conduct; and, five minutes afterwards, the entrance of Heathcliff
            relieved me, in some measure, from my uncomfortable state. </p>
         <p> “You see, sir, I am come, according to promise!” I exclaimed, assuming the cheerful;
            “and I fear I shall be weather-bound for half an hour, if you can afford me shelter
            during that space.” </p>
         <p> “Half an hour?” he said, shaking the white flakes from his clothes; “I wonder you
            should select the thick of a snow-storm to ramble about in. Do you know that you run a
            risk of being lost in the marshes? People familiar with these moors often miss their
            road on such evenings; and I can tell you there is no chance of a change at present.”
            “Perhaps I can get a guide among your lads, and he might stay at the Grange till
            morning—could you spare me one?” “No, I could not.” “Oh, indeed! </p>
         <p> Well, then, I must trust to my own sagacity.” “Umph!” “Are you going to mak’ the tea?”
            demanded he of the shabby coat, shifting his ferocious gaze from me to the young lady.
            “Is he to have any?” she asked, appealing to Heathcliff. “Get it ready, will you?” was
            the answer, uttered so savagely that I started. The tone in which the words were said
            revealed a genuine bad nature. I no longer felt inclined to call Heathcliff a capital
            fellow. When the preparations were finished, he invited me with—“Now, sir, bring forward
            your chair.” And we all, including the rustic youth, drew round the table: an austere
            silence prevailing while we discussed our meal. I thought, if I had caused the cloud, it
            was my duty to make an effort to dispel it. They could not every day sit so grim and
            taciturn; and it was impossible, however ill-tempered they might be, that the universal
            scowl they wore was their every-day countenance. </p>
         <p> “It is strange,” I began, in the interval of swallowing one cup of tea and receiving
            another—“it is strange how custom can mould our tastes and ideas: many could not imagine
            the existence of happiness in a life of such complete exile from the world as you spend,
            Mr. Heathcliff; yet, I’ll venture to say, that, surrounded by your family, and with your
            amiable lady as the presiding genius over your home and heart—” “My amiable lady!” he
            interrupted, with an almost diabolical sneer on his face. “Where is she—my amiable
            lady?” “Mrs. Heathcliff, your wife, I mean.” “Well, yes—oh, you would intimate that her
            spirit has taken the post of ministering angel, and guards the fortunes of Wuthering
            Heights, even when her body is gone. Is that it?” </p>
         <p> Perceiving myself in a blunder, I attempted to correct it. I might have seen there was
            too great a disparity between the ages of the parties to make it likely that they were
            man and wife. One was about forty: a period of mental vigour at which men seldom cherish
            the delusion of being married for love by girls: that dream is reserved for the solace
            of our declining years. The other did not look seventeen. Then it flashed upon me—“The
            clown at my elbow, who is drinking his tea out of a basin and eating his bread with
            unwashed hands, may be her husband: Heathcliff junior, of course. Here is the
            consequence of being buried alive: she has thrown herself away upon that boor from sheer
            ignorance that better individuals existed! A sad pity—I must beware how I cause her to
            regret her choice.” </p>
         <p> The last reflection may seem conceited; it was not. My neighbour struck me as bordering
            on repulsive; I knew, through experience, that I was tolerably attractive. “Mrs.
            Heathcliff is my daughter-in-law,” said Heathcliff, corroborating my surmise. He turned,
            as he spoke, a peculiar look in her direction: a look of hatred; unless he has a most
            perverse set of facial muscles that will not, like those of other people, interpret the
            language of his soul. “Ah, certainly—I see now: you are the favoured possessor of the
            beneficent fairy,” I remarked, turning to my neighbour. This was worse than before: the
            youth grew crimson, and clenched his fist, with every appearance of a meditated assault.
            But he seemed to recollect himself presently, and smothered the storm in a brutal curse,
            muttered on my behalf: which, however, I took care not to notice. </p>
         <p> “Unhappy in your conjectures, sir,” observed my host; “we neither of us have the
            privilege of owning your good fairy; her mate is dead. I said she was my
            daughter-in-law: therefore, she must have married my son.” “And this young man is—” “Not
            my son, assuredly.” Heathcliff smiled again, as if it were rather too bold a jest to
            attribute the paternity of that bear to him. “My name is Hareton Earnshaw,” growled the
            other; “and I’d counsel you to respect it!” “I’ve shown no disrespect,” was my reply,
            laughing internally at the dignity with which he announced himself. He fixed his eye on
            me longer than I cared to return the stare, for fear I might be tempted either to box
            his ears or render my hilarity audible. I began to feel unmistakably out of place in
            that pleasant family circle. The dismal spiritual atmosphere overcame, and more than
            neutralised, the glowing physical comforts round me; and I resolved to be cautious how I
            ventured under those rafters a third time. The business of eating being concluded, and
            no one uttering a word of sociable conversation, I approached a window to examine the
            weather. A sorrowful sight I saw: dark night coming down prematurely, and sky and hills
            mingled in one bitter whirl of wind and suffocating snow. “I don’t think it possible for
            me to get home now without a guide,” I could not help exclaiming. “The roads will be
            buried already; and, if they were bare, I could scarcely distinguish a foot in advance.”
            “Hareton, drive those dozen sheep into the barn porch. They’ll be covered if left in the
            fold all night: and put a plank before them,” said Heathcliff. </p>
         <p> “How must I do?” I continued, with rising irritation. There was no reply to my
            question; and on looking round I saw only Joseph bringing in a pail of porridge for the
            dogs, and Mrs. Heathcliff leaning over the fire, diverting herself with burning a bundle
            of matches which had fallen from the chimney-piece as she restored the tea-canister to
            its place. The former, when he had deposited his burden, took a critical survey of the
            room, and in cracked tones grated out—“Aw wonder how yah can faishion to stand thear i’
            idleness un war, when all on ’ems goan out! Bud yah’re a nowt, and it’s no use
            talking—yah’ll niver mend o’yer ill ways, but goa raight to t’ divil, like yer mother
            afore ye!” I imagined, for a moment, that this piece of eloquence was addressed to me;
            and, sufficiently enraged, stepped towards the aged rascal with an intention of kicking
            him out of the door. Mrs. Heathcliff, however, checked me by her answer. “You scandalous
            old hypocrite!” she replied. “Are you not afraid of being carried away bodily, whenever
            you mention the devil’s name? I warn you to refrain from provoking me, or I’ll ask your
            abduction as a special favour! Stop! look here, Joseph,” she continued, taking a long,
            dark book from a shelf; “I’ll show you how far I’ve progressed in the Black Art: I shall
            soon be competent to make a clear house of it. The red cow didn’t die by chance; and
            your rheumatism can hardly be reckoned among providential visitations!” </p>
         <p> “Oh, wicked, wicked!” gasped the elder; “may the Lord deliver us from evil!” “No,
            reprobate! you are a castaway—be off, or I’ll hurt you seriously! I’ll have you all
            modelled in wax and clay! and the first who passes the limits I fix shall—I’ll not say
            what he shall be done to—but, you’ll see! Go, I’m looking at you!” The little witch put
            a mock malignity into her beautiful eyes, and Joseph, trembling with sincere horror,
            hurried out, praying, and ejaculating “wicked” as he went. I thought her conduct must be
            prompted by a species of dreary fun; and, now that we were alone, I endeavoured to
            interest her in my distress. </p>
         <p> “Mrs. Heathcliff,” I said earnestly, “you must excuse me for troubling you. I presume,
            because, with that face, I’m sure you cannot help being good-hearted. Do point out some
            landmarks by which I may know my way home: I have no more idea how to get there than you
            would have how to get to London!” “Take the road you came,” she answered, ensconcing
            herself in a chair, with a candle, and the long book open before her. “It is brief
            advice, but as sound as I can give.” “Then, if you hear of me being discovered dead in a
            bog or a pit full of snow, your conscience won’t whisper that it is partly your fault?”
            “How so? I cannot escort you. They wouldn’t let me go to the end of the garden wall.”
            “You! I should be sorry to ask you to cross the threshold, for my convenience, on such a
            night,” I cried. “I want you to tell me my way, not to show it: or else to persuade Mr.
            Heathcliff to give me a guide.” “Who? There is himself, Earnshaw, Zillah, Joseph and I.
            Which would you have?” “Are there no boys at the farm?” “No; those are all.” “Then, it
            follows that I am compelled to stay.” “That you may settle with your host. I have
            nothing to do with it.” “I hope it will be a lesson to you to make no more rash journeys
            on these hills,” cried Heathcliff’s stern voice from the kitchen entrance. “As to
            staying here, I don’t keep accommodations for visitors: you must share a bed with
            Hareton or Joseph, if you do.” “I can sleep on a chair in this room,” I replied. </p>
         <p> “No, no! A stranger is a stranger, be he rich or poor: it will not suit me to permit
            any one the range of the place while I am off guard!” said the unmannerly wretch. With
            this insult my patience was at an end. I uttered an expression of disgust, and pushed
            past him into the yard, running against Earnshaw in my haste. It was so dark that I
            could not see the means of exit; and, as I wandered round, I heard another specimen of
            their civil behaviour amongst each other. At first the young man appeared about to
            befriend me. “I’ll go with him as far as the park,” he said. “You’ll go with him to
            hell!” exclaimed his master, or whatever relation he bore. “And who is to look after the
            horses, eh?” “A man’s life is of more consequence than one evening’s neglect of the
            horses: somebody must go,” murmured Mrs. Heathcliff, more kindly than I expected. “Not
            at your command!” retorted Hareton. “If you set store on him, you’d better be quiet.” </p>
         <p> “Then I hope his ghost will haunt you; and I hope Mr. Heathcliff will never get another
            tenant till the Grange is a ruin,” she answered, sharply. “Hearken, hearken, shoo’s
            cursing on ’em!” muttered Joseph, towards whom I had been steering. He sat within
            earshot, milking the cows by the light of a lantern, which I seized unceremoniously,
            and, calling out that I would send it back on the morrow, rushed to the nearest postern.
            “Maister, maister, he’s staling t’ lanthern!” shouted the ancient, pursuing my retreat. </p>
         <p> “Hey, Gnasher! Hey, dog! Hey Wolf, holld him, holld him!” </p>
         <p> On opening the little door, two hairy monsters flew at my throat, bearing me down, and
            extinguishing the light; while a mingled guffaw from Heathcliff and Hareton put the
            copestone on my rage and humiliation. Fortunately, the beasts seemed more bent on
            stretching their paws, and yawning, and flourishing their tails, than devouring me
            alive; but they would suffer no resurrection, and I was forced to lie till their
            malignant masters pleased to deliver me: then, hatless and trembling with wrath, I
            ordered the miscreants to let me out—on their peril to keep me one minute longer—with
            several incoherent threats of retaliation that, in their indefinite depth of virulency,
            smacked of King Lear. The vehemence of my agitation brought on a copious bleeding at the
            nose, and still Heathcliff laughed, and still I scolded. I don’t know what would have
            concluded the scene, had there not been one person at hand rather more rational than
            myself, and more benevolent than my entertainer. This was Zillah, the stout housewife;
            who at length issued forth to inquire into the nature of the uproar. She thought that
            some of them had been laying violent hands on me; and, not daring to attack her master,
            she turned her vocal artillery against the younger scoundrel. </p>
         <p> “Well, Mr. Earnshaw,” she cried, “I wonder what you’ll have agait next? Are we going to
            murder folk on our very door-stones? I see this house will never do for me—look at t’
            poor lad, he’s fair choking! Wisht, wisht; you mun’n’t go on so. Come in, and I’ll cure
            that: there now, hold ye still.” </p>
         <p> With these words she suddenly splashed a pint of icy water down my neck, and pulled me
            into the kitchen. Mr. Heathcliff followed, his accidental merriment expiring quickly in
            his habitual moroseness. I was sick exceedingly, and dizzy, and faint; and thus
            compelled perforce to accept lodgings under his roof. He told Zillah to give me a glass
            of brandy, and then passed on to the inner room; while she condoled with me on my sorry
            predicament, and having obeyed his orders, whereby I was somewhat revived, ushered me to
            bed.</p>
         <p>Chapter 3</p>
         <p>While leading the way upstairs, she recommended that I should hide the candle, and not
            make a noise; for her master had an odd notion about the chamber she would put me in,
            and never let anybody lodge there willingly. I asked the reason. She did not know, she
            answered: she had only lived there a year or two; and they had so many queer goings on,
            she could not begin to be curious. Too stupefied to be curious myself, I fastened my
            door and glanced round for the bed. The whole furniture consisted of a chair, a
            clothes-press, and a large oak case, with squares cut out near the top resembling coach
            windows. Having approached this structure, I looked inside, and perceived it to be a
            singular sort of old-fashioned couch, very conveniently designed to obviate the
            necessity for every member of the family having a room to himself. In fact, it formed a
            little closet, and the ledge of a window, which it enclosed, served as a table. I slid
            back the panelled sides, got in with my light, pulled them together again, and felt
            secure against the vigilance of Heathcliff, and every one else. The ledge, where I
            placed my candle, had a few mildewed books piled up in one corner; and it was covered
            with writing scratched on the paint. This writing, however, was nothing but a name
            repeated in all kinds of characters, large and small—Catherine Earnshaw, here and there
            varied to Catherine Heathcliff, and then again to Catherine Linton. In vapid
            listlessness I leant my head against the window, and continued spelling over Catherine
            Earnshaw—Heathcliff—Linton, till my eyes closed; but they had not rested five minutes
            when a glare of white letters started from the dark, as vivid as spectres—the air
            swarmed with Catherines; and rousing myself to dispel the obtrusive name, I discovered
            my candle-wick reclining on one of the antique volumes, and perfuming the place with an
            odour of roasted calf-skin. I snuffed it off, and, very ill at ease under the influence
            of cold and lingering nausea, sat up and spread open the injured tome on my knee. It was
            a Testament, in lean type, and smelling dreadfully musty: a fly-leaf bore the
            inscription—</p>
         <p> “Catherine Earnshaw, her book,” and a date some quarter of a century back. I shut it,
            and took up another and another, till I had examined all. Catherine’s library was
            select, and its state of dilapidation proved it to have been well used, though not
            altogether for a legitimate purpose: scarcely one chapter had escaped a pen-and-ink
            commentary—at least the appearance of one—covering every morsel of blank that the
            printer had left. Some were detached sentences; other parts took the form of a regular
            diary, scrawled in an unformed, childish hand. At the top of an extra page (quite a
            treasure, probably, when first lighted on) I was greatly amused to behold an excellent
            caricature of my friend Joseph,—rudely, yet powerfully sketched. An immediate interest
            kindled within me for the unknown Catherine, and I began forthwith to decipher her faded
            hieroglyphics. “An awful Sunday,” commenced the paragraph beneath. “I wish my father
            were back again. Hindley is a detestable substitute—his conduct to Heathcliff is
            atrocious—H. and I are going to rebel—we took our initiatory step this evening. “All day
            had been flooding with rain; we could not go to church, so Joseph must needs get up a
            congregation in the garret; and, while Hindley and his wife basked downstairs before a
            comfortable fire—doing anything but reading their Bibles, I’ll answer for it—Heathcliff,
            myself, and the unhappy ploughboy were commanded to take our prayer-books, and mount: we
            were ranged in a row, on a sack of corn, groaning and shivering, and hoping that Joseph
            would shiver too, so that he might give us a short homily for his own sake. A vain idea!
            The service lasted precisely three hours; and yet my brother had the face to exclaim,
            when he saw us descending, ‘What, done already?’ On Sunday evenings we used to be
            permitted to play, if we did not make much noise; now a mere titter is sufficient to
            send us into corners. </p>
         <p> “‘You forget you have a master here,’ says the tyrant. ‘I’ll demolish the first who
            puts me out of temper! I insist on perfect sobriety and silence. Oh, boy! was that you?
            Frances darling, pull his hair as you go by: I heard him snap his fingers.’ Frances
            pulled his hair heartily, and then went and seated herself on her husband’s knee, and
            there they were, like two babies, kissing and talking nonsense by the hour—foolish
            palaver that we should be ashamed of. We made ourselves as snug as our means allowed in
            the arch of the dresser. I had just fastened our pinafores together, and hung them up
            for a curtain, when in comes Joseph, on an errand from the stables. He tears down my
            handiwork, boxes my ears, and croaks: “‘T’ maister nobbut just buried, and Sabbath not
            o’ered, und t’ sound o’ t’ gospel still i’ yer lugs, and ye darr be laiking! Shame on
            ye! sit ye down, ill childer! there’s good books eneugh if ye’ll read ’em: sit ye down,
            and think o’ yer sowls!’ </p>
         <p> “Saying this, he compelled us so to square our positions that we might receive from the
            far-off fire a dull ray to show us the text of the lumber he thrust upon us. I could not
            bear the employment. I took my dingy volume by the scroop, and hurled it into the
            dog-kennel, vowing I hated a good book. Heathcliff kicked his to the same place. Then
            there was a hubbub! “‘Maister Hindley!’ shouted our chaplain. ‘Maister, coom hither!
            Miss Cathy’s riven th’ back off “Th’ Helmet o’ Salvation,” un’ Heathcliff’s pawsed his
            fit into t’ first part o’ “T’ Brooad Way to Destruction!” It’s fair flaysome that ye let
            ’em go on this gait. Ech! th’ owd man wad ha’ laced ’em properly—but he’s goan!’
            “Hindley hurried up from his paradise on the hearth, and seizing one of us by the
            collar, and the other by the arm, hurled both into the back-kitchen; where, Joseph
            asseverated, ‘owd Nick’ would fetch us as sure as we were living: and, so comforted, we
            each sought a separate nook to await his advent. I reached this book, and a pot of ink
            from a shelf, and pushed the house-door ajar to give me light, and I have got the time
            on with writing for twenty minutes; but my companion is impatient, and proposes that we
            should appropriate the dairywoman’s cloak, and have a scamper on the moors, under its
            shelter. A pleasant suggestion—and then, if the surly old man come in, he may believe
            his prophecy verified—we cannot be damper, or colder, in the rain than we are here.” * *
            * * * * </p>
         <p> I suppose Catherine fulfilled her project, for the next sentence took up another
            subject: she waxed lachrymose. “How little did I dream that Hindley would ever make me
            cry so!” she wrote. “My head aches, till I cannot keep it on the pillow; and still I
            can’t give over. Poor Heathcliff! Hindley calls him a <tc:racedesc type="implied"
               >vagabond</tc:racedesc>, and won’t let him sit with us, nor eat with us any more;
            and, he says, he and I must not play together, and threatens to turn him out of the
            house if we break his orders. He has been blaming our father (how dared he?) for
            treating H. too liberally; and swears he will reduce him to his <tc:racedesc
               type="implied">right place</tc:racedesc>—” * * * * * * </p>
         <p> I began to nod drowsily over the dim page: my eye wandered from manuscript to print. I
            saw a red ornamented title—“Seventy Times Seven, and the First of the Seventy-First. A
            Pious Discourse delivered by the Reverend Jabez Branderham, in the Chapel of Gimmerden
            Sough.” And while I was, half-consciously, worrying my brain to guess what Jabez
            Branderham would make of his subject, I sank back in bed, and fell asleep. Alas, for the
            effects of bad tea and bad temper! What else could it be that made me pass such a
            terrible night? I don’t remember another that I can at all compare with it since I was
            capable of suffering. I began to dream, almost before I ceased to be sensible of my
            locality. I thought it was morning; and I had set out on my way home, with Joseph for a
            guide. The snow lay yards deep in our road; and, as we floundered on, my companion
            wearied me with constant reproaches that I had not brought a pilgrim’s staff: telling me
            that I could never get into the house without one, and boastfully flourishing a
            heavy-headed cudgel, which I understood to be so denominated. For a moment I considered
            it absurd that I should need such a weapon to gain admittance into my own residence.
            Then a new idea flashed across me. I was not going there: we were journeying to hear the
            famous Jabez Branderham preach, from the text— </p>
         <p> “Seventy Times Seven;” and either Joseph, the preacher, or I had committed the “First
            of the Seventy-First,” and were to be publicly exposed and excommunicated. We came to
            the chapel. I have passed it really in my walks, twice or thrice; it lies in a hollow,
            between two hills: an elevated hollow, near a swamp, whose peaty moisture is said to
            answer all the purposes of embalming on the few corpses deposited there. The roof has
            been kept whole hitherto; but as the clergyman’s stipend is only twenty pounds per
            annum, and a house with two rooms, threatening speedily to determine into one, no
            clergyman will undertake the duties of pastor: especially as it is currently reported
            that his flock would rather let him starve than increase the living by one penny from
            their own pockets. However, in my dream, Jabez had a full and attentive congregation;
            and he preached—good God! what a sermon; divided into four hundred and ninety parts,
            each fully equal to an ordinary address from the pulpit, and each discussing a separate
            sin! Where he searched for them, I cannot tell. He had his private manner of
            interpreting the phrase, and it seemed necessary the brother should sin different sins
            on every occasion. They were of the most curious character: odd transgressions that I
            never imagined previously. Oh, how weary I grew. How I writhed, and yawned, and nodded,
            and revived! How I pinched and pricked myself, and rubbed my eyes, and stood up, and sat
            down again, and nudged Joseph to inform me if he would ever have done. I was condemned
            to hear all out: finally, he reached the “First of the Seventy-First.” At that crisis, a
            sudden inspiration descended on me; I was moved to rise and denounce Jabez Branderham as
            the sinner of the sin that no Christian need pardon. </p>
         <p> “Sir,” I exclaimed, “sitting here within these four walls, at one stretch, I have
            endured and forgiven the four hundred and ninety heads of your discourse. Seventy times
            seven times have I plucked up my hat and been about to depart—Seventy times seven times
            have you preposterously forced me to resume my seat. The four hundred and ninety-first
            is too much. Fellow-martyrs, have at him! Drag him down, and crush him to atoms, that
            the place which knows him may know him no more!” “Thou art the Man!” cried Jabez, after
            a solemn pause, leaning over his cushion. </p>
         <p> “Seventy times seven times didst thou gapingly contort thy visage—seventy times seven
            did I take counsel with my soul—Lo, this is human weakness: this also may be absolved!
            The First of the Seventy-First is come. Brethren, execute upon him the judgment written.
            Such honour have all His saints!” With that concluding word, the whole assembly,
            exalting their pilgrim’s staves, rushed round me in a body; and I, having no weapon to
            raise in self-defence, commenced grappling with Joseph, my nearest and most ferocious
            assailant, for his. In the confluence of the multitude, several clubs crossed; blows,
            aimed at me, fell on other sconces. Presently the whole chapel resounded with rappings
            and counter rappings: every man’s hand was against his neighbour; and Branderham,
            unwilling to remain idle, poured forth his zeal in a shower of loud taps on the boards
            of the pulpit, which responded so smartly that, at last, to my unspeakable relief, they
            woke me. And what was it that had suggested the tremendous tumult? What had played
            Jabez’s part in the row? Merely the branch of a fir-tree that touched my lattice as the
            blast wailed by, and rattled its dry cones against the panes! I listened doubtingly an
            instant; detected the disturber, then turned and dozed, and dreamt again: if possible,
            still more disagreeably than before. This time, I remembered I was lying in the oak
            closet, and I heard distinctly the gusty wind, and the driving of the snow; I heard,
            also, the fir bough repeat its teasing sound, and ascribed it to the right cause: but it
            annoyed me so much, that I resolved to silence it, if possible; and, I thought, I rose
            and endeavoured to unhasp the casement. The hook was soldered into the staple: a
            circumstance observed by me when awake, but forgotten. “I must stop it, nevertheless!” </p>
         <p> I muttered, knocking my knuckles through the glass, and stretching an arm out to seize
            the importunate branch; instead of which, my fingers closed on the fingers of a little,
            ice-cold hand! The intense horror of nightmare came over me: I tried to draw back my
            arm, but the hand clung to it, and a most melancholy voice sobbed, “Let me in—let me
            in!” “Who are you?” I asked, struggling, meanwhile, to disengage myself. “Catherine
            Linton,” it replied, shiveringly (why did I think of Linton? I had read Earnshaw twenty
            times for Linton)—“I’m come home: I’d lost my way on the moor!” As it spoke, I
            discerned, obscurely, a child’s face looking through the window. Terror made me cruel;
            and, finding it useless to attempt shaking the creature off, I pulled its wrist on to
            the broken pane, and rubbed it to and fro till the blood ran down and soaked the
            bedclothes: still it wailed, “Let me in!” and maintained its tenacious gripe, almost
            maddening me with fear. “How can I!” I said at length. “Let me go, if you want me to let
            you in!” The fingers relaxed, I snatched mine through the hole, hurriedly piled the
            books up in a pyramid against it, and stopped my ears to exclude the lamentable prayer.
            I seemed to keep them closed above a quarter of an hour; yet, the instant I listened
            again, there was the doleful cry moaning on! </p>

         <p> “Begone!” I shouted. “I’ll never let you in, not if you beg for twenty years.” “It is
            twenty years,” mourned the voice: “twenty years. I’ve been a waif for twenty years!”
            Thereat began a feeble scratching outside, and the pile of books moved as if thrust
            forward. I tried to jump up; but could not stir a limb; and so yelled aloud, in a frenzy
            of fright. To my confusion, I discovered the yell was not ideal: hasty footsteps
            approached my chamber door; somebody pushed it open, with a vigorous hand, and a light
            glimmered through the squares at the top of the bed. I sat shuddering, yet, and wiping
            the perspiration from my forehead: the intruder appeared to hesitate, and muttered to
            himself. At last, he said, in a half-whisper, plainly not expecting an answer, “Is any
            one here?” I considered it best to confess my presence; for I knew Heathcliff’s accents,
            and feared he might search further, if I kept quiet. With this intention, I turned and
            opened the panels. I shall not soon forget the effect my action produced. Heathcliff
            stood near the entrance, in his shirt and trousers; with a candle dripping over his
            fingers, and his face as white as the wall behind him. The first creak of the oak
            startled him like an electric shock: the light leaped from his hold to a distance of
            some feet, and his agitation was so extreme, that he could hardly pick it up. “It is
            only your guest, sir,” I called out, desirous to spare him the humiliation of exposing
            his cowardice further. </p>
         <p> “I had the misfortune to scream in my sleep, owing to a frightful nightmare. I’m sorry
            I disturbed you.” “Oh, God confound you, Mr. Lockwood! I wish you were at the—”
            commenced my host, setting the candle on a chair, because he found it impossible to hold
            it steady. “And who showed you up into this room?” he continued, crushing his nails into
            his palms, and grinding his teeth to subdue the maxillary convulsions. “Who was it? I’ve
            a good mind to turn them out of the house this moment!” “It was your servant Zillah,” I
            replied, flinging myself on to the floor, and rapidly resuming my garments. “I should
            not care if you did, Mr. Heathcliff; she richly deserves it. I suppose that she wanted
            to get another proof that the place was haunted, at my expense. Well, it is—swarming
            with ghosts and goblins! You have reason in shutting it up, I assure you. No one will
            thank you for a doze in such a den!” “What do you mean?” asked Heathcliff, “and what are
            you doing? Lie down and finish out the night, since you are here; but, for Heaven’s
            sake! don’t repeat that horrid noise: nothing could excuse it, unless you were having
            your throat cut!” “If the little fiend had got in at the window, she probably would have
            strangled me!” </p>
         <p> I returned. “I’m not going to endure the persecutions of your hospitable ancestors
            again. Was not the Reverend Jabez Branderham akin to you on the mother’s side? And that
            minx, Catherine Linton, or Earnshaw, or however she was called—she must have been a
            changeling—wicked little soul! She told me she had been walking the earth these twenty
            years: a just punishment for her mortal transgressions, I’ve no doubt!” Scarcely were
            these words uttered when I recollected the association of Heathcliff’s with Catherine’s
            name in the book, which had completely slipped from my memory, till thus awakened. I
            blushed at my inconsideration: but, without showing further consciousness of the
            offence, I hastened to add—“The truth is, sir, I passed the first part of the night in—”
            Here I stopped afresh—I was about to say “perusing those old volumes,” then it would
            have revealed my knowledge of their written, as well as their printed, contents; so,
            correcting myself, I went on—“in spelling over the name scratched on that window-ledge.
            A monotonous occupation, calculated to set me asleep, like counting, or—” “What can you
            mean by talking in this way to me!” thundered Heathcliff with savage vehemence. “How—how
            dare you, under my roof?—God! he’s mad to speak so!” And he struck his forehead with
            rage. I did not know whether to resent this language or pursue my explanation; but he
            seemed so powerfully affected that I took pity and proceeded with my dreams; affirming I
            had never heard the appellation of “Catherine Linton” before, but reading it often over
            produced an impression which personified itself when I had no longer my imagination
            under control. Heathcliff gradually fell back into the shelter of the bed, as I spoke;
            finally sitting down almost concealed behind it. I guessed, however, by his irregular
            and intercepted breathing, that he struggled to vanquish an excess of violent emotion.
            Not liking to show him that I had heard the conflict, I continued my toilette rather
            noisily, looked at my watch, and soliloquised on the length of the night: </p>
         <p> “Not three o’clock yet! I could have taken oath it had been six. Time stagnates here:
            we must surely have retired to rest at eight!” “Always at nine in winter, and rise at
            four,” said my host, suppressing a groan: and, as I fancied, by the motion of his arm’s
            shadow, dashing a tear from his eyes. “Mr. Lockwood,” he added, “you may go into my
            room: you’ll only be in the way, coming downstairs so early: and your childish outcry
            has sent sleep to the devil for me.” “And for me, too,” I replied. “I’ll walk in the
            yard till daylight, and then I’ll be off; and you need not dread a repetition of my
            intrusion. I’m now quite cured of seeking pleasure in society, be it country or town. A
            sensible man ought to find sufficient company in himself.” “Delightful company!”
            muttered Heathcliff. “Take the candle, and go where you please. I shall join you
            directly. Keep out of the yard, though, the dogs are unchained; and the house—Juno
            mounts sentinel there, and—nay, you can only ramble about the steps and passages. But,
            away with you! I’ll come in two minutes!” I obeyed, so far as to quit the chamber; when,
            ignorant where the narrow lobbies led, I stood still, and was witness, involuntarily, to
            a piece of superstition on the part of my landlord which belied, oddly, his apparent
            sense. He got on to the bed, and wrenched open the lattice, bursting, as he pulled at
            it, into an uncontrollable passion of tears. “Come in! come in!” he sobbed. </p>
         <p> “Cathy, do come. Oh, do—once more! Oh! my heart’s darling! hear me this time,
            Catherine, at last!” The spectre showed a spectre’s ordinary caprice: it gave no sign of
            being; but the snow and wind whirled wildly through, even reaching my station, and
            blowing out the light. There was such anguish in the gush of grief that accompanied this
            raving, that my compassion made me overlook its folly, and I drew off, half angry to
            have listened at all, and vexed at having related my ridiculous nightmare, since it
            produced that agony; though why was beyond my comprehension. I descended cautiously to
            the lower regions, and landed in the back-kitchen, where a gleam of fire, raked
            compactly together, enabled me to rekindle my candle. Nothing was stirring except a
            brindled, grey cat, which crept from the ashes, and saluted me with a querulous mew. Two
            benches, shaped in sections of a circle, nearly enclosed the hearth; on one of these I
            stretched myself, and Grimalkin mounted the other. We were both of us nodding ere any
            one invaded our retreat, and then it was Joseph, shuffling down a wooden ladder that
            vanished in the roof, through a trap: the ascent to his garret, I suppose. He cast a
            sinister look at the little flame which I had enticed to play between the ribs, swept
            the cat from its elevation, and bestowing himself in the vacancy, commenced the
            operation of stuffing a three-inch pipe with tobacco. My presence in his sanctum was
            evidently esteemed a piece of impudence too shameful for remark: he silently applied the
            tube to his lips, folded his arms, and puffed away. I let him enjoy the luxury
            unannoyed; and after sucking out his last wreath, and heaving a profound sigh, he got
            up, and departed as solemnly as he came. A more elastic footstep entered next; and now I
            opened my mouth for a “good-morning,” but closed it again, the salutation unachieved;
            for Hareton Earnshaw was performing his orison sotto voce, in a series of curses
            directed against every object he touched, while he rummaged a corner for a spade or
            shovel to dig through the drifts. He glanced over the back of the bench, dilating his
            nostrils, and thought as little of exchanging civilities with me as with my companion
            the cat. I guessed, by his preparations, that egress was allowed, and, leaving my hard
            couch, made a movement to follow him. He noticed this, and thrust at an inner door with
            the end of his spade, intimating by an inarticulate sound that there was the place where
            I must go, if I changed my locality. </p>
         <p> It opened into the house, where the females were already astir; Zillah urging flakes of
            flame up the chimney with a colossal bellows; and Mrs. Heathcliff, kneeling on the
            hearth, reading a book by the aid of the blaze. She held her hand interposed between the
            furnace-heat and her eyes, and seemed absorbed in her occupation; desisting from it only
            to chide the servant for covering her with sparks, or to push away a dog, now and then,
            that snoozled its nose overforwardly into her face. I was surprised to see Heathcliff
            there also. He stood by the fire, his back towards me, just finishing a stormy scene
            with poor Zillah; who ever and anon interrupted her labour to pluck up the corner of her
            apron, and heave an indignant groan. “And you, you worthless—” he broke out as I
            entered, turning to his daughter-in-law, and employing an epithet as harmless as duck,
            or sheep, but generally represented by a dash—. “There you are, at your idle tricks
            again! The rest of them do earn their bread—you live on my charity! Put your trash away,
            and find something to do. You shall pay me for the plague of having you eternally in my
            sight—do you hear, damnable jade?” </p>
         <p> “I’ll put my trash away, because you can make me if I refuse,” answered the young lady,
            closing her book, and throwing it on a chair. “But I’ll not do anything, though you
            should swear your tongue out, except what I please!” Heathcliff lifted his hand, and the
            speaker sprang to a safer distance, obviously acquainted with its weight. Having no
            desire to be entertained by a cat-and-dog combat, I stepped forward briskly, as if eager
            to partake the warmth of the hearth, and innocent of any knowledge of the interrupted
            dispute. Each had enough decorum to suspend further hostilities: Heathcliff placed his
            fists, out of temptation, in his pockets; Mrs. Heathcliff curled her lip, and walked to
            a seat far off, where she kept her word by playing the part of a statue during the
            remainder of my stay. That was not long. I declined joining their breakfast, and, at the
            first gleam of dawn, took an opportunity of escaping into the free air, now clear, and
            still, and cold as impalpable ice. My landlord halloed for me to stop ere I reached the
            bottom of the garden, and offered to accompany me across the moor. It was well he did,
            for the whole hill-back was one billowy, white ocean; the swells and falls not
            indicating corresponding rises and depressions in the ground: many pits, at least, were
            filled to a level; and entire ranges of mounds, the refuse of the quarries, blotted from
            the chart which my yesterday’s walk left pictured in my mind. I had remarked on one side
            of the road, at intervals of six or seven yards, a line of upright stones, continued
            through the whole length of the barren: these were erected and daubed with lime on
            purpose to serve as guides in the dark, and also when a fall, like the present,
            confounded the deep swamps on either hand with the firmer path: but, excepting a dirty
            dot pointing up here and there, all traces of their existence had vanished: and my
            companion found it necessary to warn me frequently to steer to the right or left, when I
            imagined I was following, correctly, the windings of the road. We exchanged little
            conversation, and he halted at the entrance of Thrushcross Park, saying, I could make no
            error there. </p>
         <p> Our adieux were limited to a hasty bow, and then I pushed forward, trusting to my own
            resources; for the porter’s lodge is untenanted as yet. The distance from the gate to
            the Grange is two miles; I believe I managed to make it four, what with losing myself
            among the trees, and sinking up to the neck in snow: a predicament which only those who
            have experienced it can appreciate. At any rate, whatever were my wanderings, the clock
            chimed twelve as I entered the house; and that gave exactly an hour for every mile of
            the usual way from Wuthering Heights. My human fixture and her satellites rushed to
            welcome me; exclaiming, tumultuously, they had completely given me up: everybody
            conjectured that I perished last night; and they were wondering how they must set about
            the search for my remains. I bid them be quiet, now that they saw me returned, and,
            benumbed to my very heart, I dragged upstairs; whence, after putting on dry clothes, and
            pacing to and fro thirty or forty minutes, to restore the animal heat, I adjourned to my
            study, feeble as a kitten: almost too much so to enjoy the cheerful fire and smoking
            coffee which the servant had prepared for my refreshment. </p>
         <p>Chapter 4</p>
         <p>What vain weather-cocks we are! I, who had determined to hold myself independent of all
            social intercourse, and thanked my stars that, at length, I had lighted on a spot where
            it was next to impracticable—I, weak wretch, after maintaining till dusk a struggle with
            low spirits and solitude, was finally compelled to strike my colours; and under pretence
            of gaining information concerning the necessities of my establishment, I desired Mrs.
            Dean, when she brought in supper, to sit down while I ate it; hoping sincerely she would
            prove a regular gossip, and either rouse me to animation or lull me to sleep by her
            talk. “You have lived here a considerable time,” I commenced; “did you not say sixteen
            years?” “Eighteen, sir: I came when the mistress was married, to wait on her; after she
            died, the master retained me for his housekeeper.” </p>
         <p> “Indeed.” There ensued a pause. She was not a gossip, I feared; unless about her own
            affairs, and those could hardly interest me. However, having studied for an interval,
            with a fist on either knee, and a cloud of meditation over her ruddy countenance, she
            ejaculated—“Ah, times are greatly changed since then!” “Yes,” I remarked, “you’ve seen a
            good many alterations, I suppose?” “I have: and troubles too,” she said. “Oh, I’ll turn
            the talk on my landlord’s family!” I thought to myself. “A good subject to start! And
            that pretty girl-widow, I should like to know her history: whether she be a native of
            the country, or, as is more probable, an exotic that the surly indigenae will not
            recognise for kin.” </p>
         <p> With this intention I asked Mrs. Dean why Heathcliff let Thrushcross Grange, and
            preferred living in a situation and residence so much inferior. “Is he not rich enough
            to keep the estate in good order?” I inquired. “Rich, sir!” she returned. “He has nobody
            knows what money, and every year it increases. Yes, yes, he’s rich enough to live in a
            finer house than this: but he’s very near—close-handed; and, if he had meant to flit to
            Thrushcross Grange, as soon as he heard of a good tenant he could not have borne to miss
            the chance of getting a few hundreds more. It is strange people should be so greedy,
            when they are alone in the world!” “He had a son, it seems?” “Yes, he had one—he is
            dead.” “And that young lady, Mrs. Heathcliff, is his widow?” “Yes.” </p>
         <p> “Where did she come from originally?” </p>
         <p> “Why, sir, she is my late master’s daughter: Catherine Linton was her maiden name. I
            nursed her, poor thing! I did wish Mr. Heathcliff would remove here, and then we might
            have been together again.” “What! Catherine Linton?” I exclaimed, astonished. But a
            minute’s reflection convinced me it was not my ghostly Catherine. “Then,” I continued,
            “my predecessor’s name was Linton?” “It was.” “And who is that Earnshaw: Hareton
            Earnshaw, who lives with Mr. Heathcliff? Are they relations?” </p>
         <p> “No; he is the late Mrs. Linton’s nephew.” “The young lady’s cousin, then?” “Yes; and
            her husband was her cousin also: one on the mother’s, the other on the father’s side:
            Heathcliff married Mr. Linton’s sister.” “I see the house at Wuthering Heights has
            ‘Earnshaw’ carved over the front door. Are they an old family?” “Very old, sir; and
            Hareton is the last of them, as our Miss Cathy is of us—I mean, of the Lintons. Have you
            been to Wuthering Heights? I beg pardon for asking; but I should like to hear how she
            is!” </p>
         <p> “Mrs. Heathcliff? she looked very well, and very handsome; yet, I think, not very
            happy.” “Oh dear, I don’t wonder! And how did you like the master?” “A rough fellow,
            rather, Mrs. Dean. Is not that his character?” “Rough as a saw-edge, and hard as
            whinstone! The less you meddle with him the better.” “He must have had some ups and
            downs in life to make him such a churl. Do you know anything of his history?” “It’s a
            cuckoo’s, sir—I know all about it: except where he was born, and who were his parents,
            and how he got his money at first. And Hareton has been cast out like an unfledged
            dunnock! The unfortunate lad is the only one in all this parish that does not guess how
            he has been cheated.” “Well, Mrs. Dean, it will be a charitable deed to tell me
            something of my neighbours: I feel I shall not rest if I go to bed; so be good enough to
            sit and chat an hour.” “Oh, certainly, sir! I’ll just fetch a little sewing, and then
            I’ll sit as long as you please. But you’ve caught cold: I saw you shivering, and you
            must have some gruel to drive it out.” The worthy woman bustled off, and I crouched
            nearer the fire; my head felt hot, and the rest of me chill: moreover, I was excited,
            almost to a pitch of foolishness, through my nerves and brain. This caused me to feel,
            not uncomfortable, but rather fearful (as I am still) of serious effects from the
            incidents of to-day and yesterday. She returned presently, bringing a smoking basin and
            a basket of work; and, having placed the former on the hob, drew in her seat, evidently
            pleased to find me so companionable. * * * * * </p>
         <p> Before I came to live here, she commenced—waiting no farther invitation to her story—I
            was almost always at Wuthering Heights; because my mother had nursed Mr. Hindley
            Earnshaw, that was Hareton’s father, and I got used to playing with the children: I ran
            errands too, and helped to make hay, and hung about the farm ready for anything that
            anybody would set me to. One fine summer morning—it was the beginning of harvest, I
            remember—Mr. Earnshaw, the old master, came downstairs, dressed for a journey; and,
            after he had told Joseph what was to be done during the day, he turned to Hindley, and
            Cathy, and me—for I sat eating my porridge with them—and he said, speaking to his son,
            “Now, my bonny man, I’m going to Liverpool to-day, what shall I bring you? You may
            choose what you like: only let it be little, for I shall walk there and back: sixty
            miles each way, that is a long spell!” </p>
         <p> Hindley named a fiddle, and then he asked Miss Cathy; she was hardly six years old, but
            she could ride any horse in the stable, and she chose a whip. He did not forget me; for
            he had a kind heart, though he was rather severe sometimes. He promised to bring me a
            pocketful of apples and pears, and then he kissed his children, said good-bye, and set
            off. It seemed a long while to us all—the three days of his absence—and often did little
            Cathy ask when he would be home. Mrs. Earnshaw expected him by supper-time on the third
            evening, and she put the meal off hour after hour; there were no signs of his coming,
            however, and at last the children got tired of running down to the gate to look. Then it
            grew dark; she would have had them to bed, but they begged sadly to be allowed to stay
            up; and, just about eleven o’clock, the door-latch was raised quietly, and in stepped
            the master. He threw himself into a chair, laughing and groaning, and bid them all stand
            off, for he was nearly killed—he would not have such another walk for the three
            kingdoms. </p>
         <p> “And at the end of it to be flighted to death!” he said, opening his great-coat, which
            he held bundled up in his arms. “See here, wife! I was never so beaten with anything in
            my life: but you must e’en take it as a gift of God; though it’s as <tc:racedesc
               type="explicit">dark almost as if it came from the devil</tc:racedesc>.” We crowded
            round, and over Miss Cathy’s head I had a peep at a <tc:racedesc type="explicit">dirty,
               ragged, black-haired</tc:racedesc>child; big enough both to walk and talk: indeed,
            its face looked older than Catherine’s; yet when it was set on its feet, it only stared
            round, and repeated over and over again some gibberish that nobody could understand. I
            was frightened, and Mrs. Earnshaw was ready to fling it out of doors: she did fly up,
            asking how he could fashion to bring that <tc:racedesc type="explicit"
               >gipsy</tc:racedesc> brat into the house, when they had their own bairns to feed and
            fend for? What he meant to do with it, and whether he were mad? The master tried to
            explain the matter; but he was really half dead with fatigue, and all that I could make
            out, amongst her scolding, was a tale of his seeing it starving, and houseless, and as
            good as dumb, in the streets of <tc:racecontext type="historical"
               >Liverpool</tc:racecontext>, where he picked it up and inquired for its owner. </p>
         <p> Not a soul knew to whom it belonged, he said; and his money and time being both
            limited, he thought it better to take it home with him at once, than run into vain
            expenses there: because he was determined he would not leave it as he found it. Well,
            the conclusion was, that my mistress grumbled herself calm; and Mr. Earnshaw told me to
            wash it, and give it clean things, and let it sleep with the children. Hindley and Cathy
            contented themselves with looking and listening till peace was restored: then, both
            began searching their father’s pockets for the presents he had promised them. The former
            was a boy of fourteen, but when he drew out what had been a fiddle, crushed to morsels
            in the great-coat, he blubbered aloud; and Cathy, when she learned the master had lost
            her whip in attending on the stranger, showed her humour by grinning and spitting at the
               <tc:racedesc type="explicit">stupid little thing</tc:racedesc>; earning for her pains
            a sound blow from her father, to teach her cleaner manners. They entirely refused to
            have it in bed with them, or even in their room; and I had no more sense, so I put it on
            the landing of the stairs, hoping it might be gone on the morrow. By chance, or else
            attracted by hearing his voice, it crept to Mr. Earnshaw’s door, and there he found it
            on quitting his chamber. </p>
         <p> Inquiries were made as to how it got there; I was obliged to confess, and in recompense
            for my cowardice and inhumanity was sent out of the house. This was Heathcliff’s first
            introduction to the family. On coming back a few days afterwards (for I did not consider
            my banishment perpetual), I found they had christened him “Heathcliff”: it was the name
            of a son who died in childhood, and it has served him ever since, both for Christian and
            surname. Miss Cathy and he were now very thick; but Hindley hated him: and to say the
            truth I did the same; and we plagued and went on with him shamefully: for I wasn’t
            reasonable enough to feel my injustice, and the mistress never put in a word on his
            behalf when she saw him wronged. He seemed a sullen, patient child; hardened, perhaps,
            to ill-treatment: he would stand Hindley’s blows without winking or shedding a tear, and
            my pinches moved him only to draw in a breath and open his eyes, as if he had hurt
            himself by accident, and nobody was to blame. This endurance made old Earnshaw furious,
            when he discovered his son persecuting the poor fatherless child, as he called him. He
            took to Heathcliff strangely, believing all he said (for that matter, he said precious
            little, and generally the truth), and petting him up far above Cathy, who was too
            mischievous and wayward for a favourite. </p>
         <p> So, from the very beginning, he <tc:racedesc type="implied">bred bad
               feeling</tc:racedesc> in the house; and at Mrs. Earnshaw’s death, which happened in
            less than two years after, the young master had learned to regard his father as an
            oppressor rather than a friend, and Heathcliff as a usurper of his parent’s affections
            and his privileges; and he grew bitter with brooding over these injuries. I sympathised
            a while; but when the children fell ill of the measles, and I had to tend them, and take
            on me the cares of a woman at once, I changed my idea. Heathcliff was dangerously sick;
            and while he lay at the worst he would have me constantly by his pillow: I suppose he
            felt I did a good deal for him, and he hadn’t wit to guess that I was compelled to do
            it. However, I will say this, he was the quietest child that ever nurse watched over.
            The difference between him and the others forced me to be less partial. Cathy and her
            brother harassed me terribly: he was as uncomplaining as a lamb; though hardness, not
            gentleness, made him give little trouble. He got through, and the doctor affirmed it was
            in a great measure owing to me, and praised me for my care. I was vain of his
            commendations, and softened towards the being by whose means I earned them, and thus
            Hindley lost his last ally: still I couldn’t dote on Heathcliff, and I wondered often
            what my master saw to admire so much in the sullen boy; who never, to my recollection,
            repaid his indulgence by any sign of gratitude. </p>
         <p> He was not insolent to his benefactor, he was simply insensible; though knowing
            perfectly the hold he had on his heart, and conscious he had only to speak and all the
            house would be obliged to bend to his wishes. As an instance, I remember Mr. Earnshaw
            once bought a couple of colts at the parish fair, and gave the lads each one. Heathcliff
            took the handsomest, but it soon fell lame, and when he discovered it, he said to
            Hindley— “You must exchange horses with me: I don’t like mine; and if you won’t I shall
            tell your father of the three thrashings you’ve given me this week, and show him my arm,
            which is black to the shoulder.” Hindley put out his tongue, and cuffed him over the
            ears. “You’d better do it at once,” he persisted, escaping to the porch (they were in
            the stable): “you will have to: and if I speak of these blows, you’ll get them again
            with interest.” “Off, dog!” cried Hindley, threatening him with an iron weight used for
            weighing potatoes and hay. </p>
         <p> “Throw it,” he replied, standing still, “and then I’ll tell how you boasted that you
            would turn me out of doors as soon as he died, and see whether he will not turn you out
            directly.” Hindley threw it, hitting him on the breast, and down he fell, but staggered
            up immediately, breathless and white; and, had not I prevented it, he would have gone
            just so to the master, and got full revenge by letting his condition plead for him,
            intimating who had caused it. “Take my colt, <tc:racedesc type="explicit"
               >Gipsy</tc:racedesc>, then!” said young Earnshaw. </p>
         <p> “And I pray that he may break your neck: take him, and be damned, you beggarly
            interloper! and wheedle my father out of all he has: only afterwards show him what you
            are, imp of Satan.—And take that, I hope he’ll kick out your brains!” Heathcliff had
            gone to loose the beast, and shift it to his own stall; he was passing behind it, when
            Hindley finished his speech by knocking him under its feet, and without stopping to
            examine whether his hopes were fulfilled, ran away as fast as he could. I was surprised
            to witness how coolly the child gathered himself up, and went on with his intention;
            exchanging saddles and all, and then sitting down on a bundle of hay to overcome the
            qualm which the violent blow occasioned, before he entered the house. I persuaded him
            easily to let me lay the blame of his bruises on the horse: he minded little what tale
            was told since he had what he wanted. He complained so seldom, indeed, of such stirs as
            these, that I really thought him not vindictive: I was deceived completely, as you will
            hear.</p>
         <p>Chapter 5</p>
         <p>In the course of time Mr. Earnshaw began to fail. He had been active and healthy, yet
            his strength left him suddenly; and when he was confined to the chimney-corner he grew
            grievously irritable. A nothing vexed him; and suspected slights of his authority nearly
            threw him into fits. This was especially to be remarked if any one attempted to impose
            upon, or domineer over, his favourite: he was painfully jealous lest a word should be
            spoken amiss to him; seeming to have got into his head the notion that, because he liked
            Heathcliff, all hated, and longed to do him an ill-turn. It was a disadvantage to the
            lad; for the kinder among us did not wish to fret the master, so we humoured his
            partiality; and that humouring was rich nourishment to the child’s pride and
               <tc:racedesc type="implied">black tempers</tc:racedesc> . </p>
         <p> Still it became in a manner necessary; twice, or thrice, Hindley’s manifestation of
            scorn, while his father was near, roused the old man to a fury: he seized his stick to
            strike him, and shook with rage that he could not do it. At last, our curate (we had a
            curate then who made the living answer by teaching the little Lintons and Earnshaws, and
            farming his bit of land himself) advised that the young man should be sent to college;
            and Mr. Earnshaw agreed, though with a heavy spirit, for he said—“Hindley was nought,
            and would never thrive as where he wandered.” I hoped heartily we should have peace now.
            It hurt me to think the master should be made uncomfortable by his own good deed. I
            fancied the discontent of age and disease arose from his family disagreements; as he
            would have it that it did: really, you know, sir, it was in his sinking frame. We might
            have got on tolerably, notwithstanding, but for two people—Miss Cathy, and Joseph, the
            servant: you saw him, I daresay, up yonder. </p>
         <p> He was, and is yet most likely, the wearisomest self-righteous Pharisee that ever
            ransacked a Bible to rake the promises to himself and fling the curses to his
            neighbours. By his knack of sermonising and pious discoursing, he contrived to make a
            great impression on Mr. Earnshaw; and the more feeble the master became, the more
            influence he gained. He was relentless in worrying him about his soul’s concerns, and
            about ruling his children rigidly. He encouraged him to regard Hindley as a reprobate;
            and, night after night, he regularly grumbled out a long string of tales against
            Heathcliff and Catherine: always minding to flatter Earnshaw’s weakness by heaping the
            heaviest blame on the latter. Certainly she had ways with her such as I never saw a
            child take up before; and she put all of us past our patience fifty times and oftener in
            a day: from the hour she came downstairs till the hour she went to bed, we had not a
            minute’s security that she wouldn’t be in mischief. Her spirits were always at
            high-water mark, her tongue always going—singing, laughing, and plaguing everybody who
            would not do the same. A wild, wicked slip she was—but she had the bonniest eye, the
            sweetest smile, and lightest foot in the parish: and, after all, I believe she meant no
            harm; for when once she made you cry in good earnest, it seldom happened that she would
            not keep you company, and oblige you to be quiet that you might comfort her. She was
            much too fond of Heathcliff. The greatest punishment we could invent for her was to keep
            her separate from him: yet she got chided more than any of us on his account. In play,
            she liked exceedingly to act the little mistress; using her hands freely, and commanding
            her companions: she did so to me, but I would not bear slapping and ordering; and so I
            let her know. </p>
         <p> Now, Mr. Earnshaw did not understand jokes from his children: he had always been strict
            and grave with them; and Catherine, on her part, had no idea why her father should be
            crosser and less patient in his ailing condition than he was in his prime. His peevish
            reproofs wakened in her a naughty delight to provoke him: she was never so happy as when
            we were all scolding her at once, and she defying us with her bold, saucy look, and her
            ready words; turning Joseph’s religious curses into ridicule, baiting me, and doing just
            what her father hated most—showing how her pretended insolence, which he thought real,
            had more power over Heathcliff than his kindness: how the boy would do her bidding in
            anything, and his only when it suited his own inclination. After behaving as badly as
            possible all day, she sometimes came fondling to make it up at night. </p>
         <p> “Nay, Cathy,” the old man would say, “I cannot love thee, thou’rt worse than thy
            brother. Go, say thy prayers, child, and ask God’s pardon. I doubt thy mother and I must
            rue that we ever reared thee!” That made her cry, at first; and then being repulsed
            continually hardened her, and she laughed if I told her to say she was sorry for her
            faults, and beg to be forgiven. But the hour came, at last, that ended Mr. Earnshaw’s
            troubles on earth. He died quietly in his chair one October evening, seated by the
            fire-side. A high wind blustered round the house, and roared in the chimney: it sounded
            wild and stormy, yet it was not cold, and we were all together—I, a little removed from
            the hearth, busy at my knitting, and Joseph reading his Bible near the table (for the
            servants generally sat in the house then, after their work was done). Miss Cathy had
            been sick, and that made her still; she leant against her father’s knee, and Heathcliff
            was lying on the floor with his head in her lap. I remember the master, before he fell
            into a doze, stroking her bonny hair—it pleased him rarely to see her gentle—and saying,
            “Why canst thou not always be a good lass, Cathy?” </p>
         <p> And she turned her face up to his, and laughed, and answered, “Why cannot you always be
            a good man, father?” But as soon as she saw him vexed again, she kissed his hand, and
            said she would sing him to sleep. She began singing very low, till his fingers dropped
            from hers, and his head sank on his breast. Then I told her to hush, and not stir, for
            fear she should wake him. We all kept as mute as mice a full half-hour, and should have
            done so longer, only Joseph, having finished his chapter, got up and said that he must
            rouse the master for prayers and bed. He stepped forward, and called him by name, and
            touched his shoulder; but he would not move: so he took the candle and looked at him. I
            thought there was something wrong as he set down the light; and seizing the children
            each by an arm, whispered them to “frame upstairs, and make little din—they might pray
            alone that evening—he had summut to do.” </p>
         <p> “I shall bid father good-night first,” said Catherine, putting her arms round his neck,
            before we could hinder her. The poor thing discovered her loss directly—she screamed
            out—“Oh, he’s dead, Heathcliff! he’s dead!” And they both set up a heart-breaking cry. I
            joined my wail to theirs, loud and bitter; but Joseph asked what we could be thinking of
            to roar in that way over a saint in heaven. He told me to put on my cloak and run to
            Gimmerton for the doctor and the parson. I could not guess the use that either would be
            of, then. However, I went, through wind and rain, and brought one, the doctor, back with
            me; the other said he would come in the morning. Leaving Joseph to explain matters, I
            ran to the children’s room: their door was ajar, I saw they had never lain down, though
            it was past midnight; but they were calmer, and did not need me to console them. The
            little souls were comforting each other with better thoughts than I could have hit on:
            no parson in the world ever pictured heaven so beautifully as they did, in their
            innocent talk; and, while I sobbed and listened, I could not help wishing we were all
            there safe together.</p>
         <p>Chapter 6</p>
         <p>Mr. Hindley came home to the funeral; and—a thing that amazed us, and set the neighbours
            gossiping right and left—he brought a wife with him. What she was, and where she was
            born, he never informed us: probably, she had neither money nor name to recommend her,
            or he would scarcely have kept the union from his father. She was not one that would
            have disturbed the house much on her own account. Every object she saw, the moment she
            crossed the threshold, appeared to delight her; and every circumstance that took place
            about her: except the preparing for the burial, and the presence of the mourners. I
            thought she was half silly, from her behaviour while that went on: she ran into her
            chamber, and made me come with her, though I should have been dressing the children: and
            there she sat shivering and clasping her hands, and asking repeatedly—“Are they gone
            yet?” Then she began describing with hysterical emotion the effect it produced on her to
            see black; and started, and trembled, and, at last, fell a-weeping—and when I asked what
            was the matter, answered, she didn’t know; but she felt so afraid of dying! </p>
         <p> I imagined her as little likely to die as myself. She was rather thin, but young, and
            fresh-complexioned, and her eyes sparkled as bright as diamonds. I did remark, to be
            sure, that mounting the stairs made her breathe very quick; that the least sudden noise
            set her all in a quiver, and that she coughed troublesomely sometimes: but I knew
            nothing of what these symptoms portended, and had no impulse to sympathise with her. We
            don’t in general take to foreigners here, Mr. Lockwood, unless they take to us first.
            Young Earnshaw was altered considerably in the three years of his absence. He had grown
            sparer, and lost his colour, and spoke and dressed quite differently; and, on the very
            day of his return, he told Joseph and me we must thenceforth quarter ourselves in the
            back-kitchen, and leave the house for him. Indeed, he would have carpeted and papered a
            small spare room for a parlour; but his wife expressed such pleasure at the white floor
            and huge glowing fireplace, at the pewter dishes and delf-case, and dog-kennel, and the
            wide space there was to move about in where they usually sat, that he thought it
            unnecessary to her comfort, and so dropped the intention. She expressed pleasure, too,
            at finding a sister among her new acquaintance; and she prattled to Catherine, and
            kissed her, and ran about with her, and gave her quantities of presents, at the
            beginning. </p>
         <p> Her affection tired very soon, however, and when she grew peevish, Hindley became
            tyrannical. A few words from her, evincing a dislike to Heathcliff, were enough to rouse
            in him all his old hatred of the boy. He drove him from their company to the servants,
            deprived him of the instructions of the curate, and insisted that he should labour out
            of doors instead; compelling him to do so as hard as any other lad on the farm.
            Heathcliff bore his <tc:racedesc type="implied">degradation</tc:racedesc> pretty well at
            first, because Cathy taught him what she learnt, and worked or played with him in the
            fields. They both promised fair to grow up as <tc:racedesc type="implied">rude as
               savages</tc:racedesc>; the young master being entirely negligent how they behaved,
            and what they did, so they kept clear of him. He would not even have seen after their
            going to church on Sundays, only Joseph and the curate reprimanded his carelessness when
            they absented themselves; and that reminded him to order Heathcliff a flogging, and
            Catherine a fast from dinner or supper. But it was one of their chief amusements to run
            away to the moors in the morning and remain there all day, and the after punishment grew
            a mere thing to laugh at. The curate might set as many chapters as he pleased for
            Catherine to get by heart, and Joseph might thrash Heathcliff till his arm ached; they
            forgot everything the minute they were together again: at least the minute they had
            contrived some naughty plan of revenge; and many a time I’ve cried to myself to watch
            them growing more reckless daily, and I not daring to speak a syllable, for fear of
            losing the small power I still retained over the unfriended creatures. One Sunday
            evening, it chanced that they were banished from the sitting-room, for making a noise,
            or a light offence of the kind; and when I went to call them to supper, I could discover
            them nowhere. </p>
         <p> We searched the house, above and below, and the yard and stables; they were invisible:
            and, at last, Hindley in a passion told us to bolt the doors, and swore nobody should
            let them in that night. The household went to bed; and I, too anxious to lie down,
            opened my lattice and put my head out to hearken, though it rained: determined to admit
            them in spite of the prohibition, should they return. In a while, I distinguished steps
            coming up the road, and the light of a lantern glimmered through the gate. I threw a
            shawl over my head and ran to prevent them from waking Mr. Earnshaw by knocking. There
            was Heathcliff, by himself: it gave me a start to see him alone. “Where is Miss
            Catherine?” </p>
         <p> I cried hurriedly. “No accident, I hope?” “At Thrushcross Grange,” he answered; “and I
            would have been there too, but they had not the manners to ask me to stay.” “Well, you
            will catch it!” I said: “you’ll never be content till you’re sent about your business.
            What in the world led you wandering to Thrushcross Grange?” “Let me get off my wet
            clothes, and I’ll tell you all about it, Nelly,” he replied. </p>
         <p> I bid him beware of rousing the master, and while he undressed and I waited to put out
            the candle, he continued—“Cathy and I escaped from the wash-house to have a ramble at
            liberty, and getting a glimpse of the Grange lights, we thought we would just go and see
            whether the Lintons passed their Sunday evenings standing shivering in corners, while
            their father and mother sat eating and drinking, and singing and laughing, and burning
            their eyes out before the fire. Do you think they do? Or reading sermons, and being
            catechised by their man-servant, and set to learn a column of Scripture names, if they
            don’t answer properly?” </p>
         <p> “Probably not,” I responded. “They are good children, no doubt, and don’t deserve the
            treatment you receive, for your bad conduct.” “Don’t cant, Nelly,” he said: “nonsense!
            We ran from the top of the Heights to the park, without stopping—Catherine completely
            beaten in the race, because she was barefoot. You’ll have to seek for her shoes in the
            bog to-morrow. We crept through a broken hedge, groped our way up the path, and planted
            ourselves on a flower-plot under the drawing-room window. The light came from thence;
            they had not put up the shutters, and the curtains were only half closed. Both of us
            were able to look in by standing on the basement, and clinging to the ledge, and we
            saw—ah! it was beautiful—a splendid place carpeted with crimson, and crimson-covered
            chairs and tables, and a pure white ceiling bordered by gold, a shower of glass-drops
            hanging in silver chains from the centre, and shimmering with little soft tapers. Old
            Mr. and Mrs. Linton were not there; Edgar and his sister had it entirely to themselves.
            Shouldn’t they have been happy? We should have thought ourselves in heaven! And now,
            guess what your good children were doing? Isabella—I believe she is eleven, a year
            younger than Cathy—lay screaming at the farther end of the room, shrieking as if witches
            were running red-hot needles into her. Edgar stood on the hearth weeping silently, and
            in the middle of the table sat a little dog, shaking its paw and yelping; which, from
            their mutual accusations, we understood they had nearly pulled in two between them. The
            idiots! That was their pleasure! to quarrel who should hold a heap of warm hair, and
            each begin to cry because both, after struggling to get it, refused to take it. We
            laughed outright at the petted things; we did despise them! When would you catch me
            wishing to have what Catherine wanted? or find us by ourselves, seeking entertainment in
            yelling, and sobbing, and rolling on the ground, divided by the whole room? I’d not
            exchange, for a thousand lives, my condition here, for Edgar Linton’s at Thrushcross
            Grange—not if I might have the privilege of flinging Joseph off the highest gable, and
            painting the house-front with Hindley’s blood!” </p>
         <p> “Hush, hush!” I interrupted. “Still you have not told me, Heathcliff, how Catherine is
            left behind?” “I told you we laughed,” he answered. “The Lintons heard us, and with one
            accord they shot like arrows to the door; there was silence, and then a cry, ‘Oh, mamma,
            mamma! Oh, papa! Oh, mamma, come here. Oh, papa, oh!’ They really did howl out something
            in that way. We made frightful noises to terrify them still more, and then we dropped
            off the ledge, because somebody was drawing the bars, and we felt we had better flee. I
            had Cathy by the hand, and was urging her on, when all at once she fell down. ‘Run,
            Heathcliff, run!’ she whispered. ‘They have let the bull-dog loose, and he holds me!’ </p>
         <p> The devil had seized her ankle, Nelly: I heard his abominable snorting. She did not
            yell out—no! she would have scorned to do it, if she had been spitted on the horns of a
            mad cow. I did, though: I vociferated curses enough to annihilate any fiend in
            Christendom; and I got a stone and thrust it between his jaws, and tried with all my
            might to cram it down his throat. A beast of a servant came up with a lantern, at last,
            shouting—‘Keep fast, Skulker, keep fast!’ He changed his note, however, when he saw
            Skulker’s game. The dog was throttled off; his huge, purple tongue hanging half a foot
            out of his mouth, and his pendent lips streaming with bloody slaver. The man took Cathy
            up; she was sick: not from fear, I’m certain, but from pain. He carried her in; I
            followed, grumbling execrations and vengeance. </p>
         <p> ‘What prey, Robert?’ hallooed Linton from the entrance. ‘Skulker has caught a little
            girl, sir,’ he replied; ‘and there’s a lad here,’ he added, making a clutch at me, ‘who
            looks an <tc:racedesc type="explicit">out-and-outer</tc:racedesc>out-and-outer! Very
            like the robbers were for putting them through the window to open the doors to the gang
            after all were asleep, that they might murder us at their ease. Hold your tongue, you
               <tc:racedesc type="explicit">foul-mouthed thief</tc:racedesc>, you! you shall go to
            the gallows for this. Mr. Linton, sir, don’t lay by your gun.’ ‘No, no, Robert,’ said
            the old fool. ‘The rascals knew that yesterday was my rent-day: they thought to have me
            cleverly. Come in; I’ll furnish them a reception. There, John, fasten the chain. Give
            Skulker some water, Jenny. To beard a magistrate in his stronghold, and on the Sabbath,
            too! Where will their insolence stop? Oh, my dear Mary, look here! Don’t be afraid, it
            is but a boy—yet the <tc:racedesc type="explicit">villain scowls</tc:racedesc> so
            plainly in his face; would it not be a kindness to the country to hang him at once,
            before he shows his nature in acts as well as features?’ He pulled me under the
            chandelier, and Mrs. Linton placed her spectacles on her nose and raised her hands in
            horror. The cowardly children crept nearer also, Isabella lisping—‘Frightful thing! Put
            him in the cellar, papa. He’s exactly like the <tc:racedesc type="explicit">son of the
               fortune-teller that stole my tame pheasant</tc:racedesc> . Isn’t he, Edgar?’ “While
            they examined me, Cathy came round; she heard the last speech, and laughed. Edgar
            Linton, after an inquisitive stare, collected sufficient wit to recognise her. They see
            us at church, you know, though we seldom meet them elsewhere. ‘That’s Miss Earnshaw!’ he
            whispered to his mother, ‘and look how Skulker has bitten her—how her foot bleeds!’
            “‘Miss Earnshaw? Nonsense!’ cried the dame; </p>
         <p> ‘Miss Earnshaw scouring the country with a <tc:racedesc type="explicit"
               >gipsy</tc:racedesc>! And yet, my dear, the child is in mourning—surely it is—and she
            may be lamed for life!’ “‘What culpable carelessness in her brother!’ exclaimed Mr.
            Linton, turning from me to Catherine. ‘I’ve understood from Shielders’” (that was the
            curate, sir) “‘that he lets her grow up in absolute <tc:racedesc type="explicit"
               >heathenism</tc:racedesc>. But who is this? Where did she pick up this companion?
            Oho! I declare he is that strange acquisition my late neighbour made, in his journey to
               <tc:racecontext type="historical">
               <name ref="person_place.xml#Liverpool">Liverpool</name></tc:racecontext>—a little
               <tc:racedesc type="explicit">Lascar</tc:racedesc>, or an American or Spanish
            castaway.’ “‘A <tc:racedesc type="explicit">wicked boy</tc:racedesc> , at all events,’
            remarked the old lady, ‘and quite unfit for a decent house! Did you notice his language,
            Linton? I’m shocked that my children should have heard it.’ </p>
         <p> “I recommenced cursing—don’t be angry, Nelly—and so Robert was ordered to take me off.
            I refused to go without Cathy; he dragged me into the garden, pushed the lantern into my
            hand, assured me that Mr. Earnshaw should be informed of my behaviour, and, bidding me
            march directly, secured the door again. The curtains were still looped up at one corner,
            and I resumed my station as spy; because, if Catherine had wished to return, I intended
            shattering their great glass panes to a million of fragments, unless they let her out.
            She sat on the sofa quietly. Mrs. Linton took off the grey cloak of the dairy-maid which
            we had borrowed for our excursion, shaking her head and expostulating with her, I
            suppose: she was a young lady, and they made a distinction between her treatment and
            mine. Then the woman-servant brought a basin of warm water, and washed her feet; and Mr.
            Linton mixed a tumbler of negus, and Isabella emptied a plateful of cakes into her lap,
            and Edgar stood gaping at a distance. Afterwards, they dried and combed her beautiful
            hair, and gave her a pair of enormous slippers, and wheeled her to the fire; and I left
            her, as merry as she could be, dividing her food between the little dog and Skulker,
            whose nose she pinched as he ate; and kindling a spark of spirit in the vacant blue eyes
            of the Lintons—a dim reflection from her own enchanting face. I saw they were full of
            stupid admiration; she is so immeasurably superior to them—to everybody on earth, is she
            not, Nelly?” </p>
         <p> “There will more come of this business than you reckon on,” I answered, covering him up
            and extinguishing the light. “You are <tc:racedesc type="explicit"
               >incurable</tc:racedesc>, Heathcliff; and Mr. Hindley will have to proceed to
            extremities, see if he won’t.” My words came truer than I desired. The luckless
            adventure made Earnshaw furious. And then Mr. Linton, to mend matters, paid us a visit
            himself on the morrow, and read the young master such a lecture on the road he guided
            his family, that he was stirred to look about him, in earnest. Heathcliff received no
            flogging, but he was told that the first word he spoke to Miss Catherine should ensure a
            dismissal; and Mrs. Earnshaw undertook to keep her sister-in-law in due restraint when
            she returned home; employing art, not force: with force she would have found it
            impossible.</p>
         <p>Chapter 7</p>
         <p>Cathy stayed at Thrushcross Grange five weeks: till Christmas. By that time her ankle
            was thoroughly cured, and her manners much improved. The mistress visited her often in
            the interval, and commenced her plan of reform by trying to raise her self-respect with
            fine clothes and flattery, which she took readily; so that, instead of a wild, hatless
            little savage jumping into the house, and rushing to squeeze us all breathless, there
            lighted from a handsome black pony a very dignified person, with brown ringlets falling
            from the cover of a feathered beaver, and a long cloth habit, which she was obliged to
            hold up with both hands that she might sail in. Hindley lifted her from her horse,
            exclaiming delightedly, “Why, Cathy, you are quite a beauty! I should scarcely have
            known you: you look like a lady now. Isabella Linton is not to be compared with her, is
            she, Frances?” “Isabella has not her natural advantages,” replied his wife: “but she
            must mind and not grow wild again here. Ellen, help Miss Catherine off with her
            things—Stay, dear, you will disarrange your curls—let me untie your hat.” </p>
         <p> I removed the habit, and there shone forth beneath a grand plaid silk frock, white
            trousers, and burnished shoes; and, while her eyes sparkled joyfully when the dogs came
            bounding up to welcome her, she dared hardly touch them lest they should fawn upon her
            splendid garments. She kissed me gently: I was all flour making the Christmas cake, and
            it would not have done to give me a hug; and then she looked round for Heathcliff. Mr.
            and Mrs. Earnshaw watched anxiously their meeting; thinking it would enable them to
            judge, in some measure, what grounds they had for hoping to succeed in separating the
            two friends. Heathcliff was hard to discover, at first. If he were careless, and uncared
            for, before Catherine’s absence, he had been ten times more so since. Nobody but I even
            did him the kindness to call him a <tc:racedesc subtype="explicit">dirty
               boy</tc:racedesc>, and bid him wash himself, once a week; and children of his age
            seldom have a natural pleasure in soap and water. Therefore, not to mention his clothes,
            which had seen three months’ service in mire and dust, and his <tc:racedesc
               subtype="implied">thick</tc:racedesc> uncombed hair, the surface of his face and
            hands was dismally beclouded. He might well skulk behind the settle, on beholding such a
            bright, graceful damsel enter the house, instead of a rough-headed counterpart of
            himself, as he expected. “Is Heathcliff not here?” she demanded, pulling off her gloves,
            and displaying fingers wonderfully whitened with doing nothing and staying indoors. </p>
         <p> “Heathcliff, you may come forward,” cried Mr. Hindley, enjoying his discomfiture, and
            gratified to see what a forbidding young blackguard he would be compelled to present
            himself. “You may come and wish Miss Catherine welcome, like the other servants.” Cathy,
            catching a glimpse of her friend in his concealment, flew to embrace him; she bestowed
            seven or eight kisses on his cheek within the second, and then stopped, and drawing
            back, burst into a laugh, exclaiming, “Why, how very <tc:racedesc type="explicit"
               >black</tc:racedesc> and cross you look! and how—how funny and grim! But that’s
            because I’m used to Edgar and Isabella Linton. Well, Heathcliff, have you forgotten me?”
            She had some reason to put the question, for shame and pride threw double gloom over his
            countenance, and kept him immovable. “Shake hands, Heathcliff,” said Mr. Earnshaw,
            condescendingly; “once in a way, that is permitted.”</p>
         <p> “I shall not,” replied the boy, finding his tongue at last; “I shall not stand to be
            laughed at. I shall not bear it!” And he would have broken from the circle, but Miss
            Cathy seized him again. “I did not mean to laugh at you,” she said; “I could not hinder
            myself: Heathcliff, shake hands at least! What are you sulky for? It was only that you
            looked odd. If you wash your face and brush your hair, it will be all right: but you are
            so dirty!” She gazed concernedly at the dusky fingers she held in her own, and also at
            her dress; which she feared had gained no embellishment from its contact with his. “You
            needn’t have touched me!” he answered, following her eye and snatching away his hand. “I
            shall be as dirty as I please: and I like to be dirty, and I will be dirty.” With that
            he dashed headforemost out of the room, amid the merriment of the master and mistress,
            and to the serious disturbance of Catherine; who could not comprehend how her remarks
            should have produced such an exhibition of bad temper. After playing lady’s-maid to the
            new-comer, and putting my cakes in the oven, and making the house and kitchen cheerful
            with great fires, befitting Christmas-eve, I prepared to sit down and amuse myself by
            singing carols, all alone; regardless of Joseph’s affirmations that he considered the
            merry tunes I chose as next door to songs. He had retired to private prayer in his
            chamber, and Mr. and Mrs. Earnshaw were engaging Missy’s attention by sundry gay trifles
            bought for her to present to the little Lintons, as an acknowledgment of their kindness. </p>

         <p> They had invited them to spend the morrow at Wuthering Heights, and the invitation had
            been accepted, on one condition: Mrs. Linton begged that her darlings might be kept
            carefully apart from that <tc:racedesc type="explicit">“naughty swearing
               boy.”</tc:racedesc>Under these circumstances I remained solitary. I smelt the rich
            scent of the heating spices; and admired the shining kitchen utensils, the polished
            clock, decked in holly, the silver mugs ranged on a tray ready to be filled with mulled
            ale for supper; and above all, the speckless purity of my particular care—the scoured
            and well-swept floor. I gave due inward applause to every object, and then I remembered
            how old Earnshaw used to come in when all was tidied, and call me a cant lass, and slip
            a shilling into my hand as a Christmas-box; and from that I went on to think of his
            fondness for Heathcliff, and his dread lest he should suffer neglect after death had
            removed him: and that naturally led me to consider the poor lad’s situation now, and
            from singing I changed my mind to crying. It struck me soon, however, there would be
            more sense in endeavouring to repair some of his wrongs than shedding tears over them: I
            got up and walked into the court to seek him. He was not far; I found him smoothing the
            glossy coat of the new pony in the stable, and feeding the other beasts, according to
            custom. “Make haste, Heathcliff!” I said, “the kitchen is so comfortable; and Joseph is
            upstairs: make haste, and let me dress you smart before Miss Cathy comes out, and then
            you can sit together, with the whole hearth to yourselves, and have a long chatter till
            bedtime.” He proceeded with his task, and never turned his head towards me. </p>
         <p> “Come—are you coming?” I continued. “There’s a little cake for each of you, nearly
            enough; and you’ll need half-an-hour’s donning.” I waited five minutes, but getting no
            answer left him. Catherine supped with her brother and sister-in-law: Joseph and I
            joined at an unsociable meal, seasoned with reproofs on one side and sauciness on the
            other. His cake and cheese remained on the table all night for the fairies. He managed
            to continue work till nine o’clock, and then marched dumb and dour to his chamber. Cathy
            sat up late, having a world of things to order for the reception of her new friends: she
            came into the kitchen once to speak to her old one; but he was gone, and she only stayed
            to ask what was the matter with him, and then went back. In the morning he rose early;
            and, as it was a holiday, carried his ill-humour on to the moors; not re-appearing till
            the family were departed for church. Fasting and reflection seemed to have brought him
            to a better spirit. He hung about me for a while, and having screwed up his courage,
            exclaimed abruptly—“Nelly, make me decent, I’m going to be good.” “High time,
            Heathcliff,” I said; “you have grieved Catherine: she’s sorry she ever came home, I
            daresay! It looks as if you envied her, because she is more thought of than you.” The
            notion of envying Catherine was incomprehensible to him, but the notion of grieving her
            he understood clearly enough. “Did she say she was grieved?” he inquired, looking very
            serious. “She cried when I told her you were off again this morning.” </p>
         <p> “Well, I cried last night,” he returned, “and I had more reason to cry than she.” “Yes:
            you had the reason of going to bed with a proud heart and an empty stomach,” said I.
            “Proud people breed sad sorrows for themselves. But, if you be ashamed of your
            touchiness, you must ask pardon, mind, when she comes in. You must go up and offer to
            kiss her, and say—you know best what to say; only do it heartily, and not as if you
            thought her converted into a stranger by her grand dress. And now, though I have dinner
            to get ready, I’ll steal time to arrange you so that Edgar Linton shall look quite a
            doll beside you: and that he does. You are younger, and yet, I’ll be bound, you are
            taller and twice as broad across the shoulders; you could knock him down in a twinkling;
            don’t you feel that you could?” Heathcliff’s face brightened a moment; then it was
            overcast afresh, and he sighed. “But, Nelly, if I knocked him down twenty times, that
            wouldn’t make him less handsome or me more so. I wish I had light hair and a fair skin,
            and was dressed and behaved as well, and had a chance of being as rich as he will be!”
            “And cried for mamma at every turn,” I added, “and trembled if a country lad heaved his
            fist against you, and sat at home all day for a shower of rain. </p>
         <p> Oh, Heathcliff, you are showing a poor spirit! Come to the glass, and I’ll let you see
            what you should wish. Do you mark those two lines between your eyes; and those thick
            brows, that, instead of rising arched, sink in the middle; and that couple of
               <tc:racedesc type="implied">black fiends</tc:racedesc>, so deeply buried, who never
            open their windows boldly, but lurk glinting under them, like devil’s spies? Wish and
            learn to smooth away the surly wrinkles, to raise your lids frankly, and change the
            fiends to confident, innocent angels, suspecting and doubting nothing, and always seeing
            friends where they are not sure of foes. Don’t get the expression of a vicious cur that
            appears to know the kicks it gets are its desert, and yet hates all the world, as well
            as the kicker, for what it suffers.” </p>
         <p> “In other words, I must wish for Edgar Linton’s great blue eyes and even forehead,” he
            replied. “I do—and that won’t help me to them.” “A good heart will help you to a bonny
            face, my lad,” I continued, “if you were a regular black; and a bad one will turn the
            bonniest into something worse than ugly. And now that we’ve done washing, and combing,
            and sulking—tell me whether you don’t think yourself rather handsome? I’ll tell you, I
            do. You’re fit for a prince in disguise. Who knows but <tc:racedesc type="explicit">your
               father was Emperor of China</tc:racedesc>, and <tc:racedesc type="explicit">your
               mother an Indian queen</tc:racedesc>, each of them able to buy up, with one week’s
            income, Wuthering Heights and Thrushcross Grange together? And you were kidnapped by
            wicked sailors and brought to England. Were I in your place, I would frame high notions
            of my birth; and the thoughts of what I was should give me courage and dignity to
            support the oppressions of a little farmer!” So I chattered on; and Heathcliff gradually
            lost his frown and began to look quite pleasant, when all at once our conversation was
            interrupted by a rumbling sound moving up the road and entering the court. He ran to the
            window and I to the door, just in time to behold the two Lintons descend from the family
            carriage, smothered in cloaks and furs, and the Earnshaws dismount from their horses:
            they often rode to church in winter. Catherine took a hand of each of the children, and
            brought them into the house and set them before the fire, which quickly put colour into
            their white faces. I urged my companion to hasten now and show his amiable humour, and
            he willingly obeyed; but ill luck would have it that, as he opened the door leading from
            the kitchen on one side, Hindley opened it on the other. They met, and the master,
            irritated at seeing him clean and cheerful, or, perhaps, eager to keep his promise to
            Mrs. Linton, shoved him back with a sudden thrust, and angrily bade Joseph “keep the
            fellow out of the room—send him into the garret till dinner is over. He’ll be cramming
            his fingers in the tarts and stealing the fruit, if left alone with them a minute.”</p>

         <p> “Nay, sir,” I could not avoid answering, “he’ll touch nothing, not he: and I suppose he
            must have his share of the dainties as well as we.” “He shall have his share of my hand,
            if I catch him downstairs till dark,” cried Hindley. “Begone, you vagabond! What! you
            are attempting the coxcomb, are you? Wait till I get hold of those elegant locks—see if
            I won’t pull them a bit longer!” “They are long enough already,” observed Master Linton,
            peeping from the doorway; “I wonder they don’t make his head ache. It’s like a colt’s
            mane over his eyes!” He ventured this remark without any intention to insult; but
            Heathcliff’s <tc:racedesc type="explicit">violent nature</tc:racedesc> was not prepared
            to endure the appearance of impertinence from one whom he seemed to hate, even then, as
            a rival. He seized a tureen of hot apple sauce, the first thing that came under his
            gripe, and dashed it full against the speaker’s face and neck; who instantly commenced a
            lament that brought Isabella and Catherine hurrying to the place. Mr. Earnshaw snatched
            up the culprit directly and conveyed him to his chamber; where, doubtless, he
            administered a rough remedy to cool the fit of passion, for he appeared red and
            breathless. I got the dish-cloth, and rather spitefully scrubbed Edgar’s nose and mouth,
            affirming it served him right for meddling. His sister began weeping to go home, and
            Cathy stood by confounded, blushing for all. “You should not have spoken to him!” she
            expostulated with Master Linton. </p>
         <p> “He was in a bad temper, and now you’ve spoilt your visit; and he’ll be flogged: I hate
            him to be flogged! I can’t eat my dinner. Why did you speak to him, Edgar?” “I didn’t,”
            sobbed the youth, escaping from my hands, and finishing the remainder of the
            purification with his cambric pocket-handkerchief. “I promised mamma that I wouldn’t say
            one word to him, and I didn’t.” “Well, don’t cry,” replied Catherine, contemptuously;
            “you’re not killed. Don’t make more mischief; my brother is coming: be quiet! Hush,
            Isabella! Has anybody hurt you?” </p>
         <p> “There, there, children—to your seats!” cried Hindley, bustling in. “That brute of a
            lad has warmed me nicely. Next time, Master Edgar, take the law into your own fists—it
            will give you an appetite!” The little party recovered its equanimity at sight of the
            fragrant feast. They were hungry after their ride, and easily consoled, since no real
            harm had befallen them. Mr. Earnshaw carved bountiful platefuls, and the mistress made
            them merry with lively talk. I waited behind her chair, and was pained to behold
            Catherine, with dry eyes and an indifferent air, commence cutting up the wing of a goose
            before her. “An unfeeling child,” I thought to myself; “how lightly she dismisses her
            old playmate’s troubles. I could not have imagined her to be so selfish.” She lifted a
            mouthful to her lips: then she set it down again: her cheeks flushed, and the tears
            gushed over them. She slipped her fork to the floor, and hastily dived under the cloth
            to conceal her emotion. I did not call her unfeeling long; for I perceived she was in
            purgatory throughout the day, and wearying to find an opportunity of getting by herself,
            or paying a visit to Heathcliff, who had been locked up by the master: as I discovered,
            on endeavouring to introduce to him a private mess of victuals. In the evening we had a
            dance. Cathy begged that he might be liberated then, as Isabella Linton had no partner:
            her entreaties were vain, and I was appointed to supply the deficiency. We got rid of
            all gloom in the excitement of the exercise, and our pleasure was increased by the
            arrival of the Gimmerton band, mustering fifteen strong: a trumpet, a trombone,
            clarionets, bassoons, French horns, and a bass viol, besides singers. </p>
         <p> They go the rounds of all the respectable houses, and receive contributions every
            Christmas, and we esteemed it a first-rate treat to hear them. After the usual carols
            had been sung, we set them to songs and glees. Mrs. Earnshaw loved the music, and so
            they gave us plenty. Catherine loved it too: but she said it sounded sweetest at the top
            of the steps, and she went up in the dark: I followed. They shut the house door below,
            never noting our absence, it was so full of people. She made no stay at the
            stairs’-head, but mounted farther, to the garret where Heathcliff was confined, and
            called him. He stubbornly declined answering for a while: she persevered, and finally
            persuaded him to hold communion with her through the boards. I let the poor things
            converse unmolested, till I supposed the songs were going to cease, and the singers to
            get some refreshment: then I clambered up the ladder to warn her. Instead of finding her
            outside, I heard her voice within. The little monkey had crept by the skylight of one
            garret, along the roof, into the skylight of the other, and it was with the utmost
            difficulty I could coax her out again. When she did come, Heathcliff came with her, and
            she insisted that I should take him into the kitchen, as my fellow-servant had gone to a
            neighbour’s, to be removed from the sound of our “devil’s psalmody,” as it pleased him
            to call it. I told them I intended by no means to encourage their tricks: but as the
            prisoner had never broken his fast since yesterday’s dinner, I would wink at his
            cheating Mr. Hindley that once. He went down: I set him a stool by the fire, and offered
            him a quantity of good things: but he was sick and could eat little, and my attempts to
            entertain him were thrown away. He leant his two elbows on his knees, and his chin on
            his hands, and remained rapt in dumb meditation. On my inquiring the subject of his
            thoughts, he answered gravely—“I’m trying to settle how I shall pay Hindley back. I
            don’t care how long I wait, if I can only do it at last. I hope he will not die before I
            do!” </p>
         <p> “For shame, Heathcliff!” said I. “It is for God to punish wicked people; we should
            learn to forgive.” “No, God won’t have the satisfaction that I shall,” he returned. “I
            only wish I knew the best way! Let me alone, and I’ll plan it out: while I’m thinking of
            that I don’t feel pain.” But, Mr. Lockwood, I forget these tales cannot divert you. I’m
            annoyed how I should dream of chattering on at such a rate; and your gruel cold, and you
            nodding for bed! I could have told Heathcliff’s history, all that you need hear, in half
            a dozen words. * * * * * </p>
         <p> Thus interrupting herself, the housekeeper rose, and proceeded to lay aside her sewing;
            but I felt incapable of moving from the hearth, and I was very far from nodding. “Sit
            still, Mrs. Dean,” I cried; “do sit still another half-hour. You’ve done just right to
            tell the story leisurely. That is the method I like; and you must finish it in the same
            style. I am interested in every character you have mentioned, more or less.” “The clock
            is on the stroke of eleven, sir.” “No matter—I’m not accustomed to go to bed in the long
            hours. One or two is early enough for a person who lies till ten.” “You shouldn’t lie
            till ten. There’s the very prime of the morning gone long before that time. A person who
            has not done one-half his day’s work by ten o’clock, runs a chance of leaving the other
            half undone.” “Nevertheless, Mrs. Dean, resume your chair; because to-morrow I intend
            lengthening the night till afternoon. I prognosticate for myself an obstinate cold, at
            least.” “I hope not, sir. Well, you must allow me to leap over some three years; during
            that space Mrs. Earnshaw—” “No, no, I’ll allow nothing of the sort! Are you acquainted
            with the mood of mind in which, if you were seated alone, and the cat licking its kitten
            on the rug before you, you would watch the operation so intently that puss’s neglect of
            one ear would put you seriously out of temper?”</p>
         <p> “A terribly lazy mood, I should say.” “On the contrary, a tiresomely active one. It is
            mine, at present; and, therefore, continue minutely. I perceive that people in these
            regions acquire over people in towns the value that a spider in a dungeon does over a
            spider in a cottage, to their various occupants; and yet the deepened attraction is not
            entirely owing to the situation of the looker-on. They do live more in earnest, more in
            themselves, and less in surface, change, and frivolous external things. I could fancy a
            love for life here almost possible; and I was a fixed unbeliever in any love of a year’s
            standing. One state resembles setting a hungry man down to a single dish, on which he
            may concentrate his entire appetite and do it justice; the other, introducing him to a
            table laid out by French cooks: he can perhaps extract as much enjoyment from the whole;
            but each part is a mere atom in his regard and remembrance.” “Oh! here we are the same
            as anywhere else, when you get to know us,” observed Mrs. Dean, somewhat puzzled at my
            speech. “Excuse me,” I responded; “you, my good friend, are a striking evidence against
            that assertion. Excepting a few provincialisms of slight consequence, you have no marks
            of the manners which I am habituated to consider as peculiar to your class. I am sure
            you have thought a great deal more than the generality of servants think. You have been
            compelled to cultivate your reflective faculties for want of occasions for frittering
            your life away in silly trifles.” </p>
         <p> Mrs. Dean laughed. “I certainly esteem myself a steady, reasonable kind of body,” she
            said; “not exactly from living among the hills and seeing one set of faces, and one
            series of actions, from year’s end to year’s end; but I have undergone sharp discipline,
            which has taught me wisdom; and then, I have read more than you would fancy, Mr.
            Lockwood. You could not open a book in this library that I have not looked into, and got
            something out of also: unless it be that range of Greek and Latin, and that of French;
            and those I know one from another: it is as much as you can expect of a poor man’s
            daughter. However, if I am to follow my story in true gossip’s fashion, I had better go
            on; and instead of leaping three years, I will be content to pass to the next summer—the
            summer of 1778, that is nearly twenty-three years ago.” </p>
         <p>Chapter 8</p>
         <p>On the morning of a fine June day my first bonny little nursling, and the last of the
            ancient Earnshaw stock, was born. We were busy with the hay in a far-away field, when
            the girl that usually brought our breakfasts came running an hour too soon across the
            meadow and up the lane, calling me as she ran. “Oh, such a grand bairn!” she panted out.
            “The finest lad that ever breathed! But the doctor says missis must go: he says she’s
            been in a consumption these many months. I heard him tell Mr. Hindley: and now she has
            nothing to keep her, and she’ll be dead before winter. You must come home directly.
            You’re to nurse it, Nelly: to feed it with sugar and milk, and take care of it day and
            night. I wish I were you, because it will be all yours when there is no missis!” “But is
            she very ill?” I asked, flinging down my rake and tying my bonnet. “I guess she is; yet
            she looks bravely,” replied the girl, “and she talks as if she thought of living to see
            it grow a man. She’s out of her head for joy, it’s such a beauty! If I were her I’m
            certain I should not die: I should get better at the bare sight of it, in spite of
            Kenneth. I was fairly mad at him. Dame Archer brought the cherub down to master, in the
            house, and his face just began to light up, when the old croaker steps forward, and says
            he—‘Earnshaw, it’s a blessing your wife has been spared to leave you this son. When she
            came, I felt convinced we shouldn’t keep her long; and now, I must tell you, the winter
            will probably finish her. Don’t take on, and fret about it too much: it can’t be helped.
            And besides, you should have known better than to choose such a rush of a lass!’” </p>
         <p> “And what did the master answer?” I inquired. “I think he swore: but I didn’t mind him,
            I was straining to see the bairn,” and she began again to describe it rapturously. I, as
            zealous as herself, hurried eagerly home to admire, on my part; though I was very sad
            for Hindley’s sake. He had room in his heart only for two idols—his wife and himself: he
            doted on both, and adored one, and I couldn’t conceive how he would bear the loss. When
            we got to Wuthering Heights, there he stood at the front door; and, as I passed in, I
            asked, “how was the baby?” “Nearly ready to run about, Nell!” he replied, putting on a
            cheerful smile. “And the mistress?” I ventured to inquire; “the doctor says she’s—”
            “Damn the doctor!” he interrupted, reddening. “Frances is quite right: she’ll be
            perfectly well by this time next week. Are you going upstairs? will you tell her that
            I’ll come, if she’ll promise not to talk. I left her because she would not hold her
            tongue; and she must—tell her Mr. Kenneth says she must be quiet.” I delivered this
            message to Mrs. Earnshaw; she seemed in flighty spirits, and replied merrily, “I hardly
            spoke a word, Ellen, and there he has gone out twice, crying. Well, say I promise I
            won’t speak: but that does not bind me not to laugh at him!” </p>
         <p> Poor soul! Till within a week of her death that gay heart never failed her; and her
            husband persisted doggedly, nay, furiously, in affirming her health improved every day.
            When Kenneth warned him that his medicines were useless at that stage of the malady, and
            he needn’t put him to further expense by attending her, he retorted, “I know you need
            not—she’s well—she does not want any more attendance from you! She never was in a
            consumption. It was a fever; and it is gone: her pulse is as slow as mine now, and her
            cheek as cool.” He told his wife the same story, and she seemed to believe him; but one
            night, while leaning on his shoulder, in the act of saying she thought she should be
            able to get up to-morrow, a fit of coughing took her—a very slight one—he raised her in
            his arms; she put her two hands about his neck, her face changed, and she was dead. As
            the girl had anticipated, the child Hareton fell wholly into my hands. Mr. Earnshaw,
            provided he saw him healthy and never heard him cry, was contented, as far as regarded
            him. For himself, he grew desperate: his sorrow was of that kind that will not lament.
            He neither wept nor prayed; he cursed and defied: execrated God and man, and gave
            himself up to reckless dissipation. The servants could not bear his tyrannical and evil
            conduct long: Joseph and I were the only two that would stay. I had not the heart to
            leave my charge; and besides, you know, I had been his foster-sister, and excused his
            behaviour more readily than a stranger would. Joseph remained to hector over tenants and
            labourers; and because it was his vocation to be where he had plenty of wickedness to
            reprove. The master’s bad ways and bad companions formed a pretty example for Catherine
            and Heathcliff. </p>
         <p> His treatment of the latter was enough to make a fiend of a saint. And, truly, it
            appeared as if the lad were possessed of something diabolical at that period. He
            delighted to witness Hindley degrading himself past redemption; and became daily more
            notable for savage sullenness and ferocity. I could not half tell what an infernal house
            we had. The curate dropped calling, and nobody decent came near us, at last; unless
            Edgar Linton’s visits to Miss Cathy might be an exception. At fifteen she was the queen
            of the country-side; she had no peer; and she did turn out a haughty, headstrong
            creature! I own I did not like her, after infancy was past; and I vexed her frequently
            by trying to bring down her arrogance: she never took an aversion to me, though. She had
            a wondrous constancy to old attachments: even Heathcliff kept his hold on her affections
            unalterably; and young Linton, with all his superiority, found it difficult to make an
            equally deep impression. He was my late master: that is his portrait over the fireplace.
            It used to hang on one side, and his wife’s on the other; but hers has been removed, or
            else you might see something of what she was. Can you make that out? Mrs. Dean raised
            the candle, and I discerned a soft-featured face, exceedingly resembling the young lady
            at the Heights, but more pensive and amiable in expression. It formed a sweet picture.
            The long light hair curled slightly on the temples; the eyes were large and serious; the
            figure almost too graceful. I did not marvel how Catherine Earnshaw could forget her
            first friend for such an individual. I marvelled much how he, with a mind to correspond
            with his person, could fancy my idea of Catherine Earnshaw. “A very agreeable portrait,”
            I observed to the house-keeper. </p>
         <p> “Is it like?” “Yes,” she answered; “but he looked better when he was animated; that is
            his everyday countenance: he wanted spirit in general.” Catherine had kept up her
            acquaintance with the Lintons since her five-weeks’ residence among them; and as she had
            no temptation to show her rough side in their company, and had the sense to be ashamed
            of being rude where she experienced such invariable courtesy, she imposed unwittingly on
            the old lady and gentleman by her ingenious cordiality; gained the admiration of
            Isabella, and the heart and soul of her brother: acquisitions that flattered her from
            the first—for she was full of ambition—and led her to adopt a double character without
            exactly intending to deceive any one. In the place where she heard Heathcliff termed a
            “vulgar young ruffian,” and “worse than a brute,” she took care not to act like him; but
            at home she had small inclination to practise politeness that would only be laughed at,
            and restrain an unruly nature when it would bring her neither credit nor praise. Mr.
            Edgar seldom mustered courage to visit Wuthering Heights openly. He had a terror of
            Earnshaw’s reputation, and shrunk from encountering him; and yet he was always received
            with our best attempts at civility: the master himself avoided offending him, knowing
            why he came; and if he could not be gracious, kept out of the way. I rather think his
            appearance there was distasteful to Catherine; she was not artful, never played the
            coquette, and had evidently an objection to her two friends meeting at all; for when
            Heathcliff expressed contempt of Linton in his presence, she could not half coincide, as
            she did in his absence; and when Linton evinced disgust and antipathy to Heathcliff, she
            dared not treat his sentiments with indifference, as if depreciation of her playmate
            were of scarcely any consequence to her. I’ve had many a laugh at her perplexities and
            untold troubles, which she vainly strove to hide from my mockery. That sounds
            ill-natured: but she was so proud, it became really impossible to pity her distresses,
            till she should be chastened into more humility. </p>
         <p> She did bring herself, finally, to confess, and to confide in me: there was not a soul
            else that she might fashion into an adviser. Mr. Hindley had gone from home one
            afternoon, and Heathcliff presumed to give himself a holiday on the strength of it. He
            had reached the age of sixteen then, I think, and without having bad features, or being
            deficient in intellect, he contrived to convey an impression of inward and outward
            repulsiveness that his present aspect retains no traces of. In the first place, he had
            by that time lost the benefit of his early education: continual hard work, begun soon
            and concluded late, had extinguished any curiosity he once possessed in pursuit of
            knowledge, and any love for books or learning. His childhood’s sense of superiority,
            instilled into him by the favours of old Mr. Earnshaw, was faded away. He struggled long
            to keep up an equality with Catherine in her studies, and yielded with poignant though
            silent regret: but he yielded completely; and there was no prevailing on him to take a
            step in the way of moving upward, when he found he must, necessarily, sink beneath his
            former level. Then personal appearance sympathised with mental deterioration: he
            acquired a slouching gait and ignoble look; his naturally reserved disposition was
            exaggerated into an almost idiotic excess of unsociable moroseness; and he took a grim
            pleasure, apparently, in exciting the aversion rather than the esteem of his few
            acquaintance. Catherine and he were constant companions still at his seasons of respite
            from labour; but he had ceased to express his fondness for her in words, and recoiled
            with angry suspicion from her girlish caresses, as if conscious there could be no
            gratification in lavishing such marks of affection on him. On the before-named occasion
            he came into the house to announce his intention of doing nothing, while I was assisting
            Miss Cathy to arrange her dress: she had not reckoned on his taking it into his head to
            be idle; and imagining she would have the whole place to herself, she managed, by some
            means, to inform Mr. Edgar of her brother’s absence, and was then preparing to receive
            him. </p>
         <p> “Cathy, are you busy this afternoon?” asked Heathcliff. “Are you going anywhere?” “No,
            it is raining,” she answered. “Why have you that silk frock on, then?” he said. “Nobody
            coming here, I hope?” “Not that I know of,” stammered Miss: “but you should be in the
            field now, Heathcliff. It is an hour past dinner time; I thought you were gone.”
            “Hindley does not often free us from his accursed presence,” observed the boy. “I’ll not
            work any more to-day: I’ll stay with you.” “Oh, but Joseph will tell,” she suggested;
            “you’d better go!” “Joseph is loading lime on the further side of Penistone Crags; it
            will take him till dark, and he’ll never know.” So saying, he lounged to the fire, and
            sat down. Catherine reflected an instant, with knitted brows—she found it needful to
            smooth the way for an intrusion. “Isabella and Edgar Linton talked of calling this
            afternoon,” she said, at the conclusion of a minute’s silence. “As it rains, I hardly
            expect them; but they may come, and if they do, you run the risk of being scolded for no
            good.” “Order Ellen to say you are engaged, Cathy,” he persisted; “don’t turn me out for
            those pitiful, silly friends of yours! I’m on the point, sometimes, of complaining that
            they—but I’ll not—” “That they what?” cried Catherine, gazing at him with a troubled
            countenance. </p>
         <p> “Oh, Nelly!” she added petulantly, jerking her head away from my hands, “you’ve combed
            my hair quite out of curl! That’s enough; let me alone. What are you on the point of
            complaining about, Heathcliff?” “Nothing—only look at the almanack on that wall;” he
            pointed to a framed sheet hanging near the window, and continued, “The crosses are for
            the evenings you have spent with the Lintons, the dots for those spent with me. Do you
            see? I’ve marked every day.” “Yes—very foolish: as if I took notice!” replied Catherine,
            in a peevish tone. “And where is the sense of that?” “To show that I do take notice,”
            said Heathcliff. “And should I always be sitting with you?” she demanded, growing more
            irritated. “What good do I get? What do you talk about? You might be dumb, or a baby,
            for anything you say to amuse me, or for anything you do, either!” “You never told me
            before that I talked too little, or that you disliked my company, Cathy!” exclaimed
            Heathcliff, in much agitation. “It’s no company at all, when people know nothing and say
            nothing,” she muttered. Her companion rose up, but he hadn’t time to express his
            feelings further, for a horse’s feet were heard on the flags, and having knocked gently,
            young Linton entered, his face brilliant with delight at the unexpected summons he had
            received. Doubtless Catherine marked the difference between her friends, as one came in
            and the other went out. The contrast resembled what you see in exchanging a bleak,
            hilly, coal country for a beautiful fertile valley; and his voice and greeting were as
            opposite as his aspect. He had a sweet, low manner of speaking, and pronounced his words
            as you do: that’s less gruff than we talk here, and softer. “I’m not come too soon, am
            I?” he said, casting a look at me: I had begun to wipe the plate, and tidy some drawers
            at the far end in the dresser. </p>
         <p> “No,” answered Catherine. “What are you doing there, Nelly?” “My work, Miss,” I
            replied. (Mr. Hindley had given me directions to make a third party in any private
            visits Linton chose to pay.) She stepped behind me and whispered crossly, “Take yourself
            and your dusters off; when company are in the house, servants don’t commence scouring
            and cleaning in the room where they are!” “It’s a good opportunity, now that master is
            away,” I answered aloud: “he hates me to be fidgeting over these things in his presence.
            I’m sure Mr. Edgar will excuse me.” “I hate you to be fidgeting in my presence,”
            exclaimed the young lady imperiously, not allowing her guest time to speak: she had
            failed to recover her equanimity since the little dispute with Heathcliff. “I’m sorry
            for it, Miss Catherine,” was my response; and I proceeded assiduously with my
            occupation. She, supposing Edgar could not see her, snatched the cloth from my hand, and
            pinched me, with a prolonged wrench, very spitefully on the arm. I’ve said I did not
            love her, and rather relished mortifying her vanity now and then: besides, she hurt me
            extremely; so I started up from my knees, and screamed out, “Oh, Miss, that’s a nasty
            trick! You have no right to nip me, and I’m not going to bear it.”</p>
         <p> “I didn’t touch you, you lying creature!” cried she, her fingers tingling to repeat the
            act, and her ears red with rage. She never had power to conceal her passion, it always
            set her whole complexion in a blaze. “What’s that, then?” I retorted, showing a decided
            purple witness to refute her. She stamped her foot, wavered a moment, and then,
            irresistibly impelled by the naughty spirit within her, slapped me on the cheek: a
            stinging blow that filled both eyes with water. “Catherine, love! Catherine!” interposed
            Linton, greatly shocked at the double fault of falsehood and violence which his idol had
            committed. “Leave the room, Ellen!” she repeated, trembling all over. Little Hareton,
            who followed me everywhere, and was sitting near me on the floor, at seeing my tears
            commenced crying himself, and sobbed out complaints against “wicked aunt Cathy,” which
            drew her fury on to his unlucky head: she seized his shoulders, and shook him till the
            poor child waxed livid, and Edgar thoughtlessly laid hold of her hands to deliver
            him.</p>
         <p> In an instant one was wrung free, and the astonished young man felt it applied over his
            own ear in a way that could not be mistaken for jest. He drew back in consternation. I
            lifted Hareton in my arms, and walked off to the kitchen with him, leaving the door of
            communication open, for I was curious to watch how they would settle their disagreement.
            The insulted visitor moved to the spot where he had laid his hat, pale and with a
            quivering lip. “That’s right!” I said to myself. “Take warning and begone! It’s a
            kindness to let you have a glimpse of her genuine disposition.” “Where are you going?”
            demanded Catherine, advancing to the door. He swerved aside, and attempted to pass. “You
            must not go!” she exclaimed, energetically. “I must and shall!” he replied in a subdued
            voice. “No,” she persisted, grasping the handle; “not yet, Edgar Linton: sit down; you
            shall not leave me in that temper. I should be miserable all night, and I won’t be
            miserable for you!” </p>
         <p> “Can I stay after you have struck me?” asked Linton. Catherine was mute. “You’ve made
            me afraid and ashamed of you,” he continued; “I’ll not come here again!” Her eyes began
            to glisten and her lids to twinkle. “And you told a deliberate untruth!” he said. “I
            didn’t!” she cried, recovering her speech; “I did nothing deliberately. Well, go, if you
            please—get away! And now I’ll cry—I’ll cry myself sick!” She dropped down on her knees
            by a chair, and set to weeping in serious earnest. Edgar persevered in his resolution as
            far as the court; there he lingered. I resolved to encourage him. </p>
         <p> “Miss is dreadfully wayward, sir,” I called out. “As bad as any marred child: you’d
            better be riding home, or else she will be sick, only to grieve us.” The soft thing
            looked askance through the window: he possessed the power to depart as much as a cat
            possesses the power to leave a mouse half killed, or a bird half eaten. Ah, I thought,
            there will be no saving him: he’s doomed, and flies to his fate! And so it was: he
            turned abruptly, hastened into the house again, shut the door behind him; and when I
            went in a while after to inform them that Earnshaw had come home rabid drunk, ready to
            pull the whole place about our ears (his ordinary frame of mind in that condition), I
            saw the quarrel had merely effected a closer intimacy—had broken the outworks of
            youthful timidity, and enabled them to forsake the disguise of friendship, and confess
            themselves lovers. Intelligence of Mr. Hindley’s arrival drove Linton speedily to his
            horse, and Catherine to her chamber. I went to hide little Hareton, and to take the shot
            out of the master’s fowling-piece, which he was fond of playing with in his insane
            excitement, to the hazard of the lives of any who provoked, or even attracted his notice
            too much; and I had hit upon the plan of removing it, that he might do less mischief if
            he did go the length of firing the gun. </p>
         <p>Chapter 9</p>
         <p>He entered, vociferating oaths dreadful to hear; and caught me in the act of stowing his
            son away in the kitchen cupboard. Hareton was impressed with a wholesome terror of
            encountering either his wild beast’s fondness or his madman’s rage; for in one he ran a
            chance of being squeezed and kissed to death, and in the other of being flung into the
            fire, or dashed against the wall; and the poor thing remained perfectly quiet wherever I
            chose to put him. “There, I’ve found it out at last!” cried Hindley, pulling me back by
            the skin of my neck, like a dog. “By heaven and hell, you’ve sworn between you to murder
            that child! I know how it is, now, that he is always out of my way. But, with the help
            of Satan, I shall make you swallow the carving-knife, Nelly! You needn’t laugh; for I’ve
            just crammed Kenneth, head-downmost, in the Black-horse marsh; and two is the same as
            one—and I want to kill some of you: I shall have no rest till I do!” “But I don’t like
            the carving-knife, Mr. Hindley,” I answered; “it has been cutting red herrings. I’d
            rather be shot, if you please.” </p>
         <p> “You’d rather be damned!” he said; “and so you shall. No law in England can hinder a
            man from keeping his house decent, and mine’s abominable! Open your mouth.” He held the
            knife in his hand, and pushed its point between my teeth: but, for my part, I was never
            much afraid of his vagaries. I spat out, and affirmed it tasted detestably—I would not
            take it on any account. “Oh!” said he, releasing me, “I see that hideous little villain
            is not Hareton: I beg your pardon, Nell. If it be, he deserves flaying alive for not
            running to welcome me, and for screaming as if I were a goblin. Unnatural cub, come
            hither! I’ll teach thee to impose on a good-hearted, deluded father. Now, don’t you
            think the lad would be handsomer cropped? It makes a dog fiercer, and I love something
            fierce—get me a scissors—something fierce and trim! Besides, it’s infernal
            affectation—devilish conceit it is, to cherish our ears—we’re asses enough without them.
            Hush, child, hush! Well then, it is my darling! wisht, dry thy eyes—there’s a joy; kiss
            me. What! it won’t? Kiss me, Hareton! Damn thee, kiss me! By God, as if I would rear
            such a monster! As sure as I’m living, I’ll break the brat’s neck.” </p>
         <p> Poor Hareton was squalling and kicking in his father’s arms with all his might, and
            redoubled his yells when he carried him upstairs and lifted him over the banister. I
            cried out that he would frighten the child into fits, and ran to rescue him. As I
            reached them, Hindley leant forward on the rails to listen to a noise below; almost
            forgetting what he had in his hands. “Who is that?” he asked, hearing some one
            approaching the stairs’-foot. I leant forward also, for the purpose of signing to
            Heathcliff, whose step I recognised, not to come further; and, at the instant when my
            eye quitted Hareton, he gave a sudden spring, delivered himself from the careless grasp
            that held him, and fell. There was scarcely time to experience a thrill of horror before
            we saw that the little wretch was safe. Heathcliff arrived underneath just at the
            critical moment; by a natural impulse he arrested his descent, and setting him on his
            feet, looked up to discover the author of the accident. A miser who has parted with a
            lucky lottery ticket for five shillings, and finds next day he has lost in the bargain
            five thousand pounds, could not show a blanker countenance than he did on beholding the
            figure of Mr. Earnshaw above. It expressed, plainer than words could do, the intensest
            anguish at having made himself the instrument of thwarting his own revenge. Had it been
            dark, I daresay he would have tried to remedy the mistake by smashing Hareton’s skull on
            the steps; but, we witnessed his salvation; and I was presently below with my precious
            charge pressed to my heart. Hindley descended more leisurely, sobered and abashed. “It
            is your fault, Ellen,” he said; “you should have kept him out of sight: you should have
            taken him from me! Is he injured anywhere?” </p>
         <p> “Injured!” I cried angrily; “if he is not killed, he’ll be an idiot! Oh! I wonder his
            mother does not rise from her grave to see how you use him. You’re worse than a
            heathen—treating your own flesh and blood in that manner!” He attempted to touch the
            child, who, on finding himself with me, sobbed off his terror directly. At the first
            finger his father laid on him, however, he shrieked again louder than before, and
            struggled as if he would go into convulsions. “You shall not meddle with him!” I
            continued. “He hates you—they all hate you—that’s the truth! A happy family you have;
            and a pretty state you’re come to!” “I shall come to a prettier, yet, Nelly,” laughed
            the misguided man, recovering his hardness. “At present, convey yourself and him away.
            And hark you, Heathcliff! clear you too quite from my reach and hearing. I wouldn’t
            murder you to-night; unless, perhaps, I set the house on fire: but that’s as my fancy
            goes.” While saying this he took a pint bottle of brandy from the dresser, and poured
            some into a tumbler. “Nay, don’t!” I entreated. “Mr. Hindley, do take warning. Have
            mercy on this unfortunate boy, if you care nothing for yourself!” “Any one will do
            better for him than I shall,” he answered. “Have mercy on your own soul!” I said,
            endeavouring to snatch the glass from his hand. “Not I! On the contrary, I shall have
            great pleasure in sending it to perdition to punish its Maker,” exclaimed the
            blasphemer. “Here’s to its hearty damnation!” He drank the spirits and impatiently bade
            us go; terminating his command with a sequel of horrid imprecations too bad to repeat or
            remember. “It’s a pity he cannot kill himself with drink,” observed Heathcliff,
            muttering an echo of curses back when the door was shut. </p>
         <p> “He’s doing his very utmost; but his constitution defies him. Mr. Kenneth says he would
            wager his mare that he’ll outlive any man on this side Gimmerton, and go to the grave a
            hoary sinner; unless some happy chance out of the common course befall him.” I went into
            the kitchen, and sat down to lull my little lamb to sleep. Heathcliff, as I thought,
            walked through to the barn. It turned out afterwards that he only got as far as the
            other side the settle, when he flung himself on a bench by the wall, removed from the
            fire, and remained silent. I was rocking Hareton on my knee, and humming a song that
            began,— It was far in the night, and the bairnies grat, The mither beneath the mools
            heard that, when Miss Cathy, who had listened to the hubbub from her room, put her head
            in, and whispered,—“Are you alone, Nelly?” “Yes, Miss,” I replied. She entered and
            approached the hearth. I, supposing she was going to say something, looked up. The
            expression of her face seemed disturbed and anxious. Her lips were half asunder, as if
            she meant to speak, and she drew a breath; but it escaped in a sigh instead of a
            sentence. I resumed my song; not having forgotten her recent behaviour. “Where’s
            Heathcliff?” she said, interrupting me. “About his work in the stable,” was my answer.
            He did not contradict me; perhaps he had fallen into a doze. There followed another long
            pause, during which I perceived a drop or two trickle from Catherine’s cheek to the
            flags. Is she sorry for her shameful conduct?—I asked myself. That will be a novelty:
            but she may come to the point as she will—I sha’n’t help her! No, she felt small trouble
            regarding any subject, save her own concerns. “Oh, dear!” she cried at last. “I’m very
            unhappy!” “A pity,” observed I. “You’re hard to please; so many friends and so few
            cares, and can’t make yourself content!” “Nelly, will you keep a secret for me?” she
            pursued, kneeling down by me, and lifting her winsome eyes to my face with that sort of
            look which turns off bad temper, even when one has all the right in the world to indulge
            it. “Is it worth keeping?” I inquired, less sulkily. “Yes, and it worries me, and I must
            let it out! I want to know what I should do. To-day, Edgar Linton has asked me to marry
            him, and I’ve given him an answer. Now, before I tell you whether it was a consent or
            denial, you tell me which it ought to have been.” “Really, Miss Catherine, how can I
            know?” I replied. “To be sure, considering the exhibition you performed in his presence
            this afternoon, I might say it would be wise to refuse him: since he asked you after
            that, he must either be hopelessly stupid or a venturesome fool.” </p>
         <p> “If you talk so, I won’t tell you any more,” she returned, peevishly rising to her
            feet. “I accepted him, Nelly. Be quick, and say whether I was wrong!” “You accepted him!
            Then what good is it discussing the matter? You have pledged your word, and cannot
            retract.” “But say whether I should have done so—do!” she exclaimed in an irritated
            tone; chafing her hands together, and frowning. “There are many things to be considered
            before that question can be answered properly,” I said, sententiously. “First and
            foremost, do you love Mr. Edgar?” “Who can help it? Of course I do,” she answered. Then
            I put her through the following catechism: for a girl of twenty-two it was not
            injudicious. “Why do you love him, Miss Cathy?” “Nonsense, I do—that’s sufficient.” “By
            no means; you must say why?” “Well, because he is handsome, and pleasant to be with.”
            “Bad!” was my commentary. “And because he is young and cheerful.” “Bad, still.” “And
            because he loves me.” “Indifferent, coming there.” “And he will be rich, and I shall
            like to be the greatest woman of the neighbourhood, and I shall be proud of having such
            a husband.” </p>
         <p> “Worst of all. And now, say how you love him?” </p>
         <p> “As everybody loves—You’re silly, Nelly.” </p>
         <p> “Not at all—Answer.” “I love the ground under his feet, and the air over his head, and
            everything he touches, and every word he says. I love all his looks, and all his
            actions, and him entirely and altogether. There now!” “And why?” “Nay; you are making a
            jest of it: it is exceedingly ill-natured! It’s no jest to me!” said the young lady,
            scowling, and turning her face to the fire. “I’m very far from jesting, Miss Catherine,”
            I replied. “You love Mr. Edgar because he is handsome, and young, and cheerful, and
            rich, and loves you. The last, however, goes for nothing: you would love him without
            that, probably; and with it you wouldn’t, unless he possessed the four former
            attractions.” “No, to be sure not: I should only pity him—hate him, perhaps, if he were
            ugly, and a clown.” “But there are several other handsome, rich young men in the world:
            handsomer, possibly, and richer than he is. What should hinder you from loving them?” </p>
         <p> “If there be any, they are out of my way: I’ve seen none like Edgar.” “You may see
            some; and he won’t always be handsome, and young, and may not always be rich.” “He is
            now; and I have only to do with the present. I wish you would speak rationally.” “Well,
            that settles it: if you have only to do with the present, marry Mr. Linton.” “I don’t
            want your permission for that—I shall marry him: and yet you have not told me whether
            I’m right.” “Perfectly right; if people be right to marry only for the present. And now,
            let us hear what you are unhappy about. Your brother will be pleased; the old lady and
            gentleman will not object, I think; you will escape from a disorderly, comfortless home
            into a wealthy, respectable one; and you love Edgar, and Edgar loves you. All seems
            smooth and easy: where is the obstacle?” “Here! and here!” replied Catherine, striking
            one hand on her forehead, and the other on her breast: “in whichever place the soul
            lives. In my soul and in my heart, I’m convinced I’m wrong!” “That’s very strange! I
            cannot make it out.” “It’s my secret. But if you will not mock at me, I’ll explain it: I
            can’t do it distinctly; but I’ll give you a feeling of how I feel.” She seated herself
            by me again: her countenance grew sadder and graver, and her clasped hands trembled. </p>
         <p> “Nelly, do you never dream queer dreams?” she said, suddenly, after some minutes’
            reflection. “Yes, now and then,” I answered. “And so do I. I’ve dreamt in my life dreams
            that have stayed with me ever after, and changed my ideas: they’ve gone through and
            through me, like wine through water, and altered the colour of my mind. And this is one:
            I’m going to tell it—but take care not to smile at any part of it.” “Oh! don’t, Miss
            Catherine!” I cried. “We’re dismal enough without conjuring up ghosts and visions to
            perplex us. Come, come, be merry and like yourself! Look at little Hareton! he’s
            dreaming nothing dreary. How sweetly he smiles in his sleep!” “Yes; and how sweetly his
            father curses in his solitude! You remember him, I daresay, when he was just such
            another as that chubby thing: nearly as young and innocent. However, Nelly, I shall
            oblige you to listen: it’s not long; and I’ve no power to be merry to-night.” “I won’t
            hear it, I won’t hear it!” I repeated, hastily. I was superstitious about dreams then,
            and am still; and Catherine had an unusual gloom in her aspect, that made me dread
            something from which I might shape a prophecy, and foresee a fearful catastrophe. She
            was vexed, but she did not proceed. Apparently taking up another subject, she
            recommenced in a short time. “If I were in heaven, Nelly, I should be extremely
            miserable.” “Because you are not fit to go there,” I answered. “All sinners would be
            miserable in heaven.” “But it is not for that. I dreamt once that I was there.” “I tell
            you I won’t hearken to your dreams, Miss Catherine! I’ll go to bed,” I interrupted
            again. She laughed, and held me down; for I made a motion to leave my chair. “This is
            nothing,” cried she: “I was only going to say that heaven did not seem to be my home;
            and I broke my heart with weeping to come back to earth; and the angels were so angry
            that they flung me out into the middle of the heath on the top of Wuthering Heights;
            where I woke sobbing for joy. </p>
         <p> That will do to explain my secret, as well as the other. I’ve no more business to marry
            Edgar Linton than I have to be in heaven; and if the wicked man in there had not brought
            Heathcliff so low, I shouldn’t have thought of it. It would <tc:racedesc type="implied"
               >degrade me</tc:racedesc> to marry Heathcliff now; so he shall never know how I love
            him: and that, not because he’s handsome, Nelly, but because he’s more myself than I am.
            Whatever our souls are made of, his and mine are the same; and Linton’s is as different
            as a moonbeam from lightning, or frost from fire.” Ere this speech ended I became
            sensible of Heathcliff’s presence. Having noticed a slight movement, I turned my head,
            and saw him rise from the bench, and steal out noiselessly. He had listened till he
            heard Catherine say it would <tc:racedesc type="implied">degrade her</tc:racedesc> to
            marry him, and then he stayed to hear no further. My companion, sitting on the ground,
            was prevented by the back of the settle from remarking his presence or departure; but I
            started, and bade her hush! “Why?” she asked, gazing nervously round. “Joseph is here,”
            I answered, catching opportunely the roll of his cartwheels up the road; “and Heathcliff
            will come in with him. I’m not sure whether he were not at the door this moment.” </p>
         <p> “Oh, he couldn’t overhear me at the door!” said she. “Give me Hareton, while you get
            the supper, and when it is ready ask me to sup with you. I want to cheat my
            uncomfortable conscience, and be convinced that Heathcliff has no notion of these
            things. He has not, has he? He does not know what being in love is!” “I see no reason
            that he should not know, as well as you,” I returned; “and if you are his choice, he’ll
            be the most unfortunate creature that ever was born! As soon as you become Mrs. Linton,
            he loses friend, and love, and all! Have you considered how you’ll bear the separation,
            and how he’ll bear to be quite deserted in the world? Because, Miss Catherine—” “He
            quite deserted! we separated!” she exclaimed, with an accent of indignation. “Who is to
            separate us, pray? They’ll meet the fate of Milo! Not as long as I live, Ellen: for no
            mortal creature. Every Linton on the face of the earth might melt into nothing before I
            could consent to forsake Heathcliff. Oh, that’s not what I intend—that’s not what I
            mean! I shouldn’t be Mrs. Linton were such a price demanded! He’ll be as much to me as
            he has been all his lifetime. Edgar must shake off his antipathy, and tolerate him, at
            least. He will, when he learns my true feelings towards him. Nelly, I see now you think
            me a selfish wretch; but did it never strike you that if Heathcliff and I married, we
            should be beggars? whereas, if I marry Linton I can aid Heathcliff to rise, and place
            him out of my brother’s power.” “With your husband’s money, Miss Catherine?” I asked.
            “You’ll find him not so pliable as you calculate upon: and, though I’m hardly a judge, I
            think that’s the worst motive you’ve given yet for being the wife of young Linton.” </p>
         <p> “It is not,” retorted she; “it is the best! The others were the satisfaction of my
            whims: and for Edgar’s sake, too, to satisfy him. This is for the sake of one who
            comprehends in his person my feelings to Edgar and myself. I cannot express it; but
            surely you and everybody have a notion that there is or should be an existence of yours
            beyond you. What were the use of my creation, if I were entirely contained here? My
            great miseries in this world have been Heathcliff’s miseries, and I watched and felt
            each from the beginning: my great thought in living is himself. If all else perished,
            and he remained, I should still continue to be; and if all else remained, and he were
            annihilated, the universe would turn to a mighty stranger: I should not seem a part of
            it. My love for Linton is like the foliage in the woods: time will change it, I’m well
            aware, as winter changes the trees. My love for Heathcliff resembles the eternal rocks
            beneath: a source of little visible delight, but necessary. Nelly, I am Heathcliff! He’s
            always, always in my mind: not as a pleasure, any more than I am always a pleasure to
            myself, but as my own being. So don’t talk of our separation again: it is impracticable;
            and—” She paused, and hid her face in the folds of my gown; but I jerked it forcibly
            away. I was out of patience with her folly! “If I can make any sense of your nonsense,
            Miss,” I said, “it only goes to convince me that you are ignorant of the duties you
            undertake in marrying; or else that you are a wicked, unprincipled girl. But trouble me
            with no more secrets: I’ll not promise to keep them.” “You’ll keep that?” she asked,
            eagerly. </p>
         <p> “No, I’ll not promise,” I repeated. She was about to insist, when the entrance of
            Joseph finished our conversation; and Catherine removed her seat to a corner, and nursed
            Hareton, while I made the supper. After it was cooked, my fellow-servant and I began to
            quarrel who should carry some to Mr. Hindley; and we didn’t settle it till all was
            nearly cold. Then we came to the agreement that we would let him ask, if he wanted any;
            for we feared particularly to go into his presence when he had been some time alone.
            “And how isn’t that nowt comed in fro’ th’ field, be this time? What is he about? girt
            idle seeght!” demanded the old man, looking round for Heathcliff. “I’ll call him,” I
            replied. “He’s in the barn, I’ve no doubt.” I went and called, but got no answer. On
            returning, I whispered to Catherine that he had heard a good part of what she said, I
            was sure; and told how I saw him quit the kitchen just as she complained of her
            brother’s conduct regarding him. She jumped up in a fine fright, flung Hareton on to the
            settle, and ran to seek for her friend herself; not taking leisure to consider why she
            was so flurried, or how her talk would have affected him. She was absent such a while
            that Joseph proposed we should wait no longer. He cunningly conjectured they were
            staying away in order to avoid hearing his protracted blessing. They were “ill eneugh
            for ony fahl manners,” he affirmed. And on their behalf he added that night a special
            prayer to the usual quarter-of-an-hour’s supplication before meat, and would have tacked
            another to the end of the grace, had not his young mistress broken in upon him with a
            hurried command that he must run down the road, and, wherever Heathcliff had rambled,
            find and make him re-enter directly!</p>
         <p> “I want to speak to him, and I must, before I go upstairs,” she said. “And the gate is
            open: he is somewhere out of hearing; for he would not reply, though I shouted at the
            top of the fold as loud as I could.” Joseph objected at first; she was too much in
            earnest, however, to suffer contradiction; and at last he placed his hat on his head,
            and walked grumbling forth. Meantime, Catherine paced up and down the floor,
            exclaiming—“I wonder where he is—I wonder where he can be! What did I say, Nelly? I’ve
            forgotten. Was he vexed at my bad humour this afternoon? Dear! tell me what I’ve said to
            grieve him? I do wish he’d come. I do wish he would!” “What a noise for nothing!” I
            cried, though rather uneasy myself. “What a trifle scares you! It’s surely no great
            cause of alarm that Heathcliff should take a moonlight saunter on the moors, or even lie
            too sulky to speak to us in the hay-loft. I’ll engage he’s lurking there. See if I don’t
            ferret him out!” I departed to renew my search; its result was disappointment, and
            Joseph’s quest ended in the same. “Yon lad gets war und war!” observed he on
            re-entering. “He’s left th’ gate at t’ full swing, and Miss’s pony has trodden dahn two
            rigs o’ corn, and plottered through, raight o’er into t’ meadow! Hahsomdiver, t’ maister
            ’ull play t’ devil to-morn, and he’ll do weel. He’s patience itsseln wi’ sich careless,
            offald craters—patience itsseln he is! Bud he’ll not be soa allus—yah’s see, all on ye!
            Yah mun’n’t drive him out of his heead for nowt!” </p>
         <p> “Have you found Heathcliff, you ass?” interrupted Catherine. “Have you been looking for
            him, as I ordered?” “I sud more likker look for th’ horse,” he replied. “It ’ud be to
            more sense. Bud I can look for norther horse nur man of a neeght loike this—as black as
            t’ chimbley! und Heathcliff’s noan t’ chap to coom at my whistle—happen he’ll be less
            hard o’ hearing wi’ ye!” It was a very dark evening for summer: the clouds appeared
            inclined to thunder, and I said we had better all sit down; the approaching rain would
            be certain to bring him home without further trouble. However, Catherine would not be
            persuaded into tranquillity. She kept wandering to and fro, from the gate to the door,
            in a state of agitation which permitted no repose; and at length took up a permanent
            situation on one side of the wall, near the road: where, heedless of my expostulations
            and the growling thunder, and the great drops that began to plash around her, she
            remained, calling at intervals, and then listening, and then crying outright. She beat
            Hareton, or any child, at a good passionate fit of crying. About midnight, while we
            still sat up, the storm came rattling over the Heights in full fury. There was a violent
            wind, as well as thunder, and either one or the other split a tree off at the corner of
            the building: a huge bough fell across the roof, and knocked down a portion of the east
            chimney-stack, sending a clatter of stones and soot into the kitchen-fire. We thought a
            bolt had fallen in the middle of us; and Joseph swung on to his knees, beseeching the
            Lord to remember the patriarchs Noah and Lot, and, as in former times, spare the
            righteous, though he smote the ungodly. I felt some sentiment that it must be a judgment
            on us also. </p>
         <p> The Jonah, in my mind, was Mr. Earnshaw; and I shook the handle of his den that I might
            ascertain if he were yet living. He replied audibly enough, in a fashion which made my
            companion vociferate, more clamorously than before, that a wide distinction might be
            drawn between saints like himself and sinners like his master. But the uproar passed
            away in twenty minutes, leaving us all unharmed; excepting Cathy, who got thoroughly
            drenched for her obstinacy in refusing to take shelter, and standing bonnetless and
            shawlless to catch as much water as she could with her hair and clothes. She came in and
            lay down on the settle, all soaked as she was, turning her face to the back, and putting
            her hands before it. “Well, Miss!” I exclaimed, touching her shoulder; “you are not bent
            on getting your death, are you? Do you know what o’clock it is? Half-past twelve. Come,
            come to bed! there’s no use waiting any longer on that foolish boy: he’ll be gone to
            Gimmerton, and he’ll stay there now. He guesses we shouldn’t wait for him till this late
            hour: at least, he guesses that only Mr. Hindley would be up; and he’d rather avoid
            having the door opened by the master.” </p>
         <p> “Nay, nay, he’s noan at Gimmerton,” said Joseph. “I’s niver wonder but he’s at t’
            bothom of a bog-hoile. This visitation worn’t for nowt, and I wod hev’ ye to look out,
            Miss—yah muh be t’ next. Thank Hivin for all! All warks togither for gooid to them as is
            chozzen, and piked out fro’ th’ rubbidge! Yah knaw whet t’ Scripture ses.” And he began
            quoting several texts, referring us to chapters and verses where we might find them. I,
            having vainly begged the wilful girl to rise and remove her wet things, left him
            preaching and her shivering, and betook myself to bed with little Hareton, who slept as
            fast as if everyone had been sleeping round him. I heard Joseph read on a while
            afterwards; then I distinguished his slow step on the ladder, and then I dropped asleep.
            Coming down somewhat later than usual, I saw, by the sunbeams piercing the chinks of the
            shutters, Miss Catherine still seated near the fireplace. The house-door was ajar, too;
            light entered from its unclosed windows; Hindley had come out, and stood on the kitchen
            hearth, haggard and drowsy. “What ails you, Cathy?” he was saying when I entered: “you
            look as dismal as a drowned whelp. Why are you so damp and pale, child?” “I’ve been
            wet,” she answered reluctantly, “and I’m cold, that’s all.” “Oh, she is naughty!” I
            cried, perceiving the master to be tolerably sober. “She got steeped in the shower of
            yesterday evening, and there she has sat the night through, and I couldn’t prevail on
            her to stir.” Mr. Earnshaw stared at us in surprise. “The night through,” he repeated.
            “What kept her up? not fear of the thunder, surely? That was over hours since.” Neither
            of us wished to mention Heathcliff’s absence, as long as we could conceal it; so I
            replied, I didn’t know how she took it into her head to sit up; and she said nothing.
            The morning was fresh and cool; I threw back the lattice, and presently the room filled
            with sweet scents from the garden; but Catherine called peevishly to me, “Ellen, shut
            the window. I’m starving!” And her teeth chattered as she shrank closer to the almost
            extinguished embers. “She’s ill,” said Hindley, taking her wrist; “I suppose that’s the
            reason she would not go to bed. Damn it! I don’t want to be troubled with more sickness
            here. What took you into the rain?” “Running after t’ lads, as usuald!” croaked Joseph,
            catching an opportunity from our hesitation to thrust in his evil tongue. “If I war yah,
            maister, I’d just slam t’ boards i’ their faces all on ’em, gentle and simple! Never a
            day ut yah’re off, but yon cat o’ Linton comes sneaking hither; and Miss Nelly, shoo’s a
            fine lass! shoo sits watching for ye i’ t’ kitchen; and as yah’re in at one door, he’s
            out at t’other; and, then, wer grand lady goes a-courting of her side! It’s bonny
            behaviour, lurking amang t’ fields, after twelve o’ t’ night, wi’ that fahl,
               <tc:racedesc type="explicit">flaysome divil of a gipsy</tc:racedesc>, Heathcliff!
            They think I’m blind; but I’m noan: nowt ut t’ soart!—I seed young Linton boath coming
            and going, and I seed yah” (directing his discourse to me), “yah gooid fur nowt,
            slattenly witch! nip up and bolt into th’ house, t’ minute yah heard t’ maister’s
            horse-fit clatter up t’ road.” </p>
         <p> “Silence, eavesdropper!” cried Catherine; “none of your insolence before me! Edgar
            Linton came yesterday by chance, Hindley; and it was I who told him to be off: because I
            knew you would not like to have met him as you were.” “You lie, Cathy, no doubt,”
            answered her brother, “and you are a confounded simpleton! But never mind Linton at
            present: tell me, were you not with Heathcliff last night? Speak the truth, now. You
            need not be afraid of harming him: though I hate him as much as ever, he did me a good
            turn a short time since that will make my conscience tender of breaking his neck. To
            prevent it, I shall send him about his business this very morning; and after he’s gone,
            I’d advise you all to look sharp: I shall only have the more humour for you.” “I never
            saw Heathcliff last night,” answered Catherine, beginning to sob bitterly: “and if you
            do turn him out of doors, I’ll go with him. But, perhaps, you’ll never have an
            opportunity: perhaps, he’s gone.” Here she burst into uncontrollable grief, and the
            remainder of her words were inarticulate. Hindley lavished on her a torrent of scornful
            abuse, and bade her get to her room immediately, or she shouldn’t cry for nothing! I
            obliged her to obey; and I shall never forget what a scene she acted when we reached her
            chamber: it terrified me. I thought she was going mad, and I begged Joseph to run for
            the doctor. It proved the commencement of delirium: Mr. Kenneth, as soon as he saw her,
            pronounced her dangerously ill; she had a fever. He bled her, and he told me to let her
            live on whey and water-gruel, and take care she did not throw herself downstairs or out
            of the window; and then he left: for he had enough to do in the parish, where two or
            three miles was the ordinary distance between cottage and cottage. Though I cannot say I
            made a gentle nurse, and Joseph and the master were no better, and though our patient
            was as wearisome and headstrong as a patient could be, she weathered it through. Old
            Mrs. Linton paid us several visits, to be sure, and set things to rights, and scolded
            and ordered us all; and when Catherine was convalescent, she insisted on conveying her
            to Thrushcross Grange: for which deliverance we were very grateful. But the poor dame
            had reason to repent of her kindness: she and her husband both took the fever, and died
            within a few days of each other. </p>
         <p> Our young lady returned to us saucier and more passionate, and haughtier than ever.
            Heathcliff had never been heard of since the evening of the thunder-storm; and, one day,
            I had the misfortune, when she had provoked me exceedingly, to lay the blame of his
            disappearance on her: where indeed it belonged, as she well knew. From that period, for
            several months, she ceased to hold any communication with me, save in the relation of a
            mere servant. Joseph fell under a ban also: he would speak his mind, and lecture her all
            the same as if she were a little girl; and she esteemed herself a woman, and our
            mistress, and thought that her recent illness gave her a claim to be treated with
            consideration. Then the doctor had said that she would not bear crossing much; she ought
            to have her own way; and it was nothing less than murder in her eyes for any one to
            presume to stand up and contradict her. From Mr. Earnshaw and his companions she kept
            aloof; and tutored by Kenneth, and serious threats of a fit that often attended her
            rages, her brother allowed her whatever she pleased to demand, and generally avoided
            aggravating her fiery temper. He was rather too indulgent in humouring her caprices; not
            from affection, but from pride: he wished earnestly to see her bring honour to the
            family by an alliance with the Lintons, and as long as she let him alone she might
            trample on us like slaves, for aught he cared! Edgar Linton, as multitudes have been
            before and will be after him, was infatuated: and believed himself the happiest man
            alive on the day he led her to Gimmerton Chapel, three years subsequent to his father’s
            death. Much against my inclination, I was persuaded to leave Wuthering Heights and
            accompany her here. Little Hareton was nearly five years old, and I had just begun to
            teach him his letters. We made a sad parting; but Catherine’s tears were more powerful
            than ours. When I refused to go, and when she found her entreaties did not move me, she
            went lamenting to her husband and brother. The former offered me munificent wages; the
            latter ordered me to pack up: he wanted no women in the house, he said, now that there
            was no mistress; and as to Hareton, the curate should take him in hand, by-and-by. And
            so I had but one choice left: to do as I was ordered. I told the master he got rid of
            all decent people only to run to ruin a little faster; I kissed Hareton, said good-by;
            and since then he has been a stranger: and it’s very queer to think it, but I’ve no
            doubt he has completely forgotten all about Ellen Dean, and that he was ever more than
            all the world to her and she to him! * * * * * </p>
         <p> At this point of the housekeeper’s story she chanced to glance towards the time-piece
            over the chimney; and was in amazement on seeing the minute-hand measure half-past one.
            She would not hear of staying a second longer: in truth, I felt rather disposed to defer
            the sequel of her narrative myself. And now that she is vanished to her rest, and I have
            meditated for another hour or two, I shall summon courage to go also, in spite of aching
            laziness of head and limbs. </p>
         <p>Chapter 10</p>
         <p> A charming introduction to a hermit’s life! Four weeks’ torture, tossing, and sickness!
            Oh, these bleak winds and bitter northern skies, and impassable roads, and dilatory
            country surgeons! And oh, this dearth of the human physiognomy! and, worse than all, the
            terrible intimation of Kenneth that I need not expect to be out of doors till spring!
            Mr. Heathcliff has just honoured me with a call. About seven days ago he sent me a brace
            of grouse—the last of the season. Scoundrel! He is not altogether guiltless in this
            illness of mine; and that I had a great mind to tell him. But, alas! how could I offend
            a man who was charitable enough to sit at my bedside a good hour, and talk on some other
            subject than pills and draughts, blisters and leeches? This is quite an easy interval. I
            am too weak to read; yet I feel as if I could enjoy something interesting. Why not have
            up Mrs. Dean to finish her tale? I can recollect its chief incidents, as far as she had
            gone. Yes: I remember her hero had run off, and never been heard of for three years; and
            the heroine was married. I’ll ring: she’ll be delighted to find me capable of talking
            cheerfully. Mrs. Dean came. </p>
         <p> “It wants twenty minutes, sir, to taking the medicine,” she commenced. “Away, away with
            it!” I replied; “I desire to have—” “The doctor says you must drop the powders.” “With
            all my heart! Don’t interrupt me. Come and take your seat here. Keep your fingers from
            that bitter phalanx of vials. Draw your knitting out of your pocket—that will do—now
            continue the history of Mr. Heathcliff, from where you left off, to the present day. Did
            he finish his education on the Continent, and <tc:racedesc type="implied">come back a
               gentleman</tc:racedesc> ? or did he get a sizar’s place at college, or escape to
            America, and earn honours by drawing blood from <tc:racedesc type="implied">his
               foster-country</tc:racedesc> ? or make a fortune more promptly on the English
            highways?” “He may have done a little in all these vocations, Mr. Lockwood; but I
            couldn’t give my word for any. I stated before that I didn’t know how he gained his
            money; neither am I aware of the means he took to raise his mind from the <tc:racedesc
               type="explicit"> savage ignorance</tc:racedesc> into which it was sunk: but, with
            your leave, I’ll proceed in my own fashion, if you think it will amuse and not weary
            you. Are you feeling better this morning?” “Much.” “That’s good news.” * * * * * </p>
         <p> I got Miss Catherine and myself to Thrushcross Grange; and, to my agreeable
            disappointment, she behaved infinitely better than I dared to expect. She seemed almost
            over-fond of Mr. Linton; and even to his sister she showed plenty of affection. They
            were both very attentive to her comfort, certainly. It was not the thorn bending to the
            honeysuckles, but the honeysuckles embracing the thorn. There were no mutual
            concessions: one stood erect, and the others yielded: and who can be ill-natured and
            bad-tempered when they encounter neither opposition nor indifference? I observed that
            Mr. Edgar had a deep-rooted fear of ruffling her humour. He concealed it from her; but
            if ever he heard me answer sharply, or saw any other servant grow cloudy at some
            imperious order of hers, he would show his trouble by a frown of displeasure that never
            darkened on his own account. He many a time spoke sternly to me about my pertness; and
            averred that the stab of a knife could not inflict a worse pang than he suffered at
            seeing his lady vexed. Not to grieve a kind master, I learned to be less touchy; and,
            for the space of half a year, the gunpowder lay as harmless as sand, because no fire
            came near to explode it. Catherine had seasons of gloom and silence now and then: they
            were respected with sympathising silence by her husband, who ascribed them to an
            alteration in her constitution, produced by her perilous illness; as she was never
            subject to depression of spirits before. The return of sunshine was welcomed by
            answering sunshine from him. I believe I may assert that they were really in possession
            of deep and growing happiness. It ended. Well, we must be for ourselves in the long run;
            the mild and generous are only more justly selfish than the domineering; and it ended
            when circumstances caused each to feel that the one’s interest was not the chief
            consideration in the other’s thoughts. On a mellow evening in September, I was coming
            from the garden with a heavy basket of apples which I had been gathering. It had got
            dusk, and the moon looked over the high wall of the court, causing undefined shadows to
            lurk in the corners of the numerous projecting portions of the building. I set my burden
            on the house-steps by the kitchen-door, and lingered to rest, and drew in a few more
            breaths of the soft, sweet air; my eyes were on the moon, and my back to the entrance,
            when I heard a voice behind me say,—“Nelly, is that you?” </p>
         <p> It was a deep voice, and foreign in tone; yet there was something in the manner of
            pronouncing my name which made it sound familiar. I turned about to discover who spoke,
            fearfully; for the doors were shut, and I had seen nobody on approaching the steps.
            Something stirred in the porch; and, moving nearer, I distinguished a tall man dressed
            in dark clothes, with <tc:racedesc type="implied">dark face</tc:racedesc> and hair. He
            leant against the side, and held his fingers on the latch as if intending to open for
            himself. “Who can it be?” I thought. “Mr. Earnshaw? Oh, no! The voice has no resemblance
            to his.” “I have waited here an hour,” he resumed, while I continued staring; “and the
            whole of that time all round has been as still as death. I dared not enter. You do not
            know me? Look, I’m not a stranger!” A ray fell on his features; the cheeks were sallow,
            and half covered with black whiskers; the brows lowering, the eyes deep-set and
            singular. I remembered the eyes. “What!” I cried, uncertain whether to regard him as a
            worldly visitor, and I raised my hands in amazement. “What! you come back? Is it really
            you? Is it?” </p>
         <p> “Yes, Heathcliff,” he replied, glancing from me up to the windows, which reflected a
            score of glittering moons, but showed no lights from within. “Are they at home? where is
            she? Nelly, you are not glad! you needn’t be so disturbed. Is she here? Speak! I want to
            have one word with her—your mistress. Go, and say some person from Gimmerton desires to
            see her.” “How will she take it?” I exclaimed. “What will she do? The surprise bewilders
            me—it will put her out of her head! And you are Heathcliff! But altered! Nay, there’s no
            comprehending it. Have you been for a soldier?” “Go and carry my message,” he
            interrupted, impatiently. “I’m in hell till you do!” He lifted the latch, and I entered;
            but when I got to the parlour where Mr. and Mrs. Linton were, I could not persuade
            myself to proceed. At length I resolved on making an excuse to ask if they would have
            the candles lighted, and I opened the door. They sat together in a window whose lattice
            lay back against the wall, and displayed, beyond the garden trees, and the wild green
            park, the valley of Gimmerton, with a long line of mist winding nearly to its top (for
            very soon after you pass the chapel, as you may have noticed, the sough that runs from
            the marshes joins a beck which follows the bend of the glen). Wuthering Heights rose
            above this silvery vapour; but our old house was invisible; it rather dips down on the
            other side. Both the room and its occupants, and the scene they gazed on, looked
            wondrously peaceful. I shrank reluctantly from performing my errand; and was actually
            going away leaving it unsaid, after having put my question about the candles, when a
            sense of my folly compelled me to return, and mutter, “A person from Gimmerton wishes to
            see you ma’am.” “What does he want?” asked Mrs. Linton. </p>
         <p> “I did not question him,” I answered. “Well, close the curtains, Nelly,” she said; “and
            bring up tea. I’ll be back again directly.” She quitted the apartment; Mr. Edgar
            inquired, carelessly, who it was. “Some one mistress does not expect,” I replied. “That
            Heathcliff—you recollect him, sir—who used to live at Mr. Earnshaw’s.” “What!
               <tc:racedesc type="explicit">the gipsy</tc:racedesc>— <tc:racedesc type="implied">the
               ploughboy</tc:racedesc>?” he cried. “Why did you not say so to Catherine?” “Hush! you
            must not call him by those names, master,” I said. “She’d be sadly grieved to hear you.
            She was nearly heartbroken when he ran off. I guess his return will make a jubilee to
            her.” Mr. Linton walked to a window on the other side of the room that overlooked the
            court. He unfastened it, and leant out. I suppose they were below, for he exclaimed
            quickly: “Don’t stand there, love! Bring the person in, if it be anyone particular.” Ere
            long, I heard the click of the latch, and Catherine flew upstairs, breathless and wild;
            too excited to show gladness: indeed, by her face, you would rather have surmised an
            awful calamity. “Oh, Edgar, Edgar!” she panted, flinging her arms round his neck. “Oh,
            Edgar darling! Heathcliff’s come back—he is!” And she tightened her embrace to a
            squeeze. </p>
         <p> “Well, well,” cried her husband, crossly, “don’t strangle me for that! He never struck
            me as such a marvellous treasure. There is no need to be frantic!” “I know you didn’t
            like him,” she answered, repressing a little the intensity of her delight. “Yet, for my
            sake, you must be friends now. Shall I tell him to come up?” “Here,” he said, “into the
            parlour?” “Where else?” she asked. He looked vexed, and suggested the kitchen as a more
            suitable place for him. Mrs. Linton eyed him with a droll expression—half angry, half
            laughing at his fastidiousness. “No,” she added, after a while; “I cannot sit in the
            kitchen. Set two tables here, Ellen: one for your master and Miss Isabella, being
            gentry; the other for Heathcliff and myself, being of the lower orders. Will that please
            you, dear? Or must I have a fire lighted elsewhere? If so, give directions. I’ll run
            down and secure my guest. I’m afraid the joy is too great to be real!” She was about to
            dart off again; but Edgar arrested her. “You bid him step up,” he said, addressing me;
            “and, Catherine, try to be glad, without being absurd. The whole household need not
            witness the sight of your welcoming a <tc:racedesc type="implied">runaway servant as a
               brother</tc:racedesc> .” I descended, and found Heathcliff waiting under the porch,
            evidently anticipating an invitation to enter. He followed my guidance without waste of
            words, and I ushered him into the presence of the master and mistress, whose flushed
            cheeks betrayed signs of warm talking. But the lady’s glowed with another feeling when
            her friend appeared at the door: she sprang forward, took both his hands, and led him to
            Linton; and then she seized Linton’s reluctant fingers and crushed them into his. Now,
            fully revealed by the fire and candlelight, I was amazed, more than ever, to behold the
            transformation of Heathcliff. He had grown a tall, athletic, well-formed man; beside
            whom my master seemed quite slender and youth-like. His upright carriage suggested the
            idea of his having been in the army. His countenance was much older in expression and
            decision of feature than Mr. Linton’s; it looked intelligent, and retained no marks of
               <tc:racedesc type="explicit">former degradation</tc:racedesc>. <tc:racedesc
               type="explicit">A half-civilised ferocity lurked yet in the depressed brows and eyes
               full of black fire</tc:racedesc> , but it was subdued; and his manner was even
            dignified: quite divested of roughness, though <tc:racedesc type="implied">too stern for
               grace</tc:racedesc>. </p>
         <p> My master’s surprise equalled or exceeded mine: he remained for a minute at a loss how
            to address the ploughboy, as he had called him. Heathcliff dropped his slight hand, and
            stood looking at him coolly till he chose to speak. “Sit down, sir,” he said, at length.
            “Mrs. Linton, recalling old times, would have me give you a cordial reception; and, of
            course, I am gratified when anything occurs to please her.” “And I also,” answered
            Heathcliff, “especially if it be anything in which I have a part. I shall stay an hour
            or two willingly.” He took a seat opposite Catherine, who kept her gaze fixed on him as
            if she feared he would vanish were she to remove it. He did not raise his to her often:
            a quick glance now and then sufficed; but it flashed back, each time more confidently,
            the undisguised delight he drank from hers. They were too much absorbed in their mutual
            joy to suffer embarrassment. Not so Mr. Edgar: he grew pale with pure annoyance: a
            feeling that reached its climax when his lady rose, and stepping across the rug, seized
            Heathcliff’s hands again, and laughed like one beside herself. “I shall think it a dream
            to-morrow!” she cried. “I shall not be able to believe that I have seen, and touched,
            and spoken to you once more. And yet, cruel Heathcliff! you don’t deserve this welcome.
            To be absent and silent for three years, and never to think of me!” “A little more than
            you have thought of me,” he murmured. “I heard of your marriage, Cathy, not long since;
            and, while waiting in the yard below, I meditated this plan—just to have one glimpse of
            your face, a stare of surprise, perhaps, and pretended pleasure; afterwards settle my
            score with Hindley; and then prevent the law by doing execution on myself. Your welcome
            has put these ideas out of my mind; but beware of meeting me with another aspect next
            time! Nay, you’ll not drive me off again. You were really sorry for me, were you? Well,
            there was cause. I’ve fought through a bitter life since I last heard your voice; and
            you must forgive me, for I struggled only for you!” </p>
         <p> “Catherine, unless we are to have cold tea, please to come to the table,” interrupted
            Linton, striving to preserve his ordinary tone, and a due measure of politeness. “Mr.
            Heathcliff will have a long walk, wherever he may lodge to-night; and I’m thirsty.” She
            took her post before the urn; and Miss Isabella came, summoned by the bell; then, having
            handed their chairs forward, I left the room. The meal hardly endured ten minutes.
            Catherine’s cup was never filled: she could neither eat nor drink. Edgar had made a slop
            in his saucer, and scarcely swallowed a mouthful. Their guest did not protract his stay
            that evening above an hour longer. I asked, as he departed, if he went to Gimmerton?
            “No, to Wuthering Heights,” he answered: “Mr. Earnshaw invited me, when I called this
            morning.” Mr. Earnshaw invited him! and he called on Mr. Earnshaw! I pondered this
            sentence painfully, after he was gone. Is he turning out a bit of a hypocrite, and
            coming into the country to work mischief under a cloak? I mused: I had a presentiment in
            the bottom of my heart that he had better have remained away. About the middle of the
            night, I was wakened from my first nap by Mrs. Linton gliding into my chamber, taking a
            seat on my bedside, and pulling me by the hair to rouse me. “I cannot rest, Ellen,” she
            said, by way of apology. “And I want some living creature to keep me company in my
            happiness! Edgar is sulky, because I’m glad of a thing that does not interest him: he
            refuses to open his mouth, except to utter pettish, silly speeches; and he affirmed I
            was cruel and selfish for wishing to talk when he was so sick and sleepy. He always
            contrives to be sick at the least cross! I gave a few sentences of commendation to
            Heathcliff, and he, either for a headache or a pang of envy, began to cry: so I got up
            and left him.” “What use is it praising Heathcliff to him?” I answered. “As lads they
            had an aversion to each other, and Heathcliff would hate just as much to hear him
            praised: it’s human nature. Let Mr. Linton alone about him, unless you would like an
            open quarrel between them.” “But does it not show great weakness?” pursued she. “I’m not
            envious: I never feel hurt at the brightness of Isabella’s yellow hair and the whiteness
            of her skin, at her dainty elegance, and the fondness all the family exhibit for her.
            Even you, Nelly, if we have a dispute sometimes, you back Isabella at once; and I yield
            like a foolish mother: I call her a darling, and flatter her into a good temper. It
            pleases her brother to see us cordial, and that pleases me. But they are very much
            alike: they are spoiled children, and fancy the world was made for their accommodation;
            and though I humour both, I think a smart chastisement might improve them all the same.” </p>
         <p> “You’re mistaken, Mrs. Linton,” said I. “They humour you: I know what there would be to
            do if they did not. You can well afford to indulge their passing whims as long as their
            business is to anticipate all your desires. You may, however, fall out, at last, over
            something of equal consequence to both sides; and then those you term weak are very
            capable of being as obstinate as you.” “And then we shall fight to the death, sha’n’t
            we, Nelly?” she returned, laughing. “No! I tell you, I have such faith in Linton’s love,
            that I believe I might kill him, and he wouldn’t wish to retaliate.” I advised her to
            value him the more for his affection. “I do,” she answered, “but he needn’t resort to
            whining for trifles. It is childish; and, instead of melting into tears because I said
            that Heathcliff was now worthy of anyone’s regard, and it would honour the first
            gentleman in the country to be his friend, he ought to have said it for me, and been
            delighted from sympathy. He must get accustomed to him, and he may as well like him:
            considering how Heathcliff has reason to object to him, I’m sure he behaved
            excellently!” “What do you think of his going to Wuthering Heights?” I inquired. “He is
            reformed in every respect, apparently: quite a Christian: offering the right hand of
            fellowship to his enemies all around!” “He explained it,” she replied. “I wonder as much
            as you. He said he called to gather information concerning me from you, supposing you
            resided there still; and Joseph told Hindley, who came out and fell to questioning him
            of what he had been doing, and how he had been living; and finally, desired him to walk
            in. There were some persons sitting at cards; Heathcliff joined them; my brother lost
            some money to him, and, finding him plentifully supplied, he requested that he would
            come again in the evening: to which he consented. Hindley is too reckless to select his
            acquaintance prudently: he doesn’t trouble himself to reflect on the causes he might
            have for mistrusting one whom he has basely injured. But Heathcliff affirms his
            principal reason for resuming a connection with his ancient persecutor is a wish to
            install himself in quarters at walking distance from the Grange, and an attachment to
            the house where we lived together; and likewise a hope that I shall have more
            opportunities of seeing him there than I could have if he settled in Gimmerton. He means
            to offer liberal payment for permission to lodge at the Heights; and doubtless my
            brother’s covetousness will prompt him to accept the terms: he was always greedy; though
            what he grasps with one hand he flings away with the other.” “It’s a nice place for a
            young man to fix his dwelling in!” said I. “Have you no fear of the consequences, Mrs.
            Linton?” </p>
         <p> “None for my friend,” she replied: “his strong head will keep him from danger; a little
            for Hindley: but he can’t be made morally worse than he is; and I stand between him and
            bodily harm. The event of this evening has reconciled me to God and humanity! I had
            risen in angry rebellion against Providence. Oh, I’ve endured very, very bitter misery,
            Nelly! If that creature knew how bitter, he’d be ashamed to cloud its removal with idle
            petulance. It was kindness for him which induced me to bear it alone: had I expressed
            the agony I frequently felt, he would have been taught to long for its alleviation as
            ardently as I. However, it’s over, and I’ll take no revenge on his folly; I can afford
            to suffer anything hereafter! Should the meanest thing alive slap me on the cheek, I’d
            not only turn the other, but I’d ask pardon for provoking it; and, as a proof, I’ll go
            make my peace with Edgar instantly. Good-night! I’m an angel!” In this self-complacent
            conviction she departed; and the success of her fulfilled resolution was obvious on the
            morrow: Mr. Linton had not only abjured his peevishness (though his spirits seemed still
            subdued by Catherine’s exuberance of vivacity), but he ventured no objection to her
            taking Isabella with her to Wuthering Heights in the afternoon; and she rewarded him
            with such a summer of sweetness and affection in return as made the house a paradise for
            several days; both master and servants profiting from the perpetual sunshine.
            Heathcliff—Mr. Heathcliff I should say in future—used the liberty of visiting at
            Thrushcross Grange cautiously, at first: he seemed estimating how far its owner would
            bear his intrusion. Catherine, also, deemed it judicious to moderate her expressions of
            pleasure in receiving him; and he gradually established his right to be expected. He
            retained a great deal of the reserve for which his boyhood was remarkable; and that
            served to repress all startling demonstrations of feeling. My master’s uneasiness
            experienced a lull, and further circumstances diverted it into another channel for a
            space. His new source of trouble sprang from the not anticipated misfortune of Isabella
            Linton evincing a sudden and irresistible attraction towards the tolerated guest. She
            was at that time a charming young lady of eighteen; infantile in manners, though
            possessed of keen wit, keen feelings, and a keen temper, too, if irritated. Her brother,
            who loved her tenderly, was appalled at this fantastic preference. Leaving aside the
            degradation of an alliance with a nameless man, and the possible fact that his property,
            in default of heirs male, might pass into such a one’s power, he had sense to comprehend
            Heathcliff’s disposition: to know that, though his exterior was altered, his mind was
            unchangeable and unchanged. And he dreaded that mind: it revolted him: he shrank
            forebodingly from the idea of committing Isabella to its keeping. He would have recoiled
            still more had he been aware that her attachment rose unsolicited, and was bestowed
            where it awakened no reciprocation of sentiment; for the minute he discovered its
            existence he laid the blame on Heathcliff’s deliberate designing. </p>
         <p> We had all remarked, during some time, that Miss Linton fretted and pined over
            something. She grew cross and wearisome; snapping at and teasing Catherine continually,
            at the imminent risk of exhausting her limited patience. We excused her, to a certain
            extent, on the plea of ill-health: she was dwindling and fading before our eyes. But one
            day, when she had been peculiarly wayward, rejecting her breakfast, complaining that the
            servants did not do what she told them; that the mistress would allow her to be nothing
            in the house, and Edgar neglected her; that she had caught a cold with the doors being
            left open, and we let the parlour fire go out on purpose to vex her, with a hundred yet
            more frivolous accusations, Mrs. Linton peremptorily insisted that she should get to
            bed; and, having scolded her heartily, threatened to send for the doctor. Mention of
            Kenneth caused her to exclaim, instantly, that her health was perfect, and it was only
            Catherine’s harshness which made her unhappy. “How can you say I am harsh, you naughty
            fondling?” cried the mistress, amazed at the unreasonable assertion. “You are surely
            losing your reason. When have I been harsh, tell me?” “Yesterday,” sobbed Isabella, “and
            now!” “Yesterday!” said her sister-in-law. “On what occasion?” “In our walk along the
            moor: you told me to ramble where I pleased, while you sauntered on with Mr.
            Heathcliff!” “And that’s your notion of harshness?” said Catherine, laughing. “It was no
            hint that your company was superfluous; we didn’t care whether you kept with us or not;
            I merely thought Heathcliff’s talk would have nothing entertaining for your ears.” “Oh,
            no,” wept the young lady; “you wished me away, because you knew I liked to be there!”
            “Is she sane?” asked Mrs. Linton, appealing to me. “I’ll repeat our conversation, word
            for word, Isabella; and you point out any charm it could have had for you.” “I don’t
            mind the conversation,” she answered: “I wanted to be with—” “Well?” said Catherine,
            perceiving her hesitate to complete the sentence. “With him: and I won’t be always sent
            off!” she continued, kindling up. “You are a dog in the manger, Cathy, and desire no one
            to be loved but yourself!” “You are an impertinent little monkey!” exclaimed Mrs.
            Linton, in surprise. “But I’ll not believe this idiocy! It is impossible that you can
            covet the admiration of Heathcliff—that you consider him an agreeable person! I hope I
            have misunderstood you, Isabella?” “No, you have not,” said the infatuated girl. “I love
            him more than ever you loved Edgar, and he might love me, if you would let him!” “I
            wouldn’t be you for a kingdom, then!” Catherine declared, emphatically: and she seemed
            to speak sincerely. </p>
         <p> “Nelly, help me to convince her of her madness. Tell her what Heathcliff is:
               <tc:racedesc type="explicit">an unreclaimed creature, without refinement, without
               cultivation; an arid wilderness of furze and whinstone</tc:racedesc>. I’d as soon put
            that little canary into the park on a winter’s day, as recommend you to bestow your
            heart on him! It is deplorable ignorance of his character, child, and nothing else,
            which makes that dream enter your head. Pray, don’t imagine that he conceals depths of
            benevolence and affection beneath a stern exterior! He’s not a rough diamond—a
            pearl-containing oyster of a rustic: he’s a fierce, pitiless, wolfish man. I never say
            to him, ‘Let this or that enemy alone, because it would be ungenerous or cruel to harm
            them;’ I say, ‘Let them alone, because I should hate them to be wronged:’ and he’d crush
            you like a sparrow’s egg, Isabella, if he found you a troublesome charge. I know he
            couldn’t love a Linton; and yet he’d be quite capable of marrying your fortune and
            expectations: avarice is growing with him a besetting sin. There’s my picture: and I’m
            his friend—so much so, that had he thought seriously to catch you, I should, perhaps,
            have held my tongue, and let you fall into his trap.” Miss Linton regarded her
            sister-in-law with indignation. “For shame! for shame!” she repeated, angrily. “You are
            worse than twenty foes, you poisonous friend!” “Ah! you won’t believe me, then?” said
            Catherine. “You think I speak from wicked selfishness?” “I’m certain you do,” retorted
            Isabella; “and I shudder at you!” “Good!” cried the other. “Try for yourself, if that be
            your spirit: I have done, and yield the argument to your saucy insolence.”— “And I must
            suffer for her egotism!” she sobbed, as Mrs. Linton left the room. “All, all is against
            me: she has blighted my single consolation. But she uttered falsehoods, didn’t she? Mr.
            Heathcliff is not a fiend: he has an honourable soul, and a true one, or how could he
            remember her?” “Banish him from your thoughts, Miss,” I said. “He’s a bird of bad omen:
            no mate for you. Mrs. Linton spoke strongly, and yet I can’t contradict her. She is
            better acquainted with his heart than I, or any one besides; and she never would
            represent him as worse than he is. Honest people don’t hide their deeds. How has he been
            living? how has he got rich? why is he staying at Wuthering Heights, the house of a man
            whom he abhors? They say Mr. Earnshaw is worse and worse since he came. They sit up all
            night together continually, and Hindley has been borrowing money on his land, and does
            nothing but play and drink: I heard only a week ago—it was Joseph who told me—I met him
            at Gimmerton: ‘Nelly,’ he said, ‘we’s hae a crowner’s ’quest enow, at ahr folks’. One on
            ’em ’s a’most getten his finger cut off wi’ hauding t’ other fro’ stickin’ hisseln loike
            a cawlf. That’s maister, yah knaw, ’at ’s soa up o’ going tuh t’ grand ’sizes. He’s noan
            feared o’ t’ bench o’ judges, norther Paul, nur Peter, nur John, nur Matthew, nor noan
            on ’em, not he! He fair likes—he langs to set his brazened face agean ’em! And yon bonny
            lad Heathcliff, yah mind, he’s a rare ’un. He can girn a laugh as well ’s onybody at a
            raight divil’s jest. Does he niver say nowt of his fine living amang us, when he goes to
            t’ Grange? This is t’ way on ’t:—up at sun-down: dice, brandy, cloised shutters, und
            can’le-light till next day at noon: then, t’ fooil gangs banning un raving to his
            cham’er, makking dacent fowks dig thur fingers i’ thur lugs fur varry shame; un’ the
            knave, why he can caint his brass, un’ ate, un’ sleep, un’ off to his neighbour’s to
            gossip wi’ t’ wife. I’ course, he tells Dame Catherine how her fathur’s goold runs into
            his pocket, and her fathur’s son gallops down t’ broad road, while he flees afore to
            oppen t’ pikes!’ Now, Miss Linton, Joseph is an old rascal, but no liar; and, if his
            account of Heathcliff’s conduct be true, you would never think of desiring such a
            husband, would you?” “You are leagued with the rest, Ellen!” she replied. </p>
         <p> “I’ll not listen to your slanders. What malevolence you must have to wish to convince
            me that there is no happiness in the world!” Whether she would have got over this fancy
            if left to herself, or persevered in nursing it perpetually, I cannot say: she had
            little time to reflect. The day after, there was a justice-meeting at the next town; my
            master was obliged to attend; and Mr. Heathcliff, aware of his absence, called rather
            earlier than usual. Catherine and Isabella were sitting in the library, on hostile
            terms, but silent: the latter alarmed at her recent indiscretion, and the disclosure she
            had made of her secret feelings in a transient fit of passion; the former, on mature
            consideration, really offended with her companion; and, if she laughed again at her
            pertness, inclined to make it no laughing matter to her. She did laugh as she saw
            Heathcliff pass the window. I was sweeping the hearth, and I noticed a mischievous smile
            on her lips. Isabella, absorbed in her meditations, or a book, remained till the door
            opened; and it was too late to attempt an escape, which she would gladly have done had
            it been practicable. “Come in, that’s right!” exclaimed the mistress, gaily, pulling a
            chair to the fire. “Here are two people sadly in need of a third to thaw the ice between
            them; and you are the very one we should both of us choose. Heathcliff, I’m proud to
            show you, at last, somebody that dotes on you more than myself. I expect you to feel
            flattered. Nay, it’s not Nelly; don’t look at her! My poor little sister-in-law is
            breaking her heart by mere contemplation of your physical and moral beauty. It lies in
            your own power to be Edgar’s brother! No, no, Isabella, you sha’n’t run off,” she
            continued, arresting, with feigned playfulness, the confounded girl, who had risen
            indignantly. </p>
         <p> “We were quarrelling like cats about you, Heathcliff; and I was fairly beaten in
            protestations of devotion and admiration: and, moreover, I was informed that if I would
            but have the manners to stand aside, my rival, as she will have herself to be, would
            shoot a shaft into your soul that would fix you for ever, and send my image into eternal
            oblivion!” “Catherine!” said Isabella, calling up her dignity, and disdaining to
            struggle from the tight grasp that held her, “I’d thank you to adhere to the truth and
            not slander me, even in joke! Mr. Heathcliff, be kind enough to bid this friend of yours
            release me: she forgets that you and I are not intimate acquaintances; and what amuses
            her is painful to me beyond expression.” As the guest answered nothing, but took his
            seat, and looked thoroughly indifferent what sentiments she cherished concerning him,
            she turned and whispered an earnest appeal for liberty to her tormentor. “By no means!”
            cried Mrs. Linton in answer. “I won’t be named a dog in the manger again. You shall
            stay: now then! Heathcliff, why don’t you evince satisfaction at my pleasant news?
            Isabella swears that the love Edgar has for me is nothing to that she entertains for
            you. I’m sure she made some speech of the kind; did she not, Ellen? And she has fasted
            ever since the day before yesterday’s walk, from sorrow and rage that I despatched her
            out of your society under the idea of its being unacceptable.” “I think you belie her,”
            said Heathcliff, twisting his chair to face them. “She wishes to be out of my society
            now, at any rate!” And he stared hard at the object of discourse, as one might do at a
            strange repulsive animal: a centipede from the Indies, for instance, which curiosity
            leads one to examine in spite of the aversion it raises. The poor thing couldn’t bear
            that; she grew white and red in rapid succession, and, while tears beaded her lashes,
            bent the strength of her small fingers to loosen the firm clutch of Catherine; and
            perceiving that as fast as she raised one finger off her arm another closed down, and
            she could not remove the whole together, she began to make use of her nails; and their
            sharpness presently ornamented the detainer’s with crescents of red. “There’s a
            tigress!” exclaimed Mrs. Linton, setting her free, and shaking her hand with pain. </p>
         <p> “Begone, for God’s sake, and hide your vixen face! How foolish to reveal those talons
            to him. Can’t you fancy the conclusions he’ll draw? Look, Heathcliff! they are
            instruments that will do execution—you must beware of your eyes.” “I’d wrench them off
            her fingers, if they ever menaced me,” he answered, brutally, when the door had closed
            after her. “But what did you mean by teasing the creature in that manner, Cathy? You
            were not speaking the truth, were you?” “I assure you I was,” she returned. “She has
            been dying for your sake several weeks, and raving about you this morning, and pouring
            forth a deluge of abuse, because I represented your failings in a plain light, for the
            purpose of mitigating her adoration. But don’t notice it further: I wished to punish her
            sauciness, that’s all. I like her too well, my dear Heathcliff, to let you absolutely
            seize and devour her up.” “And I like her too ill to attempt it,” said he, “except in a
            very ghoulish fashion. You’d hear of odd things if I lived alone with that mawkish,
            waxen face: the most ordinary would be painting on its white the colours of the rainbow,
            and turning the blue eyes black, every day or two: they detestably resemble Linton’s.”
            “Delectably!” observed Catherine. “They are dove’s eyes—angel’s!” “She’s her brother’s
            heir, is she not?” he asked, after a brief silence. “I should be sorry to think so,”
            returned his companion. “Half a dozen nephews shall erase her title, please heaven!
            Abstract your mind from the subject at present: you are too prone to covet your
            neighbour’s goods; remember this neighbour’s goods are mine.” “If they were mine, they
            would be none the less that,” said Heathcliff; “but though Isabella Linton may be silly,
            she is scarcely mad; and, in short, we’ll dismiss the matter, as you advise.” From their
            tongues they did dismiss it; and Catherine, probably, from her thoughts. The other, I
            felt certain, recalled it often in the course of the evening. I saw him smile to
            himself—grin rather—and lapse into ominous musing whenever Mrs. Linton had occasion to
            be absent from the apartment. I determined to watch his movements. </p>
         <p> My heart invariably cleaved to the master’s, in preference to Catherine’s side: with
            reason I imagined, for he was kind, and trustful, and honourable; and she—she could not
            be called the opposite, yet she seemed to allow herself such wide latitude, that I had
            little faith in her principles, and still less sympathy for her feelings. I wanted
            something to happen which might have the effect of freeing both Wuthering Heights and
            the Grange of Mr. Heathcliff, quietly; leaving us as we had been prior to his advent.
            His visits were a continual nightmare to me; and, I suspected, to my master also. His
            abode at the Heights was an oppression past explaining. I felt that God had forsaken the
            stray sheep there to its own wicked wanderings, and an evil beast prowled between it and
            the fold, waiting his time to spring and destroy. </p>
         <p>Chapter 11</p>
         <p> Sometimes, while meditating on these things in solitude, I’ve got up in a sudden
            terror, and put on my bonnet to go see how all was at the farm. I’ve persuaded my
            conscience that it was a duty to warn him how people talked regarding his ways; and then
            I’ve recollected his confirmed bad habits, and, hopeless of benefiting him, have
            flinched from re-entering the dismal house, doubting if I could bear to be taken at my
            word. One time I passed the old gate, going out of my way, on a journey to Gimmerton. It
            was about the period that my narrative has reached: a bright frosty afternoon; the
            ground bare, and the road hard and dry. I came to a stone where the highway branches off
            on to the moor at your left hand; a rough sand-pillar, with the letters W. H. cut on its
            north side, on the east, G., and on the south-west, T. G. It serves as a guide-post to
            the Grange, the Heights, and village. The sun shone yellow on its grey head, reminding
            me of summer; and I cannot say why, but all at once a gush of child’s sensations flowed
            into my heart. Hindley and I held it a favourite spot twenty years before. I gazed long
            at the weather-worn block; and, stooping down, perceived a hole near the bottom still
            full of snail-shells and pebbles, which we were fond of storing there with more
            perishable things; and, as fresh as reality, it appeared that I beheld my early playmate
            seated on the withered turf: his dark, square head bent forward, and his little hand
            scooping out the earth with a piece of slate. “Poor Hindley!” I exclaimed,
            involuntarily. I started: my bodily eye was cheated into a momentary belief that the
            child lifted its face and stared straight into mine! It vanished in a twinkling; but
            immediately I felt an irresistible yearning to be at the Heights. Superstition urged me
            to comply with this impulse: supposing he should be dead!</p>
         <p>  I thought—or should die
            soon!—supposing it were a sign of death! The nearer I got to the house the more agitated
            I grew; and on catching sight of it I trembled in every limb. The apparition had
            outstripped me: it stood looking through the gate. That was my first idea on observing
            an elf-locked, brown-eyed boy setting his ruddy countenance against the bars. Further
            reflection suggested this must be Hareton, my Hareton, not altered greatly since I left
            him, ten months since. “God bless thee, darling!” I cried, forgetting instantaneously my
            foolish fears. “Hareton, it’s Nelly! Nelly, thy nurse.” He retreated out of arm’s
            length, and picked up a large flint. “I am come to see thy father, Hareton,” I added,
            guessing from the action that Nelly, if she lived in his memory at all, was not
            recognised as one with me. He raised his missile to hurl it; I commenced a soothing
            speech, but could not stay his hand: the stone struck my bonnet; and then ensued, from
            the stammering lips of the little fellow, a string of curses, which, whether he
            comprehended them or not, were delivered with practised emphasis, and distorted his baby
            features into a shocking expression of malignity. You may be certain this grieved more
            than angered me. Fit to cry, I took an orange from my pocket, and offered it to
            propitiate him. He hesitated, and then snatched it from my hold; as if he fancied I only
            intended to tempt and disappoint him. I showed another, keeping it out of his reach.
            “Who has taught you those fine words, my bairn?” I inquired. “The curate?” “Damn the
            curate, and thee! Gie me that,” he replied. “Tell us where you got your lessons, and you
            shall have it,” said I. “Who’s your master?” </p>
         <p>  “Devil daddy,” was his answer. “And what do
            you learn from daddy?” I continued. He jumped at the fruit; I raised it higher. “What
            does he teach you?” I asked. “Naught,” said he, “but to keep out of his gait. Daddy
            cannot bide me, because I swear at him.” “Ah! and the devil teaches you to swear at
            daddy?” I observed. “Ay—nay,” he drawled. “Who, then?” “Heathcliff.” “I asked if he
            liked Mr. Heathcliff.” “Ay!” he answered again. Desiring to have his reasons for liking
            him, I could only gather the sentences—“I known’t: he pays dad back what he gies to
            me—he curses daddy for cursing me. He says I mun do as I will.” “And the curate does not
            teach you to read and write, then?” I pursued. “No, I was told the curate should have
            his —— teeth dashed down his —— throat, if he stepped over the threshold—Heathcliff had
            promised that!” I put the orange in his hand, and bade him tell his father that a woman
            called Nelly Dean was waiting to speak with him, by the garden gate. He went up the
            walk, and entered the house; but, instead of Hindley, Heathcliff appeared on the
            door-stones; and I turned directly and ran down the road as hard as ever I could race,
            making no halt till I gained the guide-post, and feeling as scared as if I had raised a
            goblin. This is not much connected with Miss Isabella’s affair: except that it urged me
            to resolve further on mounting vigilant guard, and doing my utmost to check the spread
            of such bad influence at the Grange: even though I should wake a domestic storm, by
            thwarting Mrs. Linton’s pleasure. The next time Heathcliff came my young lady chanced to
            be feeding some pigeons in the court. She had never spoken a word to her sister-in-law
            for three days; but she had likewise dropped her fretful complaining, and we found it a
            great comfort. Heathcliff had not the habit of bestowing a single unnecessary civility
            on Miss Linton, I knew. Now, as soon as he beheld her, his first precaution was to take
            a sweeping survey of the house-front. I was standing by the kitchen-window, but I drew
            out of sight. He then stepped across the pavement to her, and said something: she seemed
            embarrassed, and desirous of getting away; to prevent it, he laid his hand on her arm.
            She averted her face: he apparently put some question which she had no mind to answer.
            There was another rapid glance at the house, and supposing himself unseen, the <tc:racedesc type="explicit">scoundrel</tc:racedesc>
            had the impudence to embrace her. “Judas! Traitor!” I ejaculated. “You are a hypocrite,
            too, are you? A deliberate deceiver.” </p>
         <p>  “Who is, Nelly?” said Catherine’s voice at my
            elbow: I had been over-intent on watching the pair outside to mark her entrance. “Your
            worthless friend!” I answered, warmly: “the <tc:racedesc type="implied">sneaking rascal</tc:racedesc>  yonder. Ah, he has caught a
            glimpse of us—he is coming in! I wonder will he have the heart to find a plausible
            excuse for making love to Miss, when he told you he hated her?” Mrs. Linton saw Isabella
            tear herself free, and run into the garden; and a minute after, Heathcliff opened the
            door. I couldn’t withhold giving some loose to my indignation; but Catherine angrily
            insisted on silence, and threatened to order me out of the kitchen, if I dared to be so
            presumptuous as to put in my insolent tongue. “To hear you, people might think you were
            the mistress!” she cried. “You want setting down in your right place! Heathcliff, what
            are you about, raising this stir? I said you must let Isabella alone!—I beg you will,
            unless you are tired of being received here, and wish Linton to draw the bolts against
            you!” “God forbid that he should try!” answered <tc:racedesc type="explicit">the black villain</tc:racedesc>. I detested him just
            then. “God keep him meek and patient! Every day I grow madder after sending him to
            heaven!” “Hush!” said Catherine, shutting the inner door.</p>
         <p>  “Don’t vex me. Why have you
            disregarded my request? Did she come across you on purpose?” “What is it to you?” he
            growled. “I have a right to kiss her, if she chooses; and you have no right to object. I
            am not your husband: you needn’t be jealous of me!” “I’m not jealous of you,” replied
            the mistress; “I’m jealous for you. Clear your face: you sha’n’t scowl at me! If you
            like Isabella, you shall marry her. But do you like her? Tell the truth, Heathcliff!
            There, you won’t answer. I’m certain you don’t.” “And would Mr. Linton approve of his
            sister marrying that man?” I inquired. “Mr. Linton should approve,” returned my lady,
            decisively. “He might spare himself the trouble,” said Heathcliff: “I could do as well
            without his approbation. And as to you, Catherine, I have a mind to speak a few words
            now, while we are at it. I want you to be aware that I know you have treated me
            infernally—infernally! Do you hear? And if you flatter yourself that I don’t perceive
            it, you are a fool; and if you think I can be consoled by sweet words, you are an idiot:
            and if you fancy I’ll suffer unrevenged, I’ll convince you of the contrary, in a very
            little while! Meantime, thank you for telling me your sister-in-law’s secret: I swear
            I’ll make the most of it. And stand you aside!” “What new phase of his character is
            this?” exclaimed Mrs. Linton, in amazement. “I’ve treated you infernally—and you’ll take
            your revenge! How will you take it, ungrateful brute? How have I treated you
            infernally?” “I seek no revenge on you,” replied Heathcliff, less vehemently. “That’s
            not the plan. The tyrant grinds down his slaves and they don’t turn against him; they
            crush those beneath them. You are welcome to torture me to death for your amusement,
            only allow me to amuse myself a little in the same style, and refrain from insult as
            much as you are able. Having levelled my palace, don’t erect a hovel and complacently
            admire your own charity in giving me that for a home. If I imagined you really wished me
            to marry Isabel, I’d cut my throat!” “Oh, the evil is that I am not jealous, is it?”
            cried Catherine. “Well, I won’t repeat my offer of a wife: it is as bad as offering
            Satan a lost soul. Your bliss lies, like his, in inflicting misery. You prove it. Edgar
            is restored from the ill-temper he gave way to at your coming; I begin to be secure and
            tranquil; and you, restless to know us at peace, appear resolved on exciting a quarrel.
            Quarrel with Edgar, if you please, Heathcliff, and deceive his sister: you’ll hit on
            exactly the most efficient method of revenging yourself on me.” The conversation ceased.
            Mrs. Linton sat down by the fire, flushed and gloomy. The spirit which served her was
            growing intractable: she could neither lay nor control it. He stood on the hearth with
            folded arms, brooding on his evil thoughts; and in this position I left them to seek the
            master, who was wondering what kept Catherine below so long. “Ellen,” said he, when I
            entered, “have you seen your mistress?” “Yes; she’s in the kitchen, sir,” I answered.
            “She’s sadly put out by Mr. Heathcliff’s behaviour: and, indeed, I do think it’s time to
            arrange his visits on another footing. There’s harm in being too soft, and now it’s come
            to this—.” </p>
         <p>     And I related the scene in the court, and, as near as I dared, the whole
            subsequent dispute. I fancied it could not be very prejudicial to Mrs. Linton; unless
            she made it so afterwards, by assuming the defensive for her guest. Edgar Linton had
            difficulty in hearing me to the close. His first words revealed that he did not clear
            his wife of blame. “This is insufferable!” he exclaimed. “It is disgraceful that she
            should own him for a friend, and force his company on me! Call me two men out of the
            hall, Ellen. Catherine shall linger no longer to argue with the <tc:racedesc type="explicit">low ruffian</tc:racedesc>—I have
            humoured her enough.” He descended, and bidding the servants wait in the passage, went,
            followed by me, to the kitchen. Its occupants had recommenced their angry discussion:
            Mrs. Linton, at least, was scolding with renewed vigour; Heathcliff had moved to the
            window, and hung his head, somewhat cowed by her violent rating apparently. He saw the
            master first, and made a hasty motion that she should be silent; which she obeyed,
            abruptly, on discovering the reason of his intimation. “How is this?” said Linton,
            addressing her; “what notion of propriety must you have to remain here, after the
            language which has been held to you by that blackguard? I suppose, because it is his
            ordinary talk you think nothing of it: you are habituated to his baseness, and, perhaps,
            imagine I can get used to it too!” “Have you been listening at the door, Edgar?” asked
            the mistress, in a tone particularly calculated to provoke her husband, implying both
            carelessness and contempt of his irritation. Heathcliff, who had raised his eyes at the
            former speech, gave a sneering laugh at the latter; on purpose, it seemed, to draw Mr.
            Linton’s attention to him. He succeeded; but Edgar did not mean to entertain him with
            any high flights of passion. “I’ve been so far forbearing with you, sir,” he said
            quietly; “not that I was ignorant of your miserable, degraded character, but I felt you
            were only partly responsible for that; and Catherine wishing to keep up your
            acquaintance, I acquiesced—foolishly. Your presence is a moral poison that would
            contaminate the most virtuous: for that cause, and to prevent worse consequences, I
            shall deny you hereafter admission into this house, and give notice now that I require
            your instant departure. Three minutes’ delay will render it involuntary and
            ignominious.” </p>
         <p>  Heathcliff measured the height and breadth of the speaker with an eye full
            of derision. “Cathy, this lamb of yours threatens like a bull!” he said. “It is in
            danger of splitting its skull against my knuckles. By God! Mr. Linton, I’m mortally
            sorry that you are not worth knocking down!” My master glanced towards the passage, and
            signed me to fetch the men: he had no intention of hazarding a personal encounter. I
            obeyed the hint; but Mrs. Linton, suspecting something, followed; and when I attempted
            to call them, she pulled me back, slammed the door to, and locked it. “Fair means!” she
            said, in answer to her husband’s look of angry surprise. “If you have not courage to
            attack him, make an apology, or allow yourself to be beaten. It will correct you of
            feigning more valour than you possess. No, I’ll swallow the key before you shall get it!
            I’m delightfully rewarded for my kindness to each! After constant indulgence of one’s
            weak nature, and the other’s bad one, I earn for thanks two samples of blind
            ingratitude, stupid to absurdity! Edgar, I was defending you and yours; and I wish
            Heathcliff may flog you sick, for daring to think an evil thought of me!” It did not
            need the medium of a flogging to produce that effect on the master. He tried to wrest
            the key from Catherine’s grasp, and for safety she flung it into the hottest part of the
            fire; whereupon Mr. Edgar was taken with a nervous trembling, and his countenance grew
            deadly pale. For his life he could not avert that excess of emotion: mingled anguish and
            humiliation overcame him completely. He leant on the back of a chair, and covered his
            face. “Oh, heavens! In old days this would win you knighthood!” exclaimed Mrs. Linton.
            “We are vanquished! we are vanquished! Heathcliff would as soon lift a finger at you as
            the king would march his army against a colony of mice. Cheer up! you sha’n’t be hurt!
            Your type is not a lamb, it’s a sucking leveret.” “I wish you joy of the milk-blooded
            coward, Cathy!” said her friend.</p>
         <p>    “I compliment you on your taste. And that is the
            slavering, shivering thing you preferred to me! I would not strike him with my fist, but
            I’d kick him with my foot, and experience considerable satisfaction. Is he weeping, or
            is he going to faint for fear?” The fellow approached and gave the chair on which Linton
            rested a push. He’d better have kept his distance: my master quickly sprang erect, and
            struck him full on the throat a blow that would have levelled a slighter man. It took
            his breath for a minute; and while he choked, Mr. Linton walked out by the back door
            into the yard, and from thence to the front entrance. “There! you’ve done with coming
            here,” cried Catherine. “Get away, now; he’ll return with a brace of pistols and
            half-a-dozen assistants. If he did overhear us, of course he’d never forgive you. You’ve
            played me an ill turn, Heathcliff! But go—make haste! I’d rather see Edgar at bay than
            you.” “Do you suppose I’m going with that blow burning in my gullet?” he thundered. “By
            hell, no! I’ll crush his ribs in like a rotten hazel-nut before I cross the threshold!
            If I don’t floor him now, I shall murder him some time; so, as you value his existence,
            let me get at him!” “He is not coming,” I interposed, framing a bit of a lie. “There’s
            the coachman and the two gardeners; you’ll surely not wait to be thrust into the road by
            them! Each has a bludgeon; and master will, very likely, be watching from the
            parlour-windows to see that they fulfil his orders.” The gardeners and coachman were
            there: but Linton was with them. They had already entered the court. Heathcliff, on the
            second thoughts, resolved to avoid a struggle against three underlings: he seized the
            poker, smashed the lock from the inner door, and made his escape as they tramped in.
            Mrs. Linton, who was very much excited, bade me accompany her upstairs. She did not know
            my share in contributing to the disturbance, and I was anxious to keep her in ignorance.
            “I’m nearly distracted, Nelly!” she exclaimed, throwing herself on the sofa. “A thousand
            smiths’ hammers are beating in my head! </p>
         <p>  Tell Isabella to shun me; this uproar is owing
            to her; and should she or any one else aggravate my anger at present, I shall get wild.
            And, Nelly, say to Edgar, if you see him again to-night, that I’m in danger of being
            seriously ill. I wish it may prove true. He has startled and distressed me shockingly! I
            want to frighten him. Besides, he might come and begin a string of abuse or
            complainings; I’m certain I should recriminate, and God knows where we should end! Will
            you do so, my good Nelly? You are aware that I am no way blamable in this matter. What
            possessed him to turn listener? Heathcliff’s talk was outrageous, after you left us; but
            I could soon have diverted him from Isabella, and the rest meant nothing. Now all is
            dashed wrong; by the fool’s craving to hear evil of self, that haunts some people like a
            demon! Had Edgar never gathered our conversation, he would never have been the worse for
            it. Really, when he opened on me in that unreasonable tone of displeasure after I had
            scolded Heathcliff till I was hoarse for him; I did not care hardly what they did to
            each other; especially as I felt that, however the scene closed, we should all be driven
            asunder for nobody knows how long! Well, if I cannot keep Heathcliff for my friend—if
            Edgar will be mean and jealous, I’ll try to break their hearts by breaking my own. That
            will be a prompt way of finishing all, when I am pushed to extremity! But it’s a deed to
            be reserved for a forlorn hope; I’d not take Linton by surprise with it. To this point
            he has been discreet in dreading to provoke me; you must represent the peril of quitting
            that policy, and remind him of my passionate temper, verging, when kindled, on frenzy. I
            wish you could dismiss that apathy out of that countenance, and look rather more anxious
            about me.” The stolidity with which I received these instructions was, no doubt, rather
            exasperating: for they were delivered in perfect sincerity; but I believed a person who
            could plan the turning of her fits of passion to account, beforehand, might, by exerting
            her will, manage to control herself tolerably, even while under their influence; and I
            did not wish to “frighten” her husband, as she said, and multiply his annoyances for the
            purpose of serving her selfishness. Therefore I said nothing when I met the master
            coming towards the parlour; but I took the liberty of turning back to listen whether
            they would resume their quarrel together. He began to speak first. “Remain where you
            are, Catherine,” he said; without any anger in his voice, but with much sorrowful
            despondency. </p>
         <p>     “I shall not stay. I am neither come to wrangle nor be reconciled; but I
            wish just to learn whether, after this evening’s events, you intend to continue your
            intimacy with—” “Oh, for mercy’s sake,” interrupted the mistress, stamping her foot,
            “for mercy’s sake, let us hear no more of it now! Your cold blood cannot be worked into
            a fever: your veins are full of ice-water; but mine are boiling, and the sight of such
            chillness makes them dance.” “To get rid of me, answer my question,” persevered Mr.
            Linton. “You must answer it; and that violence does not alarm me. I have found that you
            can be as stoical as anyone, when you please. Will you give up Heathcliff hereafter, or
            will you give up me? It is impossible for you to be my friend and his at the same time;
            and I absolutely require to know which you choose.” “I require to be let alone!”
            exclaimed Catherine, furiously. “I demand it! Don’t you see I can scarcely stand? Edgar,
            you—you leave me!” She rang the bell till it broke with a twang; I entered leisurely. It
            was enough to try the temper of a saint, such senseless, wicked rages! There she lay
            dashing her head against the arm of the sofa, and grinding her teeth, so that you might
            fancy she would crash them to splinters! Mr. Linton stood looking at her in sudden
            compunction and fear. He told me to fetch some water. She had no breath for speaking. I
            brought a glass full; and as she would not drink, I sprinkled it on her face. In a few
            seconds she stretched herself out stiff, and turned up her eyes, while her cheeks, at
            once blanched and livid, assumed the aspect of death. Linton looked terrified. “There is
            nothing in the world the matter,” I whispered. I did not want him to yield, though I
            could not help being afraid in my heart. </p>
         <p>   “She has blood on her lips!” he said,
            shuddering. “Never mind!” I answered, tartly. And I told him how she had resolved,
            previous to his coming, on exhibiting a fit of frenzy. I incautiously gave the account
            aloud, and she heard me; for she started up—her hair flying over her shoulders, her eyes
            flashing, the muscles of her neck and arms standing out preternaturally. I made up my
            mind for broken bones, at least; but she only glared about her for an instant, and then
            rushed from the room. The master directed me to follow; I did, to her chamber-door: she
            hindered me from going further by securing it against me. As she never offered to
            descend to breakfast next morning, I went to ask whether she would have some carried up.
            “No!” she replied, peremptorily. The same question was repeated at dinner and tea; and
            again on the morrow after, and received the same answer. Mr. Linton, on his part, spent
            his time in the library, and did not inquire concerning his wife’s occupations. Isabella
            and he had had an hour’s interview, during which he tried to elicit from her some
            sentiment of proper horror for Heathcliff’s advances: but he could make nothing of her
            evasive replies, and was obliged to close the examination unsatisfactorily; adding,
            however, a solemn warning, that if she were so insane as to encourage that worthless
            suitor, it would dissolve all bonds of relationship between herself and him. </p>
         <p>Chapter 12</p>
          <p> While Miss Linton moped about the park and garden, always silent, and almost always in
            tears; and her brother shut himself up among books that he never opened—wearying, I
            guessed, with a continual vague expectation that Catherine, repenting her conduct, would
            come of her own accord to ask pardon, and seek a reconciliation—and she fasted
            pertinaciously, under the idea, probably, that at every meal Edgar was ready to choke
            for her absence, and pride alone held him from running to cast himself at her feet; I
            went about my household duties, convinced that the Grange had but one sensible soul in
            its walls, and that lodged in my body. I wasted no condolences on Miss, nor any
            expostulations on my mistress; nor did I pay much attention to the sighs of my master,
            who yearned to hear his lady’s name, since he might not hear her voice. I determined
            they should come about as they pleased for me; and though it was a tiresomely slow
            process, I began to rejoice at length in a faint dawn of its progress: as I thought at
            first. Mrs. Linton, on the third day, unbarred her door, and having finished the water
            in her pitcher and decanter, desired a renewed supply, and a basin of gruel, for she
            believed she was dying. That I set down as a speech meant for Edgar’s ears; I believed
            no such thing, so I kept it to myself and brought her some tea and dry toast. She ate
            and drank eagerly, and sank back on her pillow again, clenching her hands and groaning.
            “Oh, I will die,” she exclaimed, “since no one cares anything about me. I wish I had not
            taken that.” Then a good while after I heard her murmur, “No, I’ll not die—he’d be
            glad—he does not love me at all—he would never miss me!” “Did you want anything, ma’am?”
            I inquired, still preserving my external composure, in spite of her ghastly countenance
            and strange, exaggerated manner. </p>
        <p>    “What is that apathetic being doing?” she demanded,
            pushing the thick entangled locks from her wasted face. “Has he fallen into a lethargy,
            or is he dead?” “Neither,” replied I; “if you mean Mr. Linton. He’s tolerably well, I
            think, though his studies occupy him rather more than they ought: he is continually
            among his books, since he has no other society.” I should not have spoken so if I had
            known her true condition, but I could not get rid of the notion that she acted a part of
            her disorder. “Among his books!” she cried, confounded. “And I dying! I on the brink of
            the grave! My God! does he know how I’m altered?” continued she, staring at her
            reflection in a mirror hanging against the opposite wall. “Is that Catherine Linton? He
            imagines me in a pet—in play, perhaps. Cannot you inform him that it is frightful
            earnest? Nelly, if it be not too late, as soon as I learn how he feels, I’ll choose
            between these two: either to starve at once—that would be no punishment unless he had a
            heart—or to recover, and leave the country. Are you speaking the truth about him now?
            Take care. Is he actually so utterly indifferent for my life?” “Why, ma’am,” I answered,
            “the master has no idea of your being deranged; and of course he does not fear that you
            will let yourself die of hunger.” “You think not? Cannot you tell him I will?” she
            returned. “Persuade him! speak of your own mind: say you are certain I will!” “No, you
            forget, Mrs. Linton,” I suggested, “that you have eaten some food with a relish this
            evening, and to-morrow you will perceive its good effects.” “If I were only sure it
            would kill him,” she interrupted, “I’d kill myself directly! These three awful nights
            I’ve never closed my lids—and oh, I’ve been tormented! I’ve been haunted, Nelly! But I
            begin to fancy you don’t like me. How strange! I thought, though everybody hated and
            despised each other, they could not avoid loving me. And they have all turned to enemies
            in a few hours. They have, I’m positive; the people here. How dreary to meet death,
            surrounded by their cold faces! Isabella, terrified and repelled, afraid to enter the
            room, it would be so dreadful to watch Catherine go. And Edgar standing solemnly by to
            see it over; then offering prayers of thanks to God for restoring peace to his house,
            and going back to his books! What in the name of all that feels has he to do with books,
            when I am dying?” She could not bear the notion which I had put into her head of Mr.
            Linton’s philosophical resignation. Tossing about, she increased her feverish
            bewilderment to madness, and tore the pillow with her teeth; then raising herself up all
            burning, desired that I would open the window. We were in the middle of winter, the wind
            blew strong from the north-east, and I objected. Both the expressions flitting over her
            face, and the changes of her moods, began to alarm me terribly; and brought to my
            recollection her former illness, and the doctor’s injunction that she should not be
            crossed. </p>
        <p>    A minute previously she was violent; now, supported on one arm, and not
            noticing my refusal to obey her, she seemed to find childish diversion in pulling the
            feathers from the rents she had just made, and ranging them on the sheet according to
            their different species: her mind had strayed to other associations. “That’s a
            turkey’s,” she murmured to herself; “and this is a wild duck’s; and this is a pigeon’s.
            Ah, they put pigeons’ feathers in the pillows—no wonder I couldn’t die! Let me take care
            to throw it on the floor when I lie down. And here is a moor-cock’s; and this—I should
            know it among a thousand—it’s a lapwing’s. Bonny bird; wheeling over our heads in the
            middle of the moor. It wanted to get to its nest, for the clouds had touched the swells,
            and it felt rain coming. This feather was picked up from the heath, the bird was not
            shot: we saw its nest in the winter, full of little skeletons. Heathcliff set a trap
            over it, and the old ones dared not come. I made him promise he’d never shoot a lapwing
            after that, and he didn’t. Yes, here are more! Did he shoot my lapwings, Nelly? Are they
            red, any of them? Let me look.” “Give over with that baby-work!” I interrupted, dragging
            the pillow away, and turning the holes towards the mattress, for she was removing its
            contents by handfuls. “Lie down and shut your eyes: you’re wandering. There’s a mess!
            The down is flying about like snow.” I went here and there collecting it. “I see in you,
            Nelly,” she continued dreamily, “an aged woman: you have grey hair and bent shoulders.
            This bed is the fairy cave under Penistone Crags, and you are gathering elf-bolts to
            hurt our heifers; pretending, while I am near, that they are only locks of wool. That’s
            what you’ll come to fifty years hence: I know you are not so now. I’m not wandering:
            you’re mistaken, or else I should believe you really were that withered hag, and I
            should think I was under Penistone Crags; and I’m conscious it’s night, and there are
            two candles on the table making the black press shine like jet.” “The black press? where
            is that?” I asked. “You are talking in your sleep!” “It’s against the wall, as it always
            is,” she replied. “It does appear odd—I see a face in it!” </p>
         <p>   “There’s no press in the
            room, and never was,” said I, resuming my seat, and looping up the curtain that I might
            watch her. “Don’t you see that face?” she inquired, gazing earnestly at the mirror. And
            say what I could, I was incapable of making her comprehend it to be her own; so I rose
            and covered it with a shawl. “It’s behind there still!” she pursued, anxiously. “And it
            stirred. Who is it? I hope it will not come out when you are gone! Oh! Nelly, the room
            is haunted! I’m afraid of being alone!” I took her hand in mine, and bid her be
            composed; for a succession of shudders convulsed her frame, and she would keep straining
            her gaze towards the glass. “There’s nobody here!” I insisted. “It was yourself, Mrs.
            Linton: you knew it a while since.” “Myself!” she gasped, “and the clock is striking
            twelve! It’s true, then! that’s dreadful!” Her fingers clutched the clothes, and
            gathered them over her eyes. I attempted to steal to the door with an intention of
            calling her husband; but I was summoned back by a piercing shriek—the shawl had dropped
            from the frame. “Why, what is the matter?” cried I. “Who is coward now? Wake up! That is
            the glass—the mirror, Mrs. Linton; and you see yourself in it, and there am I too by
            your side.” Trembling and bewildered, she held me fast, but the horror gradually passed
            from her countenance; its paleness gave place to a glow of shame. “Oh, dear! I thought I
            was at home,” she sighed. “I thought I was lying in my chamber at Wuthering Heights.
            Because I’m weak, my brain got confused, and I screamed unconsciously. Don’t say
            anything; but stay with me. I dread sleeping: my dreams appal me.” “A sound sleep would
            do you good, ma’am,” I answered: “and I hope this suffering will prevent your trying
            starving again.” “Oh, if I were but in my own bed in the old house!” she went on
            bitterly, wringing her hands. “And that wind sounding in the firs by the lattice. Do let
            me feel it—it comes straight down the moor—do let me have one breath!” To pacify her I
            held the casement ajar a few seconds. A cold blast rushed through; I closed it, and
            returned to my post. She lay still now, her face bathed in tears. Exhaustion of body had
            entirely subdued her spirit: our fiery Catherine was no better than a wailing child.
            “How long is it since I shut myself in here?” she asked, suddenly reviving. “It was
            Monday evening,” I replied, “and this is Thursday night, or rather Friday morning, at
            present.” “What! of the same week?” she exclaimed. “Only that brief time?” “Long enough
            to live on nothing but cold water and ill-temper,” observed I. </p>
         <p>   “Well, it seems a weary
            number of hours,” she muttered doubtfully: “it must be more. I remember being in the
            parlour after they had quarrelled, and Edgar being cruelly provoking, and me running
            into this room desperate. As soon as ever I had barred the door, utter blackness
            overwhelmed me, and I fell on the floor. I couldn’t explain to Edgar how certain I felt
            of having a fit, or going raging mad, if he persisted in teasing me! I had no command of
            tongue, or brain, and he did not guess my agony, perhaps: it barely left me sense to try
            to escape from him and his voice. Before I recovered sufficiently to see and hear, it
            began to be dawn, and, Nelly, I’ll tell you what I thought, and what has kept recurring
            and recurring till I feared for my reason. I thought as I lay there, with my head
            against that table leg, and my eyes dimly discerning the grey square of the window, that
            I was enclosed in the oak-panelled bed at home; and my heart ached with some great grief
            which, just waking, I could not recollect. I pondered, and worried myself to discover
            what it could be, and, most strangely, the whole last seven years of my life grew a
            blank! I did not recall that they had been at all. I was a child; my father was just
            buried, and my misery arose from the separation that Hindley had ordered between me and
            Heathcliff. I was laid alone, for the first time; and, rousing from a dismal doze after
            a night of weeping, I lifted my hand to push the panels aside: it struck the table-top!
            I swept it along the carpet, and then memory burst in: my late anguish was swallowed in
            a paroxysm of despair. I cannot say why I felt so wildly wretched: it must have been
            temporary derangement; for there is scarcely cause. But, supposing at twelve years old I
            had been wrenched from the Heights, and every early association, and my all in all, as
            Heathcliff was at that time, and been converted at a stroke into Mrs. Linton, the lady
            of Thrushcross Grange, and the wife of a stranger: an exile, and outcast, thenceforth,
            from what had been my world. You may fancy a glimpse of the abyss where I grovelled!
            Shake your head as you will, Nelly, you have helped to unsettle me! You should have
            spoken to Edgar, indeed you should, and compelled him to leave me quiet! Oh, I’m
            burning! I wish I were out of doors! I wish I were a girl again, half savage and hardy,
            and free; and laughing at injuries, not maddening under them! Why am I so changed? why
            does my blood rush into a hell of tumult at a few words? I’m sure I should be myself
            were I once among the heather on those hills. Open the window again wide: fasten it
            open! Quick, why don’t you move?” </p>
        <p>    “Because I won’t give you your death of cold,” I
            answered. “You won’t give me a chance of life, you mean,” she said sullenly. “However,
            I’m not helpless yet; I’ll open it myself.” And sliding from the bed before I could
            hinder her, she crossed the room, walking very uncertainly, threw it back, and bent out,
            careless of the frosty air that cut about her shoulders as keen as a knife. I entreated,
            and finally attempted to force her to retire. But I soon found her delirious strength
            much surpassed mine (she was delirious, I became convinced by her subsequent actions and
            ravings). There was no moon, and everything beneath lay in misty darkness: not a light
            gleamed from any house, far or near; all had been extinguished long ago: and those at
            Wuthering Heights were never visible—still she asserted she caught their shining.
            “Look!” she cried eagerly, “that’s my room with the candle in it, and the trees swaying
            before it; and the other candle is in Joseph’s garret. Joseph sits up late, doesn’t he?
            He’s waiting till I come home that he may lock the gate. Well, he’ll wait a while yet.
            It’s a rough journey, and a sad heart to travel it; and we must pass by Gimmerton Kirk
            to go that journey! We’ve braved its ghosts often together, and dared each other to
            stand among the graves and ask them to come. But, Heathcliff, if I dare you now, will
            you venture? If you do, I’ll keep you. I’ll not lie there by myself: they may bury me
            twelve feet deep, and throw the church down over me, but I won’t rest till you are with
            me. I never will!” She paused, and resumed with a strange smile. “He’s considering—he’d
            rather I’d come to him! Find a way, then! not through that kirkyard. You are slow! Be
            content, you always followed me!” Perceiving it vain to argue against her insanity, I
            was planning how I could reach something to wrap about her, without quitting my hold of
            herself (for I could not trust her alone by the gaping lattice), when, to my
            consternation, I heard the rattle of the door-handle, and Mr. Linton entered. He had
            only then come from the library; and, in passing through the lobby, had noticed our
            talking and been attracted by curiosity, or fear, to examine what it signified, at that
            late hour. “Oh, sir!” I cried, checking the exclamation risen to his lips at the sight
            which met him, and the bleak atmosphere of the chamber. </p>
          <p>  “My poor mistress is ill, and
            she quite masters me: I cannot manage her at all; pray, come and persuade her to go to
            bed. Forget your anger, for she’s hard to guide any way but her own.” “Catherine ill?”
            he said, hastening to us. “Shut the window, Ellen! Catherine! why—” He was silent. The
            haggardness of Mrs. Linton’s appearance smote him speechless, and he could only glance
            from her to me in horrified astonishment. “She’s been fretting here,” I continued, “and
            eating scarcely anything, and never complaining: she would admit none of us till this
            evening, and so we couldn’t inform you of her state, as we were not aware of it
            ourselves; but it is nothing.” I felt I uttered my explanations awkwardly; the master
            frowned. “It is nothing, is it, Ellen Dean?” he said sternly. “You shall account more
            clearly for keeping me ignorant of this!” And he took his wife in his arms, and looked
            at her with anguish. At first she gave him no glance of recognition: he was invisible to
            her abstracted gaze. The delirium was not fixed, however; having weaned her eyes from
            contemplating the outer darkness, by degrees she centred her attention on him, and
            discovered who it was that held her. “Ah! you are come, are you, Edgar Linton?” she
            said, with angry animation. “You are one of those things that are ever found when least
            wanted, and when you are wanted, never! I suppose we shall have plenty of lamentations
            now—I see we shall—but they can’t keep me from my narrow home out yonder: my
            resting-place, where I’m bound before spring is over! There it is: not among the
            Lintons, mind, under the chapel-roof, but in the open air, with a head-stone; and you
            may please yourself whether you go to them or come to me!” “Catherine, what have you
            done?” commenced the master. “Am I nothing to you any more? Do you love that wretch
            Heath—” “Hush!” cried Mrs. Linton. “Hush, this moment! You mention that name and I end
            the matter instantly by a spring from the window! What you touch at present you may
            have; but my soul will be on that hill-top before you lay hands on me again. I don’t
            want you, Edgar: I’m past wanting you. Return to your books. I’m glad you possess a
            consolation, for all you had in me is gone.” “Her mind wanders, sir,” I interposed. “She
            has been talking nonsense the whole evening; but let her have quiet, and proper
            attendance, and she’ll rally. Hereafter, we must be cautious how we vex her.” “I desire
            no further advice from you,” answered Mr. Linton. “You knew your mistress’s nature, and
            you encouraged me to harass her. And not to give me one hint of how she has been these
            three days! It was heartless! Months of sickness could not cause such a change!” I began
            to defend myself, thinking it too bad to be blamed for another’s wicked waywardness. “I
            knew Mrs. Linton’s nature to be headstrong and domineering,” cried I: “but I didn’t know
            that you wished to foster her fierce temper! I didn’t know that, to humour her, I should
            wink at Mr. Heathcliff. I performed the duty of a faithful servant in telling you, and I
            have got a faithful servant’s wages! Well, it will teach me to be careful next time.
            Next time you may gather intelligence for yourself!” “The next time you bring a tale to
            me you shall quit my service, Ellen Dean,” he replied. </p>
          <p>  “You’d rather hear nothing about
            it, I suppose, then, Mr. Linton?” said I. “Heathcliff has your permission to come
            a-courting to Miss, and to drop in at every opportunity your absence offers, on purpose
            to poison the mistress against you?” Confused as Catherine was, her wits were alert at
            applying our conversation. “Ah! Nelly has played traitor,” she exclaimed, passionately.
            “Nelly is my hidden enemy. You witch! So you do seek elf-bolts to hurt us! Let me go,
            and I’ll make her rue! I’ll make her howl a recantation!” A maniac’s fury kindled under
            her brows; she struggled desperately to disengage herself from Linton’s arms. I felt no
            inclination to tarry the event; and, resolving to seek medical aid on my own
            responsibility, I quitted the chamber. In passing the garden to reach the road, at a
            place where a bridle hook is driven into the wall, I saw something white moved
            irregularly, evidently by another agent than the wind. Notwithstanding my hurry, I
            stayed to examine it, lest ever after I should have the conviction impressed on my
            imagination that it was a creature of the other world. My surprise and perplexity were
            great on discovering, by touch more than vision, Miss Isabella’s springer, Fanny,
            suspended by a handkerchief, and nearly at its last gasp. I quickly released the animal,
            and lifted it into the garden. I had seen it follow its mistress upstairs when she went
            to bed; and wondered much how it could have got out there, and what mischievous person
            had treated it so. While untying the knot round the hook, it seemed to me that I
            repeatedly caught the beat of horses’ feet galloping at some distance; but there were
            such a number of things to occupy my reflections that I hardly gave the circumstance a
            thought: though it was a strange sound, in that place, at two o’clock in the morning.
            Mr. Kenneth was fortunately just issuing from his house to see a patient in the village
            as I came up the street; and my account of Catherine Linton’s malady induced him to
            accompany me back immediately. He was a plain rough man; and he made no scruple to speak
            his doubts of her surviving this second attack; unless she were more submissive to his
            directions than she had shown herself before. “Nelly Dean,” said he, “I can’t help
            fancying there’s an extra cause for this. What has there been to do at the Grange? We’ve
            odd reports up here. A stout, hearty lass like Catherine does not fall ill for a trifle;
            and that sort of people should not either. It’s hard work bringing them through fevers,
            and such things. How did it begin?” “The master will inform you,” I answered; “but you
            are acquainted with the Earnshaws’ violent dispositions, and Mrs. Linton caps them all.
            I may say this; it commenced in a quarrel. She was struck during a tempest of passion
            with a kind of fit. That’s her account, at least: for she flew off in the height of it,
            and locked herself up. Afterwards, she refused to eat, and now she alternately raves and
            remains in a half dream; knowing those about her, but having her mind filled with all
            sorts of strange ideas and illusions.” “Mr. Linton will be sorry?” observed Kenneth,
            interrogatively. “Sorry? he’ll break his heart should anything happen!” I replied.
            “Don’t alarm him more than necessary.” </p>
          <p>  “Well, I told him to beware,” said my companion;
            “and he must bide the consequences of neglecting my warning! Hasn’t he been intimate
            with Mr. Heathcliff lately?” “Heathcliff frequently visits at the Grange,” answered I,
            “though more on the strength of the mistress having known him when a boy, than because
            the master likes his company. At present he’s discharged from the trouble of calling;
            owing to some presumptuous aspirations after Miss Linton which he manifested. I hardly
            think he’ll be taken in again.” “And does Miss Linton turn a cold shoulder on him?” was
            the doctor’s next question. “I’m not in her confidence,” returned I, reluctant to
            continue the subject. “No, she’s a sly one,” he remarked, shaking his head. “She keeps
            her own counsel! But she’s a real little fool. I have it from good authority that last
            night (and a pretty night it was!) she and Heathcliff were walking in the plantation at
            the back of your house above two hours; and he pressed her not to go in again, but just
            mount his horse and away with him! My informant said she could only put him off by
            pledging her word of honour to be prepared on their first meeting after that: when it
            was to be he didn’t hear; but you urge Mr. Linton to look sharp!” This news filled me
            with fresh fears; I outstripped Kenneth, and ran most of the way back. The little dog
            was yelping in the garden yet. I spared a minute to open the gate for it, but instead of
            going to the house door, it coursed up and down snuffing the grass, and would have
            escaped to the road, had I not seized it and conveyed it in with me. On ascending to
            Isabella’s room, my suspicions were confirmed: it was empty. Had I been a few hours
            sooner Mrs. Linton’s illness might have arrested her rash step. But what could be done
            now? There was a bare possibility of overtaking them if pursued instantly. I could not
            pursue them, however; and I dared not rouse the family, and fill the place with
            confusion; still less unfold the business to my master, absorbed as he was in his
            present calamity, and having no heart to spare for a second grief! I saw nothing for it
            but to hold my tongue, and suffer matters to take their course; and Kenneth being
            arrived, I went with a badly composed countenance to announce him. Catherine lay in a
            troubled sleep: her husband had succeeded in soothing the excess of frenzy; he now hung
            over her pillow, watching every shade and every change of her painfully expressive
            features. The doctor, on examining the case for himself, spoke hopefully to him of its
            having a favourable termination, if we could only preserve around her perfect and
            constant tranquillity. To me, he signified the threatening danger was not so much death,
            as permanent alienation of intellect. I did not close my eyes that night, nor did Mr.
            Linton: indeed, we never went to bed; and the servants were all up long before the usual
            hour, moving through the house with stealthy tread, and exchanging whispers as they
            encountered each other in their vocations. Every one was active but Miss Isabella; and
            they began to remark how sound she slept: her brother, too, asked if she had risen, and
            seemed impatient for her presence, and hurt that she showed so little anxiety for her
            sister-in-law. I trembled lest he should send me to call her; but I was spared the pain
            of being the first proclaimant of her flight. One of the maids, a thoughtless girl, who
            had been on an early errand to Gimmerton, came panting upstairs, open-mouthed, and
            dashed into the chamber, crying: “Oh, dear, dear! What mun we have next? Master, master,
            our young lady—” “Hold your noise!” cried I hastily, enraged at her clamorous manner.
            “Speak lower, Mary—What is the matter?” said Mr. Linton. </p>
         <p>   “What ails your young lady?”
            “She’s gone, she’s gone! Yon’ Heathcliff’s run off wi’ her!” gasped the girl. “That is
            not true!” exclaimed Linton, rising in agitation. “It cannot be: how has the idea
            entered your head? Ellen Dean, go and seek her. It is incredible: it cannot be.” As he
            spoke he took the servant to the door, and then repeated his demand to know her reasons
            for such an assertion. “Why, I met on the road a lad that fetches milk here,” she
            stammered, “and he asked whether we weren’t in trouble at the Grange. I thought he meant
            for missis’s sickness, so I answered, yes. Then says he, ‘There’s somebody gone after
            ’em, I guess?’ I stared. He saw I knew nought about it, and he told how a gentleman and
            lady had stopped to have a horse’s shoe fastened at a blacksmith’s shop, two miles out
            of Gimmerton, not very long after midnight! and how the blacksmith’s lass had got up to
            spy who they were: she knew them both directly. And she noticed the man—Heathcliff it
            was, she felt certain: nob’dy could mistake him, besides—put a sovereign in her father’s
            hand for payment. The lady had a cloak about her face; but having desired a sup of
            water, while she drank it fell back, and she saw her very plain. Heathcliff held both
            bridles as they rode on, and they set their faces from the village, and went as fast as
            the rough roads would let them. The lass said nothing to her father, but she told it all
            over Gimmerton this morning.” </p>
          <p>  I ran and peeped, for form’s sake, into Isabella’s room;
            confirming, when I returned, the servant’s statement. Mr. Linton had resumed his seat by
            the bed; on my re-entrance, he raised his eyes, read the meaning of my blank aspect, and
            dropped them without giving an order, or uttering a word. “Are we to try any measures
            for overtaking and bringing her back,” I inquired. “How should we do?” “She went of her
            own accord,” answered the master; “she had a right to go if she pleased. Trouble me no
            more about her. Hereafter she is only my sister in name: not because I disown her, but
            because she has disowned me.” And that was all he said on the subject: he did not make a
            single inquiry further, or mention her in any way, except directing me to send what
            property she had in the house to her fresh home, wherever it was, when I knew it. </p>
         <p>Chapter 13</p>
         <p> For two months the fugitives remained absent; in those two months, Mrs. Linton
            encountered and conquered the worst shock of what was denominated a brain fever. No
            mother could have nursed an only child more devotedly than Edgar tended her. Day and
            night he was watching, and patiently enduring all the annoyances that irritable nerves
            and a shaken reason could inflict; and, though Kenneth remarked that what he saved from
            the grave would only recompense his care by forming the source of constant future
            anxiety—in fact, that his health and strength were being sacrificed to preserve a mere
            ruin of humanity—he knew no limits in gratitude and joy when Catherine’s life was
            declared out of danger; and hour after hour he would sit beside her, tracing the gradual
            return to bodily health, and flattering his too sanguine hopes with the illusion that
            her mind would settle back to its right balance also, and she would soon be entirely her
            former self. The first time she left her chamber was at the commencement of the
            following March. Mr. Linton had put on her pillow, in the morning, a handful of golden
            crocuses; her eye, long stranger to any gleam of pleasure, caught them in waking, and
            shone delighted as she gathered them eagerly together. “These are the earliest flowers
            at the Heights,” she exclaimed. “They remind me of soft thaw winds, and warm sunshine,
            and nearly melted snow. Edgar, is there not a south wind, and is not the snow almost
            gone?” “The snow is quite gone down here, darling,” replied her husband; “and I only see
            two white spots on the whole range of moors: the sky is blue, and the larks are singing,
            and the becks and brooks are all brim full. Catherine, last spring at this time, I was
            longing to have you under this roof; now, I wish you were a mile or two up those hills:
            the air blows so sweetly, I feel that it would cure you.” “I shall never be there but
            once more,” said the invalid; “and then you’ll leave me, and I shall remain for ever.
            Next spring you’ll long again to have me under this roof, and you’ll look back and think
            you were happy to-day.” Linton lavished on her the kindest caresses, and tried to cheer
            her by the fondest words; but, vaguely regarding the flowers, she let the tears collect
            on her lashes and stream down her cheeks unheeding. </p>
         <p>   We knew she was really better, and,
            therefore, decided that long confinement to a single place produced much of this
            despondency, and it might be partially removed by a change of scene. The master told me
            to light a fire in the many-weeks’ deserted parlour, and to set an easy-chair in the
            sunshine by the window; and then he brought her down, and she sat a long while enjoying
            the genial heat, and, as we expected, revived by the objects round her: which, though
            familiar, were free from the dreary associations investing her hated sick chamber. By
            evening she seemed greatly exhausted; yet no arguments could persuade her to return to
            that apartment, and I had to arrange the parlour sofa for her bed, till another room
            could be prepared. To obviate the fatigue of mounting and descending the stairs, we
            fitted up this, where you lie at present—on the same floor with the parlour; and she was
            soon strong enough to move from one to the other, leaning on Edgar’s arm. Ah, I thought
            myself, she might recover, so waited on as she was. And there was double cause to desire
            it, for on her existence depended that of another: we cherished the hope that in a
            little while Mr. Linton’s heart would be gladdened, and his lands secured from a
            stranger’s gripe, by the birth of an heir. I should mention that Isabella sent to her
            brother, some six weeks from her departure, a short note, announcing her marriage with
            Heathcliff. It appeared dry and cold; but at the bottom was dotted in with pencil an
            obscure apology, and an entreaty for kind remembrance and reconciliation, if her
            proceeding had offended him: asserting that she could not help it then, and being done,
            she had now no power to repeal it. Linton did not reply to this, I believe; and, in a
            fortnight more, I got a long letter, which I considered odd, coming from the pen of a
            bride just out of the honeymoon. I’ll read it: for I keep it yet. Any relic of the dead
            is precious, if they were valued living. * * * * * </p>
         <p>    DEAR ELLEN, it begins,—I came last
            night to Wuthering Heights, and heard, for the first time, that Catherine has been, and
            is yet, very ill. I must not write to her, I suppose, and my brother is either too angry
            or too distressed to answer what I sent him. Still, I must write to somebody, and the
            only choice left me is you. Inform Edgar that I’d give the world to see his face
            again—that my heart returned to Thrushcross Grange in twenty-four hours after I left it,
            and is there at this moment, full of warm feelings for him, and Catherine! I can’t
            follow it though—(these words are underlined)—they need not expect me, and they may draw
            what conclusions they please; taking care, however, to lay nothing at the door of my
            weak will or deficient affection. The remainder of the letter is for yourself alone. I
            want to ask you two questions: the first is,—How did you contrive to preserve the common
            sympathies of human nature when you resided here? I cannot recognise any sentiment which
            those around share with me. The second question I have great interest in; it is this—Is
            Mr. Heathcliff a man? If so, is he <tc:racedesc type="implied">mad</tc:racedesc>? And if
            not, is he a <tc:racedesc type="implied">devil</tc:racedesc>? I sha’n’t tell my reasons
            for making this inquiry; but I beseech you to explain, if you can, what I have married:
            that is, when you call to see me; and you must call, Ellen, very soon. Don’t write, but
            come, and bring me something from Edgar. Now, you shall hear how I have been received in
            my new home, as I am led to imagine the Heights will be. It is to amuse myself that I
            dwell on such subjects as the lack of external comforts: they never occupy my thoughts,
            except at the moment when I miss them. I should laugh and dance for joy, if I found
            their absence was the total of my miseries, and the rest was an unnatural dream! The sun
            set behind the Grange as we turned on to the moors; by that, I judged it to be six
            o’clock; and my companion halted half an hour, to inspect the park, and the gardens,
            and, probably, the place itself, as well as he could; so it was dark when we dismounted
            in the paved yard of the farmhouse, and your old fellow-servant, Joseph, issued out to
            receive us by the light of a dip candle. He did it with a courtesy that redounded to his
            credit. His first act was to elevate his torch to a level with my face, squint
            malignantly, project his under-lip, and turn away. Then he took the two horses, and led
            them into the stables; reappearing for the purpose of locking the outer gate, as if we
            lived in an ancient castle. Heathcliff stayed to speak to him, and I entered the
            kitchen—a dingy, untidy hole; I daresay you would not know it, it is so changed since it
            was in your charge. By the fire stood a ruffianly child, strong in limb and dirty in
            garb, with a look of Catherine in his eyes and about his mouth. </p>
         <p>  “This is Edgar’s legal
            nephew,” I reflected—“mine in a manner; I must shake hands, and—yes—I must kiss him. It
            is right to establish a good understanding at the beginning.” I approached, and,
            attempting to take his chubby fist, said—“How do you do, my dear?” He replied in a
            jargon I did not comprehend. “Shall you and I be friends, Hareton?” was my next essay at
            conversation. An oath, and a threat to set Throttler on me if I did not “frame off”
            rewarded my perseverance. “Hey, Throttler, lad!” whispered the little wretch, rousing a
            half-bred bull-dog from its lair in a corner. “Now, wilt thou be ganging?” he asked
            authoritatively. Love for my life urged a compliance; I stepped over the threshold to
            wait till the others should enter. Mr. Heathcliff was nowhere visible; and Joseph, whom
            I followed to the stables, and requested to accompany me in, after staring and muttering
            to himself, screwed up his nose and replied—“Mim! mim! mim! Did iver Christian body hear
            aught like it? Mincing un’ munching! How can I tell whet ye say?” “I say, I wish you to
            come with me into the house!” I cried, thinking him deaf, yet highly disgusted at his
            rudeness. “None o’ me! I getten summut else to do,” he answered, and continued his work;
            moving his lantern jaws meanwhile, and surveying my dress and countenance (the former a
            great deal too fine, but the latter, I’m sure, as sad as he could desire) with sovereign
            contempt. I walked round the yard, and through a wicket, to another door, at which I
            took the liberty of knocking, in hopes some more civil servant might show himself. After
            a short suspense, it was opened by a tall, gaunt man, without neckerchief, and otherwise
            extremely slovenly; his features were lost in masses of shaggy hair that hung on his
            shoulders; and his eyes, too, were like a ghostly Catherine’s with all their beauty
            annihilated. “What’s your business here?” he demanded, grimly. “Who are you?” “My name
            was Isabella Linton,” I replied. “You’ve seen me before, sir. I’m lately married to Mr.
            Heathcliff, and he has brought me here—I suppose by your permission.” </p>
         <p>    “Is he come back,
            then?” asked the hermit, glaring like a hungry wolf. “Yes—we came just now,” I said;
            “but he left me by the kitchen door; and when I would have gone in, your little boy
            played sentinel over the place, and frightened me off by the help of a bull-dog.” “It’s
            well the hellish villain has kept his word!” growled my future host, searching the
            darkness beyond me in expectation of discovering Heathcliff; and then he indulged in a
            soliloquy of execrations, and threats of what he would have done had the “fiend”
            deceived him. I repented having tried this second entrance, and was almost inclined to
            slip away before he finished cursing, but ere I could execute that intention, he ordered
            me in, and shut and re-fastened the door. There was a great fire, and that was all the
            light in the huge apartment, whose floor had grown a uniform grey; and the once
            brilliant pewter-dishes, which used to attract my gaze when I was a girl, partook of a
            similar obscurity, created by tarnish and dust. I inquired whether I might call the
            maid, and be conducted to a bedroom! Mr. Earnshaw vouchsafed no answer. He walked up and
            down, with his hands in his pockets, apparently quite forgetting my presence; and his
            abstraction was evidently so deep, and his whole aspect so misanthropical, that I shrank
            from disturbing him again. You’ll not be surprised, Ellen, at my feeling particularly
            cheerless, seated in worse than solitude on that inhospitable hearth, and remembering
            that four miles distant lay my delightful home, containing the only people I loved on
            earth; and there might as well be the Atlantic to part us, instead of those four miles:
            I could not overpass them! I questioned with myself—where must I turn for comfort?
            and—mind you don’t tell Edgar, or Catherine—above every sorrow beside, this rose
            pre-eminent: despair at finding nobody who could or would be my ally against Heathcliff!
            I had sought shelter at Wuthering Heights, almost gladly, because I was secured by that
            arrangement from living alone with him; but he knew the people we were coming amongst,
            and he did not fear their intermeddling. I sat and thought a doleful time: the clock
            struck eight, and nine, and still my companion paced to and fro, his head bent on his
            breast, and perfectly silent, unless a groan or a bitter ejaculation forced itself out
            at intervals. I listened to detect a woman’s voice in the house, and filled the interim
            with wild regrets and dismal anticipations, which, at last, spoke audibly in
            irrepressible sighing and weeping. I was not aware how openly I grieved, till Earnshaw
            halted opposite, in his measured walk, and gave me a stare of newly-awakened surprise.
            Taking advantage of his recovered attention, I exclaimed—“I’m tired with my journey, and
            I want to go to bed! Where is the maid-servant? Direct me to her, as she won’t come to
            me!” </p>
         <p>   “We have none,” he answered; “you must wait on yourself!” “Where must I sleep,
            then?” I sobbed; I was beyond regarding self-respect, weighed down by fatigue and
            wretchedness. “Joseph will show you Heathcliff’s chamber,” said he; “open that door—he’s
            in there.” I was going to obey, but he suddenly arrested me, and added in the strangest
            tone—“Be so good as to turn your lock, and draw your bolt—don’t omit it!” “Well!” I
            said. “But why, Mr. Earnshaw?” I did not relish the notion of deliberately fastening
            myself in with Heathcliff. “Look here!” he replied, pulling from his waistcoat a
            curiously-constructed pistol, having a double-edged spring knife attached to the barrel.
            “That’s a great tempter to a desperate man, is it not? I cannot resist going up with
            this every night, and trying his door. If once I find it open he’s done for; I do it
            invariably, even though the minute before I have been recalling a hundred reasons that
            should make me refrain: it is some devil that urges me to thwart my own schemes by
            killing him. You fight against that devil for love as long as you may; when the time
            comes, not all the angels in heaven shall save him!” I surveyed the weapon
            inquisitively. A hideous notion struck me: how powerful I should be possessing such an
            instrument! I took it from his hand, and touched the blade. He looked astonished at the
            expression my face assumed during a brief second: it was not horror, it was
            covetousness. He snatched the pistol back, jealously; shut the knife, and returned it to
            its concealment. “I don’t care if you tell him,” said he. “Put him on his guard, and
            watch for him. You know the terms we are on, I see: his danger does not shock you.”
            “What has Heathcliff done to you?” I asked. “In what has he wronged you, to warrant this
            appalling hatred? Wouldn’t it be wiser to bid him quit the house?” </p>
         <p>     “No!” thundered
            Earnshaw; “should he offer to leave me, he’s a dead man: persuade him to attempt it, and
            you are a murderess! Am I to lose all, without a chance of retrieval? Is Hareton to be a
            beggar? Oh, damnation! I will have it back; and I’ll have his gold too; and then his
            blood; and hell shall have his soul! It will be ten times <tc:racedesc type="explicit"
               >blacker</tc:racedesc> with that guest than ever it was before!” You’ve acquainted
            me, Ellen, with your old master’s habits. He is clearly on the verge of <tc:racedesc
               type="implied">madness</tc:racedesc>: he was so last night at least. I shuddered to
            be near him, and thought on the servant’s <tc:racedesc type="explicit">ill-bred
               moroseness</tc:racedesc> as comparatively agreeable. He now recommenced his moody
            walk, and I raised the latch, and escaped into the kitchen. Joseph was bending over the
            fire, peering into a large pan that swung above it; and a wooden bowl of oatmeal stood
            on the settle close by. The contents of the pan began to boil, and he turned to plunge
            his hand into the bowl; I conjectured that this preparation was probably for our supper,
            and, being hungry, I resolved it should be eatable; so, crying out sharply, “I’ll make
            the porridge!” I removed the vessel out of his reach, and proceeded to take off my hat
            and riding-habit. “Mr. Earnshaw,” I continued, “directs me to wait on myself: I will.
            I’m not going to act the lady among you, for fear I should starve.” “Gooid Lord!” he
            muttered, sitting down, and stroking his ribbed stockings from the knee to the ankle.
            “If there’s to be fresh ortherings—just when I getten used to two maisters, if I mun
            hev’ a mistress set o’er my heead, it’s like time to be flitting. I niver did think to
            see t’ day that I mud lave th’ owld place—but I doubt it’s nigh at hand!” </p>
         <p>  This
            lamentation drew no notice from me: I went briskly to work, sighing to remember a period
            when it would have been all merry fun; but compelled speedily to drive off the
            remembrance. It racked me to recall past happiness and the greater peril there was of
            conjuring up its apparition, the quicker the thible ran round, and the faster the
            handfuls of meal fell into the water. Joseph beheld my style of cookery with growing
            indignation. “Thear!” he ejaculated. “Hareton, thou willn’t sup thy porridge to-neeght;
            they’ll be naught but lumps as big as my neive. Thear, agean! I’d fling in bowl un’ all,
            if I wer ye! There, pale t’ guilp off, un’ then ye’ll hae done wi’t. Bang, bang. It’s a
            mercy t’ bothom isn’t deaved out!” It was rather a rough mess, I own, when poured into
            the basins; four had been provided, and a gallon pitcher of new milk was brought from
            the dairy, which Hareton seized and commenced drinking and spilling from the expansive
            lip. I expostulated, and desired that he should have his in a mug; affirming that I
            could not taste the liquid treated so dirtily. The old cynic chose to be vastly offended
            at this nicety; assuring me, repeatedly, that “the barn was every bit as good” as I,
            “and every bit as wollsome,” and wondering how I could fashion to be so conceited.
            Meanwhile, the infant ruffian continued sucking; and glowered up at me defyingly, as he
            slavered into the jug. “I shall have my supper in another room,” I said. “Have you no
            place you call a parlour?” “Parlour!” he echoed, sneeringly, “parlour! Nay, we’ve noa
            parlours. If yah dunnut loike wer company, there’s maister’s; un’ if yah dunnut loike
            maister, there’s us.” “Then I shall go upstairs,” I answered; “show me a chamber.” I put
            my basin on a tray, and went myself to fetch some more milk. With great grumblings, the
            fellow rose, and preceded me in my ascent: we mounted to the garrets; he opened a door,
            now and then, to look into the apartments we passed. “Here’s a rahm,” he said, at last,
            flinging back a cranky board on hinges. “It’s weel eneugh to ate a few porridge in.
            There’s a pack o’ corn i’ t’ corner, thear, meeterly clane; if ye’re feared o’ muckying
            yer grand silk cloes, spread yer hankerchir o’ t’ top on’t.” The “rahm” was a kind of
            lumber-hole smelling strong of malt and grain; various sacks of which articles were
            piled around, leaving a wide, bare space in the middle. “Why, man,” I exclaimed, facing
            him angrily, “this is not a place to sleep in. I wish to see my bed-room.” “Bed-rume!”
            he repeated, in a tone of mockery. “Yah’s see all t’ bed-rumes thear is—yon’s mine.” He
            pointed into the second garret, only differing from the first in being more naked about
            the walls, and having a large, low, curtainless bed, with an indigo-coloured quilt, at
            one end. “What do I want with yours?” I retorted. “I suppose Mr. Heathcliff does not
            lodge at the top of the house, does he?” “Oh! it’s Maister Hathecliff’s ye’re wanting?”
            cried he, as if making a new discovery. “Couldn’t ye ha’ said soa, at onst? un’ then, I
            mud ha’ telled ye, baht all this wark, that that’s just one ye cannut see—he allas keeps
            it locked, un’ nob’dy iver mells on’t but hisseln.” “You’ve a nice house, Joseph,” I
            could not refrain from observing, “and pleasant inmates; and I think the concentrated
            essence of all the madness in the world took up its abode in my brain the day I linked
            my fate with theirs! However, that is not to the present purpose—there are other rooms.
            For heaven’s sake be quick, and let me settle somewhere!” </p>
         <p>   He made no reply to this
            adjuration; only plodding doggedly down the wooden steps, and halting before an
            apartment which, from that halt and the superior quality of its furniture, I conjectured
            to be the best one. There was a carpet—a good one, but the pattern was obliterated by
            dust; a fireplace hung with cut-paper, dropping to pieces; a handsome oak-bedstead with
            ample crimson curtains of rather expensive material and modern make; but they had
            evidently experienced rough usage: the vallances hung in festoons, wrenched from their
            rings, and the iron rod supporting them was bent in an arc on one side, causing the
            drapery to trail upon the floor. The chairs were also damaged, many of them severely;
            and deep indentations deformed the panels of the walls. I was endeavouring to gather
            resolution for entering and taking possession, when my fool of a guide announced,—“This
            here is t’ maister’s.” My supper by this time was cold, my appetite gone, and my
            patience exhausted. I insisted on being provided instantly with a place of refuge, and
            means of repose. “Whear the divil?” began the religious elder. “The Lord bless us! The
            Lord forgie us! Whear the hell wold ye gang? ye marred, wearisome nowt! Ye’ve seen all
            but Hareton’s bit of a cham’er. There’s not another hoile to lig down in i’ th’ hahse!”
            I was so vexed, I flung my tray and its contents on the ground; and then seated myself
            at the stairs’-head, hid my face in my hands, and cried. “Ech! ech!” exclaimed Joseph.
            “Weel done, Miss Cathy! weel done, Miss Cathy! Howsiver, t’ maister sall just tum’le
            o’er them brocken pots; un’ then we’s hear summut; we’s hear how it’s to be.
            Gooid-for-naught madling! ye desarve pining fro’ this to Churstmas, flinging t’ precious
            gifts uh God under fooit i’ yer flaysome rages! But I’m mista’en if ye shew yer sperrit
            lang. Will Hathecliff bide sich bonny ways, think ye? I nobbut wish he may catch ye i’
            that plisky. I nobbut wish he may.” And so he went on scolding to his den beneath,
            taking the candle with him; and I remained in the dark. The period of reflection
            succeeding this silly action compelled me to admit the necessity of smothering my pride
            and choking my wrath, and bestirring myself to remove its effects. An unexpected aid
            presently appeared in the shape of Throttler, whom I now recognised as a son of our old
            Skulker: it had spent its whelphood at the Grange, and was given by my father to Mr.
            Hindley. I fancy it knew me: it pushed its nose against mine by way of salute, and then
            hastened to devour the porridge; while I groped from step to step, collecting the
            shattered earthenware, and drying the spatters of milk from the banister with my
            pocket-handkerchief. Our labours were scarcely over when I heard Earnshaw’s tread in the
            passage; my assistant tucked in his tail, and pressed to the wall; I stole into the
            nearest doorway. The dog’s endeavour to avoid him was unsuccessful; as I guessed by a
            scutter downstairs, and a prolonged, piteous yelping. I had better luck: he passed on,
            entered his chamber, and shut the door. Directly after Joseph came up with Hareton, to
            put him to bed. I had found shelter in Hareton’s room, and the old man, on seeing me,
            said,—“They’s rahm for boath ye un’ yer pride, now, I sud think i’ the hahse. It’s
            empty; ye may hev’ it all to yerseln, un’ Him as allas maks a third, i’ sich ill
            company!” </p>
         <p>      Gladly did I take advantage of this intimation; and the minute I flung myself
            into a chair, by the fire, I nodded, and slept. My slumber was deep and sweet, though
            over far too soon. Mr. Heathcliff awoke me; he had just come in, and demanded, in his
            loving manner, what I was doing there? I told him the cause of my staying up so
            late—that he had the key of our room in his pocket. The adjective our gave mortal
            offence. He swore it was not, nor ever should be, mine; and he’d—but I’ll not repeat his
            language, nor describe his habitual conduct: he is ingenious and unresting in seeking to
            gain my abhorrence! I sometimes wonder at him with an intensity that deadens my fear:
            yet, I assure you, a tiger or a venomous serpent could not rouse terror in me equal to
            that which he wakens. He told me of Catherine’s illness, and accused my brother of
            causing it; promising that I should be Edgar’s proxy in suffering, till he could get
            hold of him. I do hate him—I am wretched—I have been a fool! Beware of uttering one
            breath of this to any one at the Grange. I shall expect you every day—don’t disappoint
            me!—ISABELLA. </p>
         <p>Chapter 14</p>
         <p> As soon as I had perused this epistle I went to the master, and informed him that his
            sister had arrived at the Heights, and sent me a letter expressing her sorrow for Mrs.
            Linton’s situation, and her ardent desire to see him; with a wish that he would transmit
            to her, as early as possible, some token of forgiveness by me. “Forgiveness!” said
            Linton. “I have nothing to forgive her, Ellen. You may call at Wuthering Heights this
            afternoon, if you like, and say that I am not angry, but I’m sorry to have lost her;
            especially as I can never think she’ll be happy. It is out of the question my going to
            see her, however: we are eternally divided; and should she really wish to oblige me, let
            her persuade the <tc:racedesc type="implied">villain</tc:racedesc> she has married to leave the country.” “And you won’t write her
            a little note, sir?” I asked, imploringly. “No,” he answered. “It is needless. My
            communication with Heathcliff’s family shall be as sparing as his with mine. It shall
            not exist!” Mr. Edgar’s coldness depressed me exceedingly; and all the way from the
            Grange I puzzled my brains how to put more heart into what he said, when I repeated it;
            and how to soften his refusal of even a few lines to console Isabella. I daresay she had
            been on the watch for me since morning: I saw her looking through the lattice as I came
            up the garden causeway, and I nodded to her; but she drew back, as if afraid of being
            observed. I entered without knocking. There never was such a dreary, dismal scene as the
            formerly cheerful house presented! I must confess, that if I had been in the young
            lady’s place, I would, at least, have swept the hearth, and wiped the tables with a
            duster. But she already partook of the pervading spirit of neglect which encompassed
            her. Her pretty face was wan and listless; her hair uncurled: some locks hanging lankly
            down, and some carelessly twisted round her head. Probably she had not touched her dress
            since yester evening. Hindley was not there. Mr. Heathcliff sat at a table, turning over
            some papers in his pocket-book; but he rose when I appeared, asked me how I did, quite
            friendly, and offered me a chair. He was the only thing there that seemed decent; and I
            thought he never looked better. </p>
         <p>      So much had circumstances altered their positions, that
            he would certainly have struck a stranger as <tc:racedesc type="implied">a born and bred gentleman</tc:racedesc>; and his wife as
            a thorough little slattern! She came forward eagerly to greet me, and held out one hand
            to take the expected letter. I shook my head. She wouldn’t understand the hint, but
            followed me to a sideboard, where I went to lay my bonnet, and importuned me in a
            whisper to give her directly what I had brought. Heathcliff guessed the meaning of her
            manœuvres, and said—“If you have got anything for Isabella (as no doubt you have,
            Nelly), give it to her. You needn’t make a secret of it: we have no secrets between us.”
            “Oh, I have nothing,” I replied, thinking it best to speak the truth at once. “My master
            bid me tell his sister that she must not expect either a letter or a visit from him at
            present. He sends his love, ma’am, and his wishes for your happiness, and his pardon for
            the grief you have occasioned; but he thinks that after this time his household and the
            household here should drop intercommunication, as nothing could come of keeping it up.”
            Mrs. Heathcliff’s lip quivered slightly, and she returned to her seat in the window. Her
            husband took his stand on the hearthstone, near me, and began to put questions
            concerning Catherine. I told him as much as I thought proper of her illness, and he
            extorted from me, by cross-examination, most of the facts connected with its origin. I
            blamed her, as she deserved, for bringing it all on herself; and ended by hoping that he
            would follow Mr. Linton’s example and avoid future interference with his family, for
            good or evil. “Mrs. Linton is now just recovering,” I said; “she’ll never be like she
            was, but her life is spared; and if you really have a regard for her, you’ll shun
            crossing her way again: nay, you’ll move out of this country entirely; and that you may
            not regret it, I’ll inform you Catherine Linton is as different now from your old friend
            Catherine Earnshaw, as that young lady is different from me. Her appearance is changed
            greatly, her character much more so; and the person who is compelled, of necessity, to
            be her companion, will only sustain his affection hereafter by the remembrance of what
            she once was, by common humanity, and a sense of duty!” “That is quite possible,”
            remarked Heathcliff, forcing himself to seem calm: “quite possible that your master
            should have nothing but common humanity and a sense of duty to fall back upon. But do
            you imagine that I shall leave Catherine to his duty and humanity? and can you compare
            my feelings respecting Catherine to his? Before you leave this house, I must exact a
            promise from you that you’ll get me an interview with her: consent, or refuse, I will
            see her! What do you say?” “I say, Mr. Heathcliff,” I replied, “you must not: you never
            shall, through my means. Another encounter between you and the master would kill her
            altogether.” “With your aid that may be avoided,” he continued; “and should there be
            danger of such an event—should he be the cause of adding a single trouble more to her
            existence—why, I think I shall be justified in going to extremes! I wish you had
            sincerity enough to tell me whether Catherine would suffer greatly from his loss: the
            fear that she would restrains me. And there you see the distinction between our
            feelings: had he been in my place, and I in his, though I hated him with a hatred that
            turned my life to gall, I never would have raised a hand against him. You may look
            incredulous, if you please! I never would have banished him from her society as long as
            she desired his. The moment her regard ceased, I would have torn his heart out, and
            drunk his blood! But, till then—if you don’t believe me, you don’t know me—till then, I
            would have died by inches before I touched a single hair of his head!” “And yet,” I
            interrupted, “you have no scruples in completely ruining all hopes of her perfect
            restoration, by thrusting yourself into her remembrance now, when she has nearly
            forgotten you, and involving her in a new tumult of discord and distress.” “You suppose
            she has nearly forgotten me?” he said. </p>
         <p>   “Oh, Nelly! you know she has not! You know as
            well as I do, that for every thought she spends on Linton she spends a thousand on me!
            At a most miserable period of my life, I had a notion of the kind: it haunted me on my
            return to the neighbourhood last summer; but only her own assurance could make me admit
            the horrible idea again. And then, Linton would be nothing, nor Hindley, nor all the
            dreams that ever I dreamt. Two words would comprehend my future—death and hell:
            existence, after losing her, would be hell. Yet I was a fool to fancy for a moment that
            she valued Edgar Linton’s attachment more than mine. If he loved with all the powers of
            his puny being, he couldn’t love as much in eighty years as I could in a day. And
            Catherine has a heart as deep as I have: the sea could be as readily contained in that
            horse-trough as her whole affection be monopolised by him. Tush! He is scarcely a degree
            dearer to her than her dog, or her horse. It is not in him to be loved like me: how can
            she love in him what he has not?” “Catherine and Edgar are as fond of each other as any
            two people can be,” cried Isabella, with sudden vivacity. “No one has a right to talk in
            that manner, and I won’t hear my brother depreciated in silence!” “Your brother is
            wondrous fond of you too, isn’t he?” observed Heathcliff, scornfully. “He turns you
            adrift on the world with surprising alacrity.” “He is not aware of what I suffer,” she
            replied. “I didn’t tell him that.” “You have been telling him something, then: you have
            written, have you?” “To say that I was married, I did write—you saw the note.” “And
            nothing since?” “No.” “My young lady is looking sadly the worse for her change of
            condition,” I remarked. “Somebody’s love comes short in her case, obviously; whose, I
            may guess; but, perhaps, I shouldn’t say.” “I should guess it was her own,” said
            Heathcliff. “She degenerates into a mere slut! She is tired of trying to please me
            uncommonly early. You’d hardly credit it, but the very morrow of our wedding she was
            weeping to go home. However, she’ll suit this house so much the better for not being
            over nice, and I’ll take care she does not disgrace me by rambling abroad.” “Well, sir,”
            returned I, “I hope you’ll consider that Mrs. Heathcliff is accustomed to be looked
            after and waited on; and that she has been brought up like an only daughter, whom every
            one was ready to serve. You must let her have a maid to keep things tidy about her, and
            you must treat her kindly. Whatever be your notion of Mr. Edgar, you cannot doubt that
            she has a capacity for strong attachments, or she wouldn’t have abandoned the
            elegancies, and comforts, and friends of her former home, to fix contentedly, in such a
            wilderness as this, with you.” </p>
         <p>    “She abandoned them under a delusion,” he answered;
            “picturing in me a hero of romance, and expecting unlimited indulgences from my
            chivalrous devotion. I can hardly regard her in the light of a rational creature, so
            obstinately has she persisted in forming a fabulous notion of my character and acting on
            the false impressions she cherished. But, at last, I think she begins to know me: I
            don’t perceive the silly smiles and grimaces that provoked me at first; and the
            senseless incapability of discerning that I was in earnest when I gave her my opinion of
            her infatuation and herself. It was a marvellous effort of perspicacity to discover that
            I did not love her. I believed, at one time, no lessons could teach her that! And yet it
            is poorly learnt; for this morning she announced, as a piece of appalling intelligence,
            that I had actually succeeded in making her hate me! A positive labour of Hercules, I
            assure you! If it be achieved, I have cause to return thanks. Can I trust your
            assertion, Isabella? Are you sure you hate me? If I let you alone for half a day, won’t
            you come sighing and wheedling to me again? I daresay she would rather I had seemed all
            tenderness before you: it wounds her vanity to have the truth exposed. But I don’t care
            who knows that the passion was wholly on one side: and I never told her a lie about it.
            She cannot accuse me of showing one bit of deceitful softness. The first thing she saw
            me do, on coming out of the Grange, was to hang up her little dog; and when she pleaded
            for it, the first words I uttered were a wish that I had the hanging of every being
            belonging to her, except one: possibly she took that exception for herself. But no
            brutality disgusted her: I suppose she has an innate admiration of it, if only her
            precious person were secure from injury! Now, was it not the depth of absurdity—of
            genuine idiocy, for that pitiful, slavish, mean-minded brach to dream that I could love
            her? Tell your master, Nelly, that I never, in all my life, met with such an abject
            thing as she is. She even disgraces the name of Linton; and I’ve sometimes relented,
            from pure lack of invention, in my experiments on what she could endure, and still creep
            shamefully cringing back! But tell him, also, to set his fraternal and magisterial heart
            at ease: that I keep strictly within the limits of the law. I have avoided, up to this
            period, giving her the slightest right to claim a separation; and, what’s more, she’d
            thank nobody for dividing us. If she desired to go, she might: the nuisance of her
            presence outweighs the gratification to be derived from tormenting her!” </p>
         <p>     “Mr.
            Heathcliff,” said I, “this is the talk of a <tc:racedesc type="explicit">madman</tc:racedesc>; your wife, most likely, is convinced
            you are mad; and, for that reason, she has borne with you hitherto: but now that you say
            she may go, she’ll doubtless avail herself of the permission. You are not so bewitched,
            ma’am, are you, as to remain with him of your own accord?” “Take care, Ellen!” answered
            Isabella, her eyes sparkling irefully; there was no misdoubting by their expression the
            full success of her partner’s endeavours to make himself detested. “Don’t put faith in a
            single word he speaks. He’s a lying fiend! a monster, and not a human being! I’ve been
            told I might leave him before; and I’ve made the attempt, but I dare not repeat it!
            Only, Ellen, promise you’ll not mention a syllable of his infamous conversation to my
            brother or Catherine. Whatever he may pretend, he wishes to provoke Edgar to
            desperation: he says he has married me on purpose to obtain power over him; and he
            sha’n’t obtain it—I’ll die first! I just hope, I pray, that he may forget his diabolical
            prudence and kill me! The single pleasure I can imagine is to die, or to see him dead!”
            “There—that will do for the present!” said Heathcliff. “If you are called upon in a
            court of law, you’ll remember her language, Nelly! And take a good look at that
            countenance: she’s near the point which would suit me. No; you’re not fit to be your own
            guardian, Isabella, now; and I, being your legal protector, must retain you in my
            custody, however distasteful the obligation may be. Go upstairs; I have something to say
            to Ellen Dean in private. That’s not the way: upstairs, I tell you! Why, this is the
            road upstairs, child!” He seized, and thrust her from the room; and returned
            muttering—“I have no pity! I have no pity! The more the worms writhe, the more I yearn
            to crush out their entrails! It is a moral teething; and I grind with greater energy in
            proportion to the increase of pain.” “Do you understand what the word pity means?” I
            said, hastening to resume my bonnet. “Did you ever feel a touch of it in your life?”
            “Put that down!” he interrupted, perceiving my intention to depart. “You are not going
            yet. Come here now, Nelly: I must either persuade or compel you to aid me in fulfilling
            my determination to see Catherine, and that without delay. I swear that I meditate no
            harm: I don’t desire to cause any disturbance, or to exasperate or insult Mr. Linton; I
            only wish to hear from herself how she is, and why she has been ill; and to ask if
            anything that I could do would be of use to her. Last night I was in the Grange garden
            six hours, and I’ll return there to-night; and every night I’ll haunt the place, and
            every day, till I find an opportunity of entering. If Edgar Linton meets me, I shall not
            hesitate to knock him down, and give him enough to insure his quiescence while I stay.
            If his servants oppose me, I shall threaten them off with these pistols. But wouldn’t it
            be better to prevent my coming in contact with them, or their master? And you could do
            it so easily. I’d warn you when I came, and then you might let me in unobserved, as soon
            as she was alone, and watch till I departed, your conscience quite calm: you would be
            hindering mischief.” </p>
         <p>    I protested against playing that treacherous part in my employer’s
            house: and, besides, I urged the cruelty and selfishness of his destroying Mrs. Linton’s
            tranquillity for his satisfaction. “The commonest occurrence startles her painfully,” I
            said. “She’s all nerves, and she couldn’t bear the surprise, I’m positive. Don’t
            persist, sir! or else I shall be obliged to inform my master of your designs; and he’ll
            take measures to secure his house and its inmates from any such unwarrantable
            intrusions!” “In that case I’ll take measures to secure you, woman!” exclaimed
            Heathcliff; “you shall not leave Wuthering Heights till to-morrow morning. It is a
            foolish story to assert that Catherine could not bear to see me; and as to surprising
            her, I don’t desire it: you must prepare her—ask her if I may come. You say she never
            mentions my name, and that I am never mentioned to her. To whom should she mention me if
            I am a forbidden topic in the house? She thinks you are all spies for her husband. Oh,
            I’ve no doubt she’s in hell among you! I guess by her silence, as much as anything, what
            she feels. You say she is often restless, and anxious-looking: is that a proof of
            tranquillity? You talk of her mind being unsettled. How the devil could it be otherwise
            in her frightful isolation? And that insipid, paltry creature attending her from duty
            and humanity! From pity and charity! He might as well plant an oak in a flower-pot, and
            expect it to thrive, as imagine he can restore her to vigour in the soil of his shallow
            cares! Let us settle it at once: will you stay here, and am I to fight my way to
            Catherine over Linton and his footman? Or will you be my friend, as you have been
            hitherto, and do what I request? Decide! because there is no reason for my lingering
            another minute, if you persist in your stubborn ill-nature!” Well, Mr. Lockwood, I
            argued and complained, and flatly refused him fifty times; but in the long run he forced
            me to an agreement. I engaged to carry a letter from him to my mistress; and should she
            consent, I promised to let him have intelligence of Linton’s next absence from home,
            when he might come, and get in as he was able: I wouldn’t be there, and my
            fellow-servants should be equally out of the way. Was it right or wrong? I fear it was
            wrong, though expedient. I thought I prevented another explosion by my compliance; and I
            thought, too, it might create a favourable crisis in Catherine’s mental illness: and
            then I remembered Mr. Edgar’s stern rebuke of my carrying tales; and I tried to smooth
            away all disquietude on the subject, by affirming, with frequent iteration, that that
            betrayal of trust, if it merited so harsh an appellation, should be the last.
            Notwithstanding, my journey homeward was sadder than my journey thither; and many
            misgivings I had, ere I could prevail on myself to put the missive into Mrs. Linton’s
            hand. But here is Kenneth; I’ll go down, and tell him how much better you are. My
            history is dree, as we say, and will serve to while away another morning. * * * * *</p>
         <p>  Dree, and dreary! I reflected as the good woman descended to receive the doctor: and not
            exactly of the kind which I should have chosen to amuse me. But never mind! I’ll extract
            wholesome medicines from Mrs. Dean’s bitter herbs; and firstly, let me beware of the
            fascination that lurks in Catherine Heathcliff’s brilliant eyes. I should be in a
            curious taking if I surrendered my heart to that young person, and the daughter turned
            out a second edition of the mother. </p>
         <p>Chapter 15</p>
         <p> Another week over—and I am so many days nearer health, and spring! I have now heard all
            my neighbour’s history, at different sittings, as the housekeeper could spare time from
            more important occupations. I’ll continue it in her own words, only a little condensed.
            She is, on the whole, a very fair narrator, and I don’t think I could improve her style.
            * * * * * In the evening, she said, the evening of my visit to the Heights, I knew, as
            well as if I saw him, that Mr. Heathcliff was about the place; and I shunned going out,
            because I still carried his letter in my pocket, and didn’t want to be threatened or
            teased any more. I had made up my mind not to give it till my master went somewhere, as
            I could not guess how its receipt would affect Catherine. The consequence was, that it
            did not reach her before the lapse of three days. The fourth was Sunday, and I brought
            it into her room after the family were gone to church. There was a man servant left to
            keep the house with me, and we generally made a practice of locking the doors during the
            hours of service; but on that occasion the weather was so warm and pleasant that I set
            them wide open, and, to fulfil my engagement, as I knew who would be coming, I told my
            companion that the mistress wished very much for some oranges, and he must run over to
            the village and get a few, to be paid for on the morrow. He departed, and I went
            upstairs. Mrs. Linton sat in a loose white dress, with a light shawl over her shoulders,
            in the recess of the open window, as usual. Her thick, long hair had been partly removed
            at the beginning of her illness, and now she wore it simply combed in its natural
            tresses over her temples and neck. Her appearance was altered, as I had told Heathcliff;
            but when she was calm, there seemed unearthly beauty in the change. The flash of her
            eyes had been succeeded by a dreamy and melancholy softness; they no longer gave the
            impression of looking at the objects around her: they appeared always to gaze beyond,
            and far beyond—you would have said out of this world. Then, the paleness of her face—its
            haggard aspect having vanished as she recovered flesh—and the peculiar expression
            arising from her mental state, though painfully suggestive of their causes, added to the
            touching interest which she awakened; and—invariably to me, I know, and to any person
            who saw her, I should think—refuted more tangible proofs of convalescence, and stamped
            her as one doomed to decay. A book lay spread on the sill before her, and the scarcely
            perceptible wind fluttered its leaves at intervals. I believe Linton had laid it there:
            for she never endeavoured to divert herself with reading, or occupation of any kind, and
            he would spend many an hour in trying to entice her attention to some subject which had
            formerly been her amusement. She was conscious of his aim, and in her better moods
            endured his efforts placidly, only showing their uselessness by now and then suppressing
            a wearied sigh, and checking him at last with the saddest of smiles and kisses. At other
            times, she would turn petulantly away, and hide her face in her hands, or even push him
            off angrily; and then he took care to let her alone, for he was certain of doing no
            good. Gimmerton chapel bells were still ringing; and the full, mellow flow of the beck
            in the valley came soothingly on the ear. It was a sweet substitute for the yet absent
            murmur of the summer foliage, which drowned that music about the Grange when the trees
            were in leaf. </p>
         <p>   At Wuthering Heights it always sounded on quiet days following a great
            thaw or a season of steady rain. And of Wuthering Heights Catherine was thinking as she
            listened: that is, if she thought or listened at all; but she had the vague, distant
            look I mentioned before, which expressed no recognition of material things either by ear
            or eye. “There’s a letter for you, Mrs. Linton,” I said, gently inserting it in one hand
            that rested on her knee. “You must read it immediately, because it wants an answer.
            Shall I break the seal?” “Yes,” she answered, without altering the direction of her
            eyes. I opened it—it was very short. “Now,” I continued, “read it.” She drew away her
            hand, and let it fall. I replaced it in her lap, and stood waiting till it should please
            her to glance down; but that movement was so long delayed that at last I resumed—“Must I
            read it, ma’am? It is from Mr. Heathcliff.” There was a start and a troubled gleam of
            recollection, and a struggle to arrange her ideas. She lifted the letter, and seemed to
            peruse it; and when she came to the signature she sighed: yet still I found she had not
            gathered its import, for, upon my desiring to hear her reply, she merely pointed to the
            name, and gazed at me with mournful and questioning eagerness. “Well, he wishes to see
            you,” said I, guessing her need of an interpreter. “He’s in the garden by this time, and
            impatient to know what answer I shall bring.” As I spoke, I observed a large dog lying
            on the sunny grass beneath raise its ears as if about to bark, and then smoothing them
            back, announce, by a wag of the tail, that some one approached whom it did not consider
            a stranger. Mrs. Linton bent forward, and listened breathlessly. The minute after a step
            traversed the hall; the open house was too tempting for Heathcliff to resist walking in:
            most likely he supposed that I was inclined to shirk my promise, and so resolved to
            trust to his own audacity. With straining eagerness Catherine gazed towards the entrance
            of her chamber. He did not hit the right room directly: she motioned me to admit him,
            but he found it out ere I could reach the door, and in a stride or two was at her side,
            and had her grasped in his arms. He neither spoke nor loosed his hold for some five
            minutes, during which period he bestowed more kisses than ever he gave in his life
            before, I daresay: but then my mistress had kissed him first, and I plainly saw that he
            could hardly bear, for downright agony, to look into her face! The same conviction had
            stricken him as me, from the instant he beheld her, that there was no prospect of
            ultimate recovery there—she was fated, sure to die. </p>
         <p>  “Oh, Cathy! Oh, my life! how can I
            bear it?” was the first sentence he uttered, in a tone that did not seek to disguise his
            despair. And now he stared at her so earnestly that I thought the very intensity of his
            gaze would bring tears into his eyes; but they burned with anguish: they did not melt.
            “What now?” said Catherine, leaning back, and returning his look with a suddenly clouded
            brow: her humour was a mere vane for constantly varying caprices. “You and Edgar have
            broken my heart, Heathcliff! And you both come to bewail the deed to me, as if you were
            the people to be pitied! I shall not pity you, not I. You have killed me—and thriven on
            it, I think. How strong you are! How many years do you mean to live after I am gone?”
            Heathcliff had knelt on one knee to embrace her; he attempted to rise, but she seized
            his hair, and kept him down. “I wish I could hold you,” she continued, bitterly, “till
            we were both dead! I shouldn’t care what you suffered. I care nothing for your
            sufferings. Why shouldn’t you suffer? I do! Will you forget me? Will you be happy when I
            am in the earth? Will you say twenty years hence, ‘That’s the grave of Catherine
            Earnshaw? I loved her long ago, and was wretched to lose her; but it is past. I’ve loved
            many others since: my children are dearer to me than she was; and, at death, I shall not
            rejoice that I am going to her: I shall be sorry that I must leave them!’ Will you say
            so, Heathcliff?” “Don’t torture me till I’m as mad as yourself,” cried he, wrenching his
            head free, and grinding his teeth. The two, to a cool spectator, made a strange and
            fearful picture. Well might Catherine deem that heaven would be a land of exile to her,
            unless with her mortal body she cast away her moral character also. Her present
            countenance had a wild vindictiveness in its white cheek, and a bloodless lip and
            scintillating eye; and she retained in her closed fingers a portion of the locks she had
            been grasping. As to her companion, while raising himself with one hand, he had taken
            her arm with the other; and so inadequate was his stock of gentleness to the
            requirements of her condition, that on his letting go I saw four distinct impressions
            left blue in the colourless skin. “Are you possessed with a devil,” he pursued,
            <tc:racedesc type="explicit">savagely</tc:racedesc>, “to talk in that manner to me when you are dying? Do you reflect that all
            those words will be branded in my memory, and eating deeper eternally after you have
            left me? You know you lie to say I have killed you: and, Catherine, you know that I
            could as soon forget you as my existence! Is it not sufficient for your infernal
            selfishness, that while you are at peace I shall writhe in the torments of hell?” </p>
         <p>   “I
            shall not be at peace,” moaned Catherine, recalled to a sense of physical weakness by
            the violent, unequal throbbing of her heart, which beat visibly and audibly under this
            excess of agitation. She said nothing further till the paroxysm was over; then she
            continued, more kindly— “I’m not wishing you greater torment than I have, Heathcliff. I
            only wish us never to be parted: and should a word of mine distress you hereafter, think
            I feel the same distress underground, and for my own sake, forgive me! Come here and
            kneel down again! You never harmed me in your life. Nay, if you nurse anger, that will
            be worse to remember than my harsh words! Won’t you come here again? Do!” Heathcliff
            went to the back of her chair, and leant over, but not so far as to let her see his
            face, which was livid with emotion. She bent round to look at him; he would not permit
            it: turning abruptly, he walked to the fireplace, where he stood, silent, with his back
            towards us. Mrs. Linton’s glance followed him suspiciously: every movement woke a new
            sentiment in her. After a pause and a prolonged gaze, she resumed; addressing me in
            accents of indignant disappointment:— “Oh, you see, Nelly, he would not relent a moment
            to keep me out of the grave. That is how I’m loved! Well, never mind. That is not my
            Heathcliff. I shall love mine yet; and take him with me: he’s in my soul. And,” added
            she musingly, “the thing that irks me most is this shattered prison, after all. I’m
            tired of being enclosed here. I’m wearying to escape into that glorious world, and to be
            always there: not seeing it dimly through tears, and yearning for it through the walls
            of an aching heart: but really with it, and in it. Nelly, you think you are better and
            more fortunate than I; in full health and strength: you are sorry for me—very soon that
            will be altered. I shall be sorry for you. I shall be incomparably beyond and above you
            all. I wonder he won’t be near me!” She went on to herself. “I thought he wished it.
            Heathcliff, dear! you should not be sullen now. Do come to me, Heathcliff.” In her
            eagerness she rose and supported herself on the arm of the chair. At that earnest appeal
            he turned to her, looking absolutely desperate. His eyes, wide and wet, at last flashed
            fiercely on her; his breast heaved convulsively. An instant they held asunder, and then
            how they met I hardly saw, but Catherine made a spring, and he caught her, and they were
            locked in an embrace from which I thought my mistress would never be released alive: in
            fact, to my eyes, she seemed directly insensible. He flung himself into the nearest
            seat, and on my approaching hurriedly to ascertain if she had fainted, he gnashed at me,
            and foamed like a mad dog, and gathered her to him with greedy jealousy. I did not feel
            as if I were in the company of a creature of my own species: it appeared that he would
            not understand, though I spoke to him; so I stood off, and held my tongue, in great
            perplexity. A movement of Catherine’s relieved me a little presently: she put up her
            hand to clasp his neck, and bring her cheek to his as he held her; while he, in return,
            covering her with frantic caresses, said wildly— “You teach me now how cruel you’ve
            been—cruel and false. Why did you despise me? Why did you betray your own heart, Cathy?
            I have not one word of comfort. You deserve this. You have killed yourself. Yes, you may
            kiss me, and cry; and wring out my kisses and tears: they’ll blight you—they’ll damn
            you. You loved me—then what right had you to leave me? What right—answer me—for the poor
            fancy you felt for Linton? Because misery and degradation, and death, and nothing that
            God or Satan could inflict would have parted us, you, of your own will, did it. I have
            not broken your heart—you have broken it; and in breaking it, you have broken mine. So
            much the worse for me that I am strong. Do I want to live? What kind of living will it
            be when you—oh, God! would you like to live with your soul in the grave?” “Let me alone.
            Let me alone,” sobbed Catherine. “If I’ve done wrong, I’m dying for it. It is enough!
            You left me too: but I won’t upbraid you! I forgive you. Forgive me!”</p>
         <p>    “It is hard to
            forgive, and to look at those eyes, and feel those wasted hands,” he answered. “Kiss me
            again; and don’t let me see your eyes! I forgive what you have done to me. I love my
            murderer—but yours! How can I?” They were silent—their faces hid against each other, and
            washed by each other’s tears. At least, I suppose the weeping was on both sides; as it
            seemed Heathcliff could weep on a great occasion like this. I grew very uncomfortable,
            meanwhile; for the afternoon wore fast away, the man whom I had sent off returned from
            his errand, and I could distinguish, by the shine of the western sun up the valley, a
            concourse thickening outside Gimmerton chapel porch. “Service is over,” I announced. “My
            master will be here in half an hour.” Heathcliff groaned a curse, and strained Catherine
            closer: she never moved. Ere long I perceived a group of the servants passing up the
            road towards the kitchen wing. Mr. Linton was not far behind; he opened the gate himself
            and sauntered slowly up, probably enjoying the lovely afternoon that breathed as soft as
            summer. “Now he is here,” I exclaimed. “For heaven’s sake, hurry down! You’ll not meet
            any one on the front stairs. Do be quick; and stay among the trees till he is fairly
            in.” “I must go, Cathy,” said Heathcliff, seeking to extricate himself from his
            companion’s arms. “But if I live, I’ll see you again before you are asleep. I won’t
            stray five yards from your window.” “You must not go!” she answered, holding him as
            firmly as her strength allowed. “You shall not, I tell you.” “For one hour,” he pleaded
            earnestly. “Not for one minute,” she replied. “I must—Linton will be up immediately,”
            persisted the alarmed intruder. He would have risen, and unfixed her fingers by the
            act—she clung fast, gasping: there was mad resolution in her face. “No!” she shrieked.
            “Oh, don’t, don’t go. It is the last time! Edgar will not hurt us. Heathcliff, I shall
            die! I shall die!” “Damn the fool! There he is,” cried Heathcliff, sinking back into his
            seat. “Hush, my darling! Hush, hush, Catherine! I’ll stay. If he shot me so, I’d expire
            with a blessing on my lips.” And there they were fast again. I heard my master mounting
            the stairs—the cold sweat ran from my forehead: I was horrified. “Are you going to
            listen to her ravings?” I said, passionately. “She does not know what she says. Will you
            ruin her, because she has not wit to help herself? Get up! You could be free instantly.
            That is the most diabolical deed that ever you did. We are all done for—master,
            mistress, and servant.” I wrung my hands, and cried out; and Mr. Linton hastened his
            step at the noise. In the midst of my agitation, I was sincerely glad to observe that
            Catherine’s arms had fallen relaxed, and her head hung down. “She’s fainted, or dead,” I
            thought: “so much the better. Far better that she should be dead, than lingering a
            burden and a misery-maker to all about her.” Edgar sprang to his unbidden guest,
            blanched with astonishment and rage. What he meant to do I cannot tell; however, the
            other stopped all demonstrations, at once, by placing the lifeless-looking form in his
            arms. “Look there!” he said. </p>
         <p>      “Unless you be a fiend, help her first—then you shall speak
            to me!” He walked into the parlour, and sat down. Mr. Linton summoned me, and with great
            difficulty, and after resorting to many means, we managed to restore her to sensation;
            but she was all bewildered; she sighed, and moaned, and knew nobody. Edgar, in his
            anxiety for her, forgot her hated friend. I did not. I went, at the earliest
            opportunity, and besought him to depart; affirming that Catherine was better, and he
            should hear from me in the morning how she passed the night. “I shall not refuse to go
            out of doors,” he answered; “but I shall stay in the garden: and, Nelly, mind you keep
            your word to-morrow. I shall be under those larch-trees. Mind! or I pay another visit,
            whether Linton be in or not.” He sent a rapid glance through the half-open door of the
            chamber, and, ascertaining that what I stated was apparently true, delivered the house
            of his luckless presence. </p>
      <p>Chapter 16</p>
         <p> About twelve o’clock that night was born the Catherine you saw at Wuthering Heights: a
            puny, seven-months’ child; and two hours after the mother died, having never recovered
            sufficient consciousness to miss Heathcliff, or know Edgar. The latter’s distraction at
            his bereavement is a subject too painful to be dwelt on; its after-effects showed how
            deep the sorrow sunk. A great addition, in my eyes, was his being left without an heir.
            I bemoaned that, as I gazed on the feeble orphan; and I mentally abused old Linton for
            (what was only natural partiality) the securing his estate to his own daughter, instead
            of his son’s. An unwelcomed infant it was, poor thing! It might have wailed out of life,
            and nobody cared a morsel, during those first hours of existence. We redeemed the
            neglect afterwards; but its beginning was as friendless as its end is likely to be. Next
            morning—bright and cheerful out of doors—stole softened in through the blinds of the
            silent room, and suffused the couch and its occupant with a mellow, tender glow. Edgar
            Linton had his head laid on the pillow, and his eyes shut. His young and fair features
            were almost as deathlike as those of the form beside him, and almost as fixed: but his
            was the hush of exhausted anguish, and hers of perfect peace. Her brow smooth, her lids
            closed, her lips wearing the expression of a smile; no angel in heaven could be more
            beautiful than she appeared. And I partook of the infinite calm in which she lay: my
            mind was never in a holier frame than while I gazed on that untroubled image of Divine
            rest. I instinctively echoed the words she had uttered a few hours before: “Incomparably
            beyond and above us all! Whether still on earth or now in heaven, her spirit is at home
            with God!” I don’t know if it be a peculiarity in me, but I am seldom otherwise than
            happy while watching in the chamber of death, should no frenzied or despairing mourner
            share the duty with me. I see a repose that neither earth nor hell can break, and I feel
            an assurance of the endless and shadowless hereafter—the Eternity they have
            entered—where life is boundless in its duration, and love in its sympathy, and joy in
            its fulness. I noticed on that occasion how much selfishness there is even in a love
            like Mr. Linton’s, when he so regretted Catherine’s blessed release! To be sure, one
            might have doubted, after the wayward and impatient existence she had led, whether she
            merited a haven of peace at last. One might doubt in seasons of cold reflection; but not
            then, in the presence of her corpse. It asserted its own tranquillity, which seemed a
            pledge of equal quiet to its former inhabitant. Do you believe such people are happy in
            the other world, sir? I’d give a great deal to know. I declined answering Mrs. Dean’s
            question, which struck me as something heterodox. She proceeded: Retracing the course of
            Catherine Linton, I fear we have no right to think she is; but we’ll leave her with her
            Maker. </p>
         <p>   The master looked asleep, and I ventured soon after sunrise to quit the room and
            steal out to the pure refreshing air. The servants thought me gone to shake off the
            drowsiness of my protracted watch; in reality, my chief motive was seeing Mr.
            Heathcliff. If he had remained among the larches all night, he would have heard nothing
            of the stir at the Grange; unless, perhaps, he might catch the gallop of the messenger
            going to Gimmerton. If he had come nearer, he would probably be aware, from the lights
            flitting to and fro, and the opening and shutting of the outer doors, that all was not
            right within. I wished, yet feared, to find him. I felt the terrible news must be told,
            and I longed to get it over; but how to do it I did not know. He was there—at least, a
            few yards further in the park; leant against an old ash-tree, his hat off, and his hair
            soaked with the dew that had gathered on the budded branches, and fell pattering round
            him. He had been standing a long time in that position, for I saw a pair of ousels
            passing and repassing scarcely three feet from him, busy in building their nest, and
            regarding his proximity no more than that of a piece of timber. They flew off at my
            approach, and he raised his eyes and spoke:—“She’s dead!” he said; “I’ve not waited for
            you to learn that. Put your handkerchief away—don’t snivel before me. Damn you all! she
            wants none of your tears!” I was weeping as much for him as her: we do sometimes pity
            creatures that have none of the feeling either for themselves or others. When I first
            looked into his face, I perceived that he had got intelligence of the catastrophe; and a
            foolish notion struck me that his heart was quelled and he prayed, because his lips
            moved and his gaze was bent on the ground. “Yes, she’s dead!” I answered, checking my
            sobs and drying my cheeks. “Gone to heaven, I hope; where we may, every one, join her,
            if we take due warning and leave our evil ways to follow good!” “Did she take due
            warning, then?” asked Heathcliff, attempting a sneer. “Did she die like a saint? Come,
            give me a true history of the event. How did—?” He endeavoured to pronounce the name,
            but could not manage it; and compressing his mouth he held a silent combat with his
            inward agony, defying, meanwhile, my sympathy with an unflinching, ferocious stare. “How
            did she die?” he resumed, at last—fain, notwithstanding his hardihood, to have a support
            behind him; for, after the struggle, he trembled, in spite of himself, to his very
            finger-ends. “Poor wretch!” I thought; “you have a heart and nerves the same as your
            brother men! Why should you be anxious to conceal them? Your pride cannot blind God! You
            tempt him to wring them, till he forces a cry of humiliation.” “Quietly as a lamb!” I
            answered, aloud. </p>
         <p>  “She drew a sigh, and stretched herself, like a child reviving, and
            sinking again to sleep; and five minutes after I felt one little pulse at her heart, and
            nothing more!” “And—did she ever mention me?” he asked, hesitating, as if he dreaded the
            answer to his question would introduce details that he could not bear to hear. “Her
            senses never returned: she recognised nobody from the time you left her,” I said. “She
            lies with a sweet smile on her face; and her latest ideas wandered back to pleasant
            early days. Her life closed in a gentle dream—may she wake as kindly in the other
            world!” “May she wake in torment!” he cried, with frightful vehemence, stamping his
            foot, and groaning in a sudden paroxysm of ungovernable passion. “Why, she’s a liar to
            the end! Where is she? Not there—not in heaven—not perished—where? Oh! you said you
            cared nothing for my sufferings! And I pray one prayer—I repeat it till my tongue
            stiffens—Catherine Earnshaw, may you not rest as long as I am living; you said I killed
            you—haunt me, then! The murdered do haunt their murderers, I believe. I know that ghosts
            have wandered on earth. Be with me always—take any form—drive me mad! only do not leave
            me in this abyss, where I cannot find you! Oh, God! it is unutterable! I cannot live
            without my life! I cannot live without my soul!” He dashed his head against the knotted
            trunk; and, lifting up his eyes, howled, not like a man, but like a <tc:racedesc type="explicit">savage</tc:racedesc> beast being
            goaded to death with knives and spears. I observed several splashes of blood about the
            bark of the tree, and his hand and forehead were both stained; probably the scene I
            witnessed was a repetition of others acted during the night. It hardly moved my
            compassion—it appalled me: still, I felt reluctant to quit him so. But the moment he
            recollected himself enough to notice me watching, he thundered a command for me to go,
            and I obeyed. He was beyond my skill to quiet or console! Mrs. Linton’s funeral was
            appointed to take place on the Friday following her decease; and till then her coffin
            remained uncovered, and strewn with flowers and scented leaves, in the great
            drawing-room. Linton spent his days and nights there, a sleepless guardian; and—a
            circumstance concealed from all but me—Heathcliff spent his nights, at least, outside,
            equally a stranger to repose. I held no communication with him; still, I was conscious
            of his design to enter, if he could; and on the Tuesday, a little after dark, when my
            master, from sheer fatigue, had been compelled to retire a couple of hours, I went and
            opened one of the windows; moved by his perseverance to give him a chance of bestowing
            on the faded image of his idol one final adieu. He did not omit to avail himself of the
            opportunity, cautiously and briefly; too cautiously to betray his presence by the
            slightest noise. Indeed, I shouldn’t have discovered that he had been there, except for
            the disarrangement of the drapery about the corpse’s face, and for observing on the
            floor a curl of light hair, fastened with a silver thread; which, on examination, I
            ascertained to have been taken from a locket hung round Catherine’s neck. </p>
         <p> Heathcliff had
            opened the trinket and cast out its contents, replacing them by a black lock of his own.
            I twisted the two, and enclosed them together. Mr. Earnshaw was, of course, invited to
            attend the remains of his sister to the grave; he sent no excuse, but he never came; so
            that, besides her husband, the mourners were wholly composed of tenants and servants.
            Isabella was not asked. The place of Catherine’s interment, to the surprise of the
            villagers, was neither in the chapel under the carved monument of the Lintons, nor yet
            by the tombs of her own relations, outside. It was dug on a green slope in a corner of
            the kirkyard, where the wall is so low that heath and bilberry-plants have climbed over
            it from the moor; and peat-mould almost buries it. Her husband lies in the same spot
            now; and they have each a simple headstone above, and a plain grey block at their feet,
            to mark the graves. </p>
         <p>Chapter 17</p>
          <p> That Friday made the last of our fine days for a month. In the evening the weather
            broke: the wind shifted from south to north-east, and brought rain first, and then sleet
            and snow. On the morrow one could hardly imagine that there had been three weeks of
            summer: the primroses and crocuses were hidden under wintry drifts; the larks were
            silent, the young leaves of the early trees smitten and blackened. And dreary, and
            chill, and dismal, that morrow did creep over! My master kept his room; I took
            possession of the lonely parlour, converting it into a nursery: and there I was, sitting
            with the moaning doll of a child laid on my knee; rocking it to and fro, and watching,
            meanwhile, the still driving flakes build up the uncurtained window, when the door
            opened, and some person entered, out of breath and laughing! My anger was greater than
            my astonishment for a minute. I supposed it one of the maids, and I cried—“Have done!
            How dare you show your giddiness here? What would Mr. Linton say if he heard you?”
            “Excuse me!” answered a familiar voice; “but I know Edgar is in bed, and I cannot stop
            myself.” With that the speaker came forward to the fire, panting and holding her hand to
            her side. “I have run the whole way from Wuthering Heights!” she continued, after a
            pause; “except where I’ve flown. I couldn’t count the number of falls I’ve had. Oh, I’m
            aching all over! Don’t be alarmed! There shall be an explanation as soon as I can give
            it; only just have the goodness to step out and order the carriage to take me on to
            Gimmerton, and tell a servant to seek up a few clothes in my wardrobe.” The intruder was
            Mrs. Heathcliff. She certainly seemed in no laughing predicament: her hair streamed on
            her shoulders, dripping with snow and water; she was dressed in the girlish dress she
            commonly wore, befitting her age more than her position: a low frock with short sleeves,
            and nothing on either head or neck. The frock was of light silk, and clung to her with
            wet, and her feet were protected merely by thin slippers; add to this a deep cut under
            one ear, which only the cold prevented from bleeding profusely, a white face scratched
            and bruised, and a frame hardly able to support itself through fatigue; and you may
            fancy my first fright was not much allayed when I had had leisure to examine her. “My
            dear young lady,” I exclaimed, “I’ll stir nowhere, and hear nothing, till you have
            removed every article of your clothes, and put on dry things; and certainly you shall
            not go to Gimmerton to-night, so it is needless to order the carriage.” “Certainly I
            shall,” she said; “walking or riding: yet I’ve no objection to dress myself decently.
            And—ah, see how it flows down my neck now! The fire does make it smart.” She insisted on
            my fulfilling her directions, before she would let me touch her; and not till after the
            coachman had been instructed to get ready, and a maid set to pack up some necessary
            attire, did I obtain her consent for binding the wound and helping to change her
            garments. “Now, Ellen,” she said, when my task was finished and she was seated in an
            easy-chair on the hearth, with a cup of tea before her, “you sit down opposite me, and
            put poor Catherine’s baby away: I don’t like to see it! You mustn’t think I care little
            for Catherine, because I behaved so foolishly on entering: I’ve cried, too,
            bitterly—yes, more than any one else has reason to cry. We parted unreconciled, you
            remember, and I sha’n’t forgive myself. But, for all that, I was not going to sympathise
            with him—the <tc:racedesc type="implied">brute beast</tc:racedesc>! Oh, give me the poker! This is the last thing of his I have
            about me:” she slipped the gold ring from her third finger, and threw it on the floor.
            “I’ll smash it!” she continued, striking it with childish spite, “and then I’ll burn
            it!” and she took and dropped the misused article among the coals. </p>
        <p>    “There! he shall buy
            another, if he gets me back again. He’d be capable of coming to seek me, to tease Edgar.
            I dare not stay, lest that notion should possess his wicked head! And besides, Edgar has
            not been kind, has he? And I won’t come suing for his assistance; nor will I bring him
            into more trouble. Necessity compelled me to seek shelter here; though, if I had not
            learned he was out of the way, I’d have halted at the kitchen, washed my face, warmed
            myself, got you to bring what I wanted, and departed again to anywhere out of the reach
            of my accursed—of that incarnate goblin! Ah, he was in such a fury! If he had caught me!
            It’s a pity Earnshaw is not his match in strength: I wouldn’t have run till I’d seen him
            all but demolished, had Hindley been able to do it!” </p>
         <p>   “Well, don’t talk so fast, Miss!” I
            interrupted; “you’ll disorder the handkerchief I have tied round your face, and make the
            cut bleed again. Drink your tea, and take breath, and give over laughing: laughter is
            sadly out of place under this roof, and in your condition!” “An undeniable truth,” she
            replied. “Listen to that child! It maintains a constant wail—send it out of my hearing
            for an hour; I sha’n’t stay any longer.” I rang the bell, and committed it to a
            servant’s care; and then I inquired what had urged her to escape from Wuthering Heights
            in such an unlikely plight, and where she meant to go, as she refused remaining with us.
            “I ought, and I wished to remain,” answered she, “to cheer Edgar and take care of the
            baby, for two things, and because the Grange is my right home. But I tell you he
            wouldn’t let me! Do you think he could bear to see me grow fat and merry—could bear to
            think that we were tranquil, and not resolve on poisoning our comfort? Now, I have the
            satisfaction of being sure that he detests me, to the point of its annoying him
            seriously to have me within ear-shot or eyesight: I notice, when I enter his presence,
            the muscles of his countenance are involuntarily distorted into an expression of hatred;
            partly arising from his knowledge of the good causes I have to feel that sentiment for
            him, and partly from original aversion. It is strong enough to make me feel pretty
            certain that he would not chase me over England, supposing I contrived a clear escape;
            and therefore I must get quite away. I’ve recovered from my first desire to be killed by
            him: I’d rather he’d kill himself! He has extinguished my love effectually, and so I’m
            at my ease. I can recollect yet how I loved him; and can dimly imagine that I could
            still be loving him, if—no, no! Even if he had doted on me, the <tc:racedesc
               type="explicit">devilish</tc:racedesc> nature would have revealed its existence
            somehow. Catherine had an awfully perverted taste to esteem him so dearly, knowing him
            so well. <tc:racedesc type="explicit">Monster</tc:racedesc>! would that he could be
            blotted out of creation, and out of my memory!” “Hush, hush! He’s a human being,” I
            said. “Be more charitable: there are worse men than he is yet!” “<tc:racedesc
               type="explicit">He’s not a human being</tc:racedesc>,” she retorted; “and he has no
            claim on my charity. I gave him my heart, and he took and pinched it to death, and flung
            it back to me. People feel with their hearts, Ellen: and since he has destroyed mine, I
            have not power to feel for him: and I would not, though he groaned from this to his
            dying day, and wept tears of blood for Catherine! No, indeed, indeed, I wouldn’t!” And
            here Isabella began to cry; but, immediately dashing the water from her lashes, she
            recommenced. </p>
          <p>  “You asked, what has driven me to flight at last? I was compelled to
            attempt it, because I had succeeded in rousing his rage a pitch above his malignity.
            Pulling out the nerves with red hot pincers requires more coolness than knocking on the
            head. He was worked up to forget the fiendish prudence he boasted of, and proceeded to
            murderous violence. I experienced pleasure in being able to exasperate him: the sense of
            pleasure woke my instinct of self-preservation, so I fairly broke free; and if ever I
            come into his hands again he is welcome to a signal revenge. “Yesterday, you know, Mr.
            Earnshaw should have been at the funeral. He kept himself sober for the
            purpose—tolerably sober: not going to bed mad at six o’clock and getting up drunk at
            twelve. Consequently, he rose, in suicidal low spirits, as fit for the church as for a
            dance; and instead, he sat down by the fire and swallowed gin or brandy by tumblerfuls.
            “Heathcliff—I shudder to name him! has been a stranger in the house from last Sunday
            till to-day. Whether the angels have fed him, or his kin beneath, I cannot tell; but he
            has not eaten a meal with us for nearly a week. He has just come home at dawn, and gone
            upstairs to his chamber; locking himself in—as if anybody dreamt of coveting his
            company! There he has continued, praying like a Methodist: only the deity he implored is
            senseless dust and ashes; and God, when addressed, was curiously confounded with
               <tc:racedesc type="explicit">his own black father</tc:racedesc>! After concluding
            these precious orisons—and they lasted generally till he grew hoarse and his voice was
            strangled in his throat—he would be off again; always straight down to the Grange! I
            wonder Edgar did not send for a constable, and give him into custody! For me, grieved as
            I was about Catherine, it was impossible to avoid regarding this season of deliverance
            from degrading oppression as a holiday. </p>
        <p>>    “I recovered spirits sufficient to hear Joseph’s
            eternal lectures without weeping, and to move up and down the house less with the foot
            of a frightened thief than formerly. You wouldn’t think that I should cry at anything
            Joseph could say; but he and Hareton are detestable companions. I’d rather sit with
            Hindley, and hear his awful talk, than with ‘t’ little maister’ and his staunch
            supporter, that odious old man! When Heathcliff is in, I’m often obliged to seek the
            kitchen and their society, or starve among the damp uninhabited chambers; when he is
            not, as was the case this week, I establish a table and chair at one corner of the house
            fire, and never mind how Mr. Earnshaw may occupy himself; and he does not interfere with
            my arrangements. He is quieter now than he used to be, if no one provokes him: more
            sullen and depressed, and less furious. Joseph affirms he’s sure he’s an altered man:
            that the Lord has touched his heart, and he is saved ‘so as by fire.’ I’m puzzled to
            detect signs of the favourable change: but it is not my business. “Yester-evening I sat
            in my nook reading some old books till late on towards twelve. It seemed so dismal to go
            upstairs, with the wild snow blowing outside, and my thoughts continually reverting to
            the kirkyard and the new-made grave! I dared hardly lift my eyes from the page before
            me, that melancholy scene so instantly usurped its place. Hindley sat opposite, his head
            leant on his hand; perhaps meditating on the same subject. He had ceased drinking at a
            point below irrationality, and had neither stirred nor spoken during two or three hours.
            There was no sound through the house but the moaning wind, which shook the windows every
            now and then, the faint crackling of the coals, and the click of my snuffers as I
            removed at intervals the long wick of the candle. Hareton and Joseph were probably fast
            asleep in bed. It was very, very sad: and while I read I sighed, for it seemed as if all
            joy had vanished from the world, never to be restored. “The doleful silence was broken
            at length by the sound of the kitchen latch: Heathcliff had returned from his watch
            earlier than usual; owing, I suppose, to the sudden storm. That entrance was fastened,
            and we heard him coming round to get in by the other. I rose with an irrepressible
            expression of what I felt on my lips, which induced my companion, who had been staring
            towards the door, to turn and look at me. </p>
         <p>   “‘I’ll keep him out five minutes,’ he
            exclaimed. ‘You won’t object?’ “‘No, you may keep him out the whole night for me,’ I
            answered. ‘Do! put the key in the lock, and draw the bolts.’ “Earnshaw accomplished this
            ere his guest reached the front; he then came and brought his chair to the other side of
            my table, leaning over it, and searching in my eyes for a sympathy with the burning hate
            that gleamed from his: as he both looked and felt like an assassin, he couldn’t exactly
            find that; but he discovered enough to encourage him to speak. “‘You, and I,’ he said,
            ‘have each a great debt to settle with the man out yonder! If we were neither of us
            cowards, we might combine to discharge it. Are you as soft as your brother? Are you
            willing to endure to the last, and not once attempt a repayment?’ “‘I’m weary of
            enduring now,’ I replied; ‘and I’d be glad of a retaliation that wouldn’t recoil on
            myself; but treachery and violence are spears pointed at both ends; they wound those who
            resort to them worse than their enemies.’ “‘Treachery and violence are a just return for
            treachery and violence!’ cried Hindley. ‘Mrs. Heathcliff, I’ll ask you to do nothing;
            but sit still and be dumb. Tell me now, can you? I’m sure you would have as much
            pleasure as I in witnessing the conclusion of the fiend’s existence; he’ll be your death
            unless you overreach him; and he’ll be my ruin. Damn the <tc:racedesc type="explicit"
               >hellish villain</tc:racedesc>! He knocks at the door as if he were master here
            already! Promise to hold your tongue, and before that clock strikes—it wants three
            minutes of one—you’re a free woman!’ “He took the implements which I described to you in
            my letter from his breast, and would have turned down the candle. I snatched it away,
            however, and seized his arm. “‘I’ll not hold my tongue!’ I said; ‘you mustn’t touch him.
            Let the door remain shut, and be quiet!’ “‘No! I’ve formed my resolution, and by God
            I’ll execute it!’ cried the desperate being. ‘I’ll do you a kindness in spite of
            yourself, and Hareton justice! And you needn’t trouble your head to screen me; Catherine
            is gone. Nobody alive would regret me, or be ashamed, though I cut my throat this
            minute—and it’s time to make an end!’ </p>
       <p>     “I might as well have struggled with a bear, or
            reasoned with a lunatic. The only resource left me was to run to a lattice and warn his
            intended victim of the fate which awaited him. “‘You’d better seek shelter somewhere
            else to-night!’ I exclaimed, in rather a triumphant tone. ‘Mr. Earnshaw has a mind to
            shoot you, if you persist in endeavouring to enter.’ “‘You’d better open the door, you—’
            he answered, addressing me by some elegant term that I don’t care to repeat. “‘I shall
            not meddle in the matter,’ I retorted again. ‘Come in and get shot, if you please. I’ve
            done my duty.’ “With that I shut the window and returned to my place by the fire; having
            too small a stock of hypocrisy at my command to pretend any anxiety for the danger that
            menaced him. Earnshaw swore passionately at me: affirming that I loved the <tc:racedesc
               type="explicit">villain</tc:racedesc> yet; and calling me all sorts of names for the
            base spirit I evinced. And I, in my secret heart (and conscience never reproached me),
            thought what a blessing it would be for him should Heathcliff put him out of misery; and
            what a blessing for me should he send Heathcliff to his right abode! As I sat nursing
            these reflections, the casement behind me was banged on to the floor by a blow from the
            latter individual, and his <tc:racedesc type="explicit">black countenance</tc:racedesc>
            looked blightingly through. The stanchions stood too close to suffer his shoulders to
            follow, and I smiled, exulting in my fancied security. His hair and clothes were
            whitened with snow, and his sharp <tc:racedesc type="implied">cannibal teeth</tc:racedesc>, revealed by cold and wrath, gleamed
            through the dark. “‘Isabella, let me in, or I’ll make you repent!’ he ‘girned,’ as
            Joseph calls it. “‘I cannot commit murder,’ I replied. ‘Mr. Hindley stands sentinel with
            a knife and loaded pistol.’ “‘Let me in by the kitchen door,’ he said. “‘Hindley will be
            there before me,’ I answered: ‘and that’s a poor love of yours that cannot bear a shower
            of snow! We were left at peace in our beds as long as the summer moon shone, but the
            moment a blast of winter returns, you must run for shelter! Heathcliff, if I were you,
            I’d go stretch myself over her grave and die like a faithful dog. The world is surely
            not worth living in now, is it? You had distinctly impressed on me the idea that
            Catherine was the whole joy of your life: I can’t imagine how you think of surviving her
            loss.’ “‘He’s there, is he?’ exclaimed my companion, rushing to the gap. ‘If I can get
            my arm out I can hit him!’</p>
          <p>  “I’m afraid, Ellen, you’ll set me down as really wicked; but
            you don’t know all, so don’t judge. I wouldn’t have aided or abetted an attempt on even
            his life for anything. Wish that he were dead, I must; and therefore I was fearfully
            disappointed, and unnerved by terror for the consequences of my taunting speech, when he
            flung himself on Earnshaw’s weapon and wrenched it from his grasp. “The charge exploded,
            and the knife, in springing back, closed into its owner’s wrist. Heathcliff pulled it
            away by main force, slitting up the flesh as it passed on, and thrust it dripping into
            his pocket. He then took a stone, struck down the division between two windows, and
            sprang in. His adversary had fallen senseless with excessive pain and the flow of blood,
            that gushed from an artery or a large vein. The ruffian kicked and trampled on him, and
            dashed his head repeatedly against the flags, holding me with one hand, meantime, to
            prevent me summoning Joseph. He exerted preterhuman self-denial in abstaining from
            finishing him completely; but getting out of breath, he finally desisted, and dragged
            the apparently inanimate body on to the settle. There he tore off the sleeve of
            Earnshaw’s coat, and bound up the wound with brutal roughness; spitting and cursing
            during the operation as energetically as he had kicked before. Being at liberty, I lost
            no time in seeking the old servant; who, having gathered by degrees the purport of my
            hasty tale, hurried below, gasping, as he descended the steps two at once. “‘What is
            ther to do, now? what is ther to do, now?’ “‘There’s this to do,’ thundered Heathcliff,
            ‘that your master’s mad; and should he last another month, I’ll have him to an asylum.
            And how the devil did you come to fasten me out, you toothless hound? Don’t stand
            muttering and mumbling there. Come, I’m not going to nurse him. Wash that stuff away;
            and mind the sparks of your candle—it is more than half brandy!’ “‘And so ye’ve been
            murthering on him?’ exclaimed Joseph, lifting his hands and eyes in horror. ‘If iver I
            seed a seeght loike this! May the Lord—’ </p>
         <p>   “Heathcliff gave him a push on to his knees in
            the middle of the blood, and flung a towel to him; but instead of proceeding to dry it
            up, he joined his hands and began a prayer, which excited my laughter from its odd
            phraseology. I was in the condition of mind to be shocked at nothing: in fact, I was as
            reckless as some malefactors show themselves at the foot of the gallows. “‘Oh, I forgot
            you,’ said the tyrant. ‘You shall do that. Down with you. And you conspire with him
            against me, do you, viper? There, that is work fit for you!’ “He shook me till my teeth
            rattled, and pitched me beside Joseph, who steadily concluded his supplications, and
            then rose, vowing he would set off for the Grange directly. Mr. Linton was a magistrate,
            and though he had fifty wives dead, he should inquire into this. He was so obstinate in
            his resolution, that Heathcliff deemed it expedient to compel from my lips a
            recapitulation of what had taken place; standing over me, heaving with malevolence, as I
            reluctantly delivered the account in answer to his questions. It required a great deal
            of labour to satisfy the old man that Heathcliff was not the aggressor; especially with
            my hardly-wrung replies. However, Mr. Earnshaw soon convinced him that he was alive
            still; Joseph hastened to administer a dose of spirits, and by their succour his master
            presently regained motion and consciousness. Heathcliff, aware that his opponent was
            ignorant of the treatment received while insensible, called him deliriously intoxicated;
            and said he should not notice his atrocious conduct further, but advised him to get to
            bed. To my joy, he left us, after giving this judicious counsel, and Hindley stretched
            himself on the hearthstone. I departed to my own room, marvelling that I had escaped so
            easily. “This morning, when I came down, about half an hour before noon, Mr. Earnshaw
            was sitting by the fire, deadly sick; his evil genius, almost as gaunt and ghastly,
            leant against the chimney. Neither appeared inclined to dine, and, having waited till
            all was cold on the table, I commenced alone. Nothing hindered me from eating heartily,
            and I experienced a certain sense of satisfaction and superiority, as, at intervals, I
            cast a look towards my silent companions, and felt the comfort of a quiet conscience
            within me. After I had done, I ventured on the unusual liberty of drawing near the fire,
            going round Earnshaw’s seat, and kneeling in the corner beside him. “Heathcliff did not
            glance my way, and I gazed up, and contemplated his features almost as confidently as if
            they had been turned to stone. </p>
          <p>  His forehead, that I once thought so manly, and that I
            now think so diabolical, was shaded with a heavy cloud; his <tc:racedesc type="implied">basilisk eyes</tc:racedesc> were nearly
            quenched by sleeplessness, and weeping, perhaps, for the lashes were wet then: his lips
            devoid of their ferocious sneer, and sealed in an expression of unspeakable sadness. Had
            it been another, I would have covered my face in the presence of such grief. In his
            case, I was gratified; and, ignoble as it seems to insult a fallen enemy, I couldn’t
            miss this chance of sticking in a dart: his weakness was the only time when I could
            taste the delight of paying wrong for wrong.” “Fie, fie, Miss!” I interrupted. “One
            might suppose you had never opened a Bible in your life. If God afflict your enemies,
            surely that ought to suffice you. It is both mean and presumptuous to add your torture
            to his!” “In general I’ll allow that it would be, Ellen,” she continued; “but what
            misery laid on Heathcliff could content me, unless I have a hand in it? I’d rather he
            suffered less, if I might cause his sufferings and he might know that I was the cause.
            Oh, I owe him so much. On only one condition can I hope to forgive him. It is, if I may
            take an eye for an eye, a tooth for a tooth; for every wrench of agony return a wrench:
            reduce him to my level. As he was the first to injure, make him the first to implore
            pardon; and then—why then, Ellen, I might show you some generosity. But it is utterly
            impossible I can ever be revenged, and therefore I cannot forgive him. Hindley wanted
            some water, and I handed him a glass, and asked him how he was. “‘Not as ill as I wish,’
            he replied. ‘But leaving out my arm, every inch of me is as sore as if I had been
            fighting with a legion of imps!’ “‘Yes, no wonder,’ was my next remark. ‘Catherine used
            to boast that she stood between you and bodily harm: she meant that certain persons
            would not hurt you for fear of offending her. It’s well people don’t really rise from
            their grave, or, last night, she might have witnessed a repulsive scene! Are not you
            bruised, and cut over your chest and shoulders?’ “‘I can’t say,’ he answered; ‘but what
            do you mean? Did he dare to strike me when I was down?’ “‘He trampled on and kicked you,
            and dashed you on the ground,’ I whispered. ‘And his mouth watered to tear you with his
            teeth; because he’s only half man: not so much, and the rest fiend.’ “Mr. Earnshaw
            looked up, like me, to the countenance of our mutual foe; who, absorbed in his anguish,
            seemed insensible to anything around him: the longer he stood, the plainer his
            reflections revealed their blackness through his features. “‘Oh, if God would but give
            me strength to strangle him in my last agony, I’d go to hell with joy,’ groaned the
            impatient man, writhing to rise, and sinking back in despair, convinced of his
            inadequacy for the struggle. </p>
        <p>    “‘Nay, it’s enough that he has murdered one of you,’ I
            observed aloud. ‘At the Grange, every one knows your sister would have been living now
            had it not been for Mr. Heathcliff. After all, it is preferable to be hated than loved
            by him. When I recollect how happy we were—how happy Catherine was before he came—I’m
            fit to curse the day.’ “Most likely, Heathcliff noticed more the truth of what was said,
            than the spirit of the person who said it. His attention was roused, I saw, for his eyes
            rained down tears among the ashes, and he drew his breath in suffocating sighs. I stared
            full at him, and laughed scornfully. The clouded windows of hell flashed a moment
            towards me; the fiend which usually looked out, however, was so dimmed and drowned that
            I did not fear to hazard another sound of derision. “‘Get up, and begone out of my
            sight,’ said the mourner. “I guessed he uttered those words, at least, though his voice
            was hardly intelligible. “‘I beg your pardon,’ I replied. ‘But I loved Catherine too;
            and her brother requires attendance, which, for her sake, I shall supply. Now that she’s
            dead, I see her in Hindley: Hindley has exactly her eyes, if you had not tried to gouge
            them out, and made them black and red; and her—’ “‘Get up, wretched idiot, before I
            stamp you to death!’ he cried, making a movement that caused me to make one also. “‘But
            then,’ I continued, holding myself ready to flee, ‘if poor Catherine had trusted you,
            and assumed the ridiculous, contemptible, degrading title of Mrs. Heathcliff, she would
            soon have presented a similar picture! She wouldn’t have borne your abominable behaviour
            quietly: her detestation and disgust must have found voice.’ “The back of the settle and
            Earnshaw’s person interposed between me and him; so instead of endeavouring to reach me,
            he snatched a dinner-knife from the table and flung it at my head. It struck beneath my
            ear, and stopped the sentence I was uttering; but, pulling it out, I sprang to the door
            and delivered another; which I hope went a little deeper than his missile. The last
            glimpse I caught of him was a furious rush on his part, checked by the embrace of his
            host; and both fell locked together on the hearth. In my flight through the kitchen I
            bid Joseph speed to his master; I knocked over Hareton, who was hanging a litter of
            puppies from a chair-back in the doorway; and, blessed as a soul escaped from purgatory,
            I bounded, leaped, and flew down the steep road; then, quitting its windings, shot
            direct across the moor, rolling over banks, and wading through marshes: precipitating
            myself, in fact, towards the beacon-light of the Grange. And far rather would I be
            condemned to a perpetual dwelling in the infernal regions than, even for one night,
            abide beneath the roof of Wuthering Heights again.” Isabella ceased speaking, and took a
            drink of tea; then she rose, and bidding me put on her bonnet, and a great shawl I had
            brought, and turning a deaf ear to my entreaties for her to remain another hour, she
            stepped on to a chair, kissed Edgar’s and Catherine’s portraits, bestowed a similar
            salute on me, and descended to the carriage, accompanied by Fanny, who yelped wild with
            joy at recovering her mistress. She was driven away, never to revisit this
            neighbourhood: but a regular correspondence was established between her and my master
            when things were more settled. </p>
         <p>   I believe her new abode was in the south, near London;
            there she had a son born a few months subsequent to her escape. He was christened
            Linton, and, from the first, she reported him to be an ailing, peevish creature. Mr.
            Heathcliff, meeting me one day in the village, inquired where she lived. I refused to
            tell. He remarked that it was not of any moment, only she must beware of coming to her
            brother: she should not be with him, if he had to keep her himself. Though I would give
            no information, he discovered, through some of the other servants, both her place of
            residence and the existence of the child. Still, he didn’t molest her: for which
            forbearance she might thank his aversion, I suppose. He often asked about the infant,
            when he saw me; and on hearing its name, smiled grimly, and observed: “They wish me to
            hate it too, do they?” “I don’t think they wish you to know anything about it,” I
            answered. “But I’ll have it,” he said, “when I want it. They may reckon on that!”
            Fortunately its mother died before the time arrived; some thirteen years after the
            decease of Catherine, when Linton was twelve, or a little more. On the day succeeding
            Isabella’s unexpected visit I had no opportunity of speaking to my master: he shunned
            conversation, and was fit for discussing nothing. When I could get him to listen, I saw
            it pleased him that his sister had left her husband; whom he abhorred with an intensity
            which the mildness of his nature would scarcely seem to allow. So deep and sensitive was
            his aversion, that he refrained from going anywhere where he was likely to see or hear
            of Heathcliff. Grief, and that together, transformed him into a complete hermit: he
            threw up his office of magistrate, ceased even to attend church, avoided the village on
            all occasions, and spent a life of entire seclusion within the limits of his park and
            grounds; only varied by solitary rambles on the moors, and visits to the grave of his
            wife, mostly at evening, or early morning before other wanderers were abroad. But he was
            too good to be thoroughly unhappy long. He didn’t pray for Catherine’s soul to haunt
            him. Time brought resignation, and a melancholy sweeter than common joy. He recalled her
            memory with ardent, tender love, and hopeful aspiring to the better world; where he
            doubted not she was gone. And he had earthly consolation and affections also. For a few
            days, I said, he seemed regardless of the puny successor to the departed: that coldness
            melted as fast as snow in April, and ere the tiny thing could stammer a word or totter a
            step it wielded a despot’s sceptre in his heart. It was named Catherine; but he never
            called it the name in full, as he had never called the first Catherine short: probably
            because Heathcliff had a habit of doing so. The little one was always Cathy: it formed
            to him a distinction from the mother, and yet a connection with her; and his attachment
            sprang from its relation to her, far more than from its being his own. </p>
     <p>       I used to draw a
            comparison between him and Hindley Earnshaw, and perplex myself to explain
            satisfactorily why their conduct was so opposite in similar circumstances. They had both
            been fond husbands, and were both attached to their children; and I could not see how
            they shouldn’t both have taken the same road, for good or evil. But, I thought in my
            mind, Hindley, with apparently the stronger head, has shown himself sadly the worse and
            the weaker man. When his ship struck, the captain abandoned his post; and the crew,
            instead of trying to save her, rushed into riot and confusion, leaving no hope for their
            luckless vessel. Linton, on the contrary, displayed the true courage of a loyal and
            faithful soul: he trusted God; and God comforted him. One hoped, and the other
            despaired: they chose their own lots, and were righteously doomed to endure them. But
            you’ll not want to hear my moralising, Mr. Lockwood; you’ll judge, as well as I can, all
            these things: at least, you’ll think you will, and that’s the same. The end of Earnshaw
            was what might have been expected; it followed fast on his sister’s: there were scarcely
            six months between them. We, at the Grange, never got a very succinct account of his
            state preceding it; all that I did learn was on occasion of going to aid in the
            preparations for the funeral. Mr. Kenneth came to announce the event to my master.
            “Well, Nelly,” said he, riding into the yard one morning, too early not to alarm me with
            an instant presentiment of bad news, “it’s yours and my turn to go into mourning at
            present. Who’s given us the slip now, do you think?” “Who?” I asked in a flurry. “Why,
            guess!” he returned, dismounting, and slinging his bridle on a hook by the door. “And
            nip up the corner of your apron: I’m certain you’ll need it.” “Not Mr. Heathcliff,
            surely?” I exclaimed. “What! would you have tears for him?” said the doctor. “No,
            Heathcliff’s a tough young fellow: he looks blooming to-day. I’ve just seen him. He’s
            rapidly regaining flesh since he lost his better half.” </p>
        <p>    “Who is it, then, Mr. Kenneth?”
            I repeated impatiently. “Hindley Earnshaw! Your old friend Hindley,” he replied, “and my
            wicked gossip: though he’s been too wild for me this long while. There! I said we should
            draw water. But cheer up! He died true to his character: drunk as a lord. Poor lad! I’m
            sorry, too. One can’t help missing an old companion: though he had the worst tricks with
            him that ever man imagined, and has done me many a rascally turn. He’s barely
            twenty-seven, it seems; that’s your own age: who would have thought you were born in one
            year?” I confess this blow was greater to me than the shock of Mrs. Linton’s death:
            ancient associations lingered round my heart; I sat down in the porch and wept as for a
            blood relation, desiring Mr. Kenneth to get another servant to introduce him to the
            master. I could not hinder myself from pondering on the question—“Had he had fair play?”
            Whatever I did, that idea would bother me: it was so tiresomely pertinacious that I
            resolved on requesting leave to go to Wuthering Heights, and assist in the last duties
            to the dead. Mr. Linton was extremely reluctant to consent, but I pleaded eloquently for
            the friendless condition in which he lay; and I said my old master and foster-brother
            had a claim on my services as strong as his own. Besides, I reminded him that the child
            Hareton was his wife’s nephew, and, in the absence of nearer kin, he ought to act as its
            guardian; and he ought to and must inquire how the property was left, and look over the
            concerns of his brother-in-law. He was unfit for attending to such matters then, but he
            bid me speak to his lawyer; and at length permitted me to go. His lawyer had been
            Earnshaw’s also: I called at the village, and asked him to accompany me. He shook his
            head, and advised that Heathcliff should be let alone; affirming, if the truth were
            known, Hareton would be found little else than a beggar. “His father died in debt,” he
            said; “the whole property is mortgaged, and the sole chance for the natural heir is to
            allow him an opportunity of creating some interest in the creditor’s heart, that he may
            be inclined to deal leniently towards him.” When I reached the Heights, I explained that
            I had come to see everything carried on decently; and Joseph, who appeared in sufficient
            distress, expressed satisfaction at my presence. Mr. Heathcliff said he did not perceive
            that I was wanted; but I might stay and order the arrangements for the funeral, if I
            chose. “Correctly,” he remarked, “that fool’s body should be buried at the cross-roads,
            without ceremony of any kind. I happened to leave him ten minutes yesterday afternoon,
            and in that interval he fastened the two doors of the house against me, and he has spent
            the night in drinking himself to death deliberately! We broke in this morning, for we
            heard him snorting like a horse; and there he was, laid over the settle: flaying and
            scalping would not have wakened him. I sent for Kenneth, and he came; but not till the
            beast had changed into carrion: he was both dead and cold, and stark; and so you’ll
            allow it was useless making more stir about him!” </p>
          <p>  The old servant confirmed this
            statement, but muttered: “I’d rayther he’d goan hisseln for t’ doctor! I sud ha’ taen
            tent o’ t’ maister better nor him—and he warn’t deead when I left, naught o’ t’ soart!”
            I insisted on the funeral being respectable. Mr. Heathcliff said I might have my own way
            there too: only, he desired me to remember that the money for the whole affair came out
            of his pocket. He maintained a hard, careless deportment, indicative of neither joy nor
            sorrow: if anything, it expressed a flinty gratification at a piece of difficult work
            successfully executed. I observed once, indeed, something like exultation in his aspect:
            it was just when the people were bearing the coffin from the house. He had the hypocrisy
            to represent a mourner: and previous to following with Hareton, he lifted the
            unfortunate child on to the table and muttered, with peculiar gusto, “Now, my bonny lad,
            you are mine! And we’ll see if one tree won’t grow as crooked as another, with the same
            wind to twist it!” The unsuspecting thing was pleased at this speech: he played with
            Heathcliff’s whiskers, and stroked his cheek; but I divined its meaning, and observed
            tartly, “That boy must go back with me to Thrushcross Grange, sir. There is nothing in
            the world less yours than he is!” “Does Linton say so?” he demanded. “Of course—he has
            ordered me to take him,” I replied. </p>
         <p>   “Well,” said the scoundrel, “we’ll not argue the
            subject now: but I have a fancy to try my hand at rearing a young one; so intimate to
            your master that I must supply the place of this with my own, if he attempt to remove
            it. I don’t engage to let Hareton go undisputed; but I’ll be pretty sure to make the
            other come! Remember to tell him.” This hint was enough to bind our hands. I repeated
            its substance on my return; and Edgar Linton, little interested at the commencement,
            spoke no more of interfering. I’m not aware that he could have done it to any purpose,
            had he been ever so willing. The guest was now the master of Wuthering Heights: he held
            firm possession, and proved to the attorney—who, in his turn, proved it to Mr.
            Linton—that Earnshaw had mortgaged every yard of land he owned for cash to supply his
            mania for gaming; and he, Heathcliff, was the mortgagee. In that manner Hareton, who
            should now be the first gentleman in the neighbourhood, was reduced to a state of
            complete dependence on his father’s inveterate enemy; and lives in his own house as a
            servant, deprived of the advantage of wages: quite unable to right himself, because of
            his friendlessness, and his ignorance that he has been wronged. </p>
         <p>Chapter 18</p>
         <p> The twelve years, continued Mrs. Dean, following that dismal period were the happiest
            of my life: my greatest troubles in their passage rose from our little lady’s trifling
            illnesses, which she had to experience in common with all children, rich and poor. For
            the rest, after the first six months, she grew like a larch, and could walk and talk
            too, in her own way, before the heath blossomed a second time over Mrs. Linton’s dust.
            She was the most winning thing that ever brought sunshine into a desolate house: a real
            beauty in face, with the Earnshaws’ handsome dark eyes, but the Lintons’ fair skin and
            small features, and yellow curling hair. Her spirit was high, though not rough, and
            qualified by a heart sensitive and lively to excess in its affections. That capacity for
            intense attachments reminded me of her mother: still she did not resemble her: for she
            could be soft and mild as a dove, and she had a gentle voice and pensive expression: her
            anger was never furious; her love never fierce: it was deep and tender. However, it must
            be acknowledged, she had faults to foil her gifts. A propensity to be saucy was one; and
            a perverse will, that indulged children invariably acquire, whether they be good
            tempered or cross. If a servant chanced to vex her, it was always—“I shall tell papa!”
            And if he reproved her, even by a look, you would have thought it a heart-breaking
            business: I don’t believe he ever did speak a harsh word to her. He took her education
            entirely on himself, and made it an amusement. Fortunately, curiosity and a quick
            intellect made her an apt scholar: she learned rapidly and eagerly, and did honour to
            his teaching. Till she reached the age of thirteen she had not once been beyond the
            range of the park by herself. </p>
         <p>    Mr. Linton would take her with him a mile or so outside,
            on rare occasions; but he trusted her to no one else. Gimmerton was an unsubstantial
            name in her ears; the chapel, the only building she had approached or entered, except
            her own home. Wuthering Heights and Mr. Heathcliff did not exist for her: she was a
            perfect recluse; and, apparently, perfectly contented. Sometimes, indeed, while
            surveying the country from her nursery window, she would observe— “Ellen, how long will
            it be before I can walk to the top of those hills? I wonder what lies on the other
            side—is it the sea?” “No, Miss Cathy,” I would answer; “it is hills again, just like
            these.” “And what are those golden rocks like when you stand under them?” she once
            asked. The abrupt descent of Penistone Crags particularly attracted her notice;
            especially when the setting sun shone on it and the topmost heights, and the whole
            extent of landscape besides lay in shadow. I explained that they were bare masses of
            stone, with hardly enough earth in their clefts to nourish a stunted tree. “And why are
            they bright so long after it is evening here?” she pursued. “Because they are a great
            deal higher up than we are,” replied I; “you could not climb them, they are too high and
            steep. In winter the frost is always there before it comes to us; and deep into summer I
            have found snow under that black hollow on the north-east side!” “Oh, you have been on
            them!” she cried gleefully. “Then I can go, too, when I am a woman. Has papa been,
            Ellen?” “Papa would tell you, Miss,” I answered, hastily, “that they are not worth the
            trouble of visiting. The moors, where you ramble with him, are much nicer; and
            Thrushcross Park is the finest place in the world.” </p>
         <p>    “But I know the park, and I don’t
            know those,” she murmured to herself. “And I should delight to look round me from the
            brow of that tallest point: my little pony Minny shall take me some time.” One of the
            maids mentioning the Fairy Cave, quite turned her head with a desire to fulfil this
            project: she teased Mr. Linton about it; and he promised she should have the journey
            when she got older. But Miss Catherine measured her age by months, and, “Now, am I old
            enough to go to Penistone Crags?” was the constant question in her mouth. The road
            thither wound close by Wuthering Heights. Edgar had not the heart to pass it; so she
            received as constantly the answer, “Not yet, love: not yet.” I said Mrs. Heathcliff;
            lived above a dozen years after quitting her husband. Her family were of a delicate
            constitution: she and Edgar both lacked the ruddy health that you will generally meet in
            these parts. What her last illness was, I am not certain: I conjecture, they died of the
            same thing, a kind of fever, slow at its commencement, but incurable, and rapidly
            consuming life towards the close. She wrote to inform her brother of the probable
            conclusion of a four-months’ indisposition under which she had suffered, and entreated
            him to come to her, if possible; for she had much to settle, and she wished to bid him
            adieu, and deliver Linton safely into his hands. Her hope was that Linton might be left
            with him, as he had been with her: his father, she would fain convince herself, had no
            desire to assume the burden of his maintenance or education. My master hesitated not a
            moment in complying with her request: reluctant as he was to leave home at ordinary
            calls, he flew to answer this; commending Catherine to my peculiar vigilance, in his
            absence, with reiterated orders that she must not wander out of the park, even under my
            escort: he did not calculate on her going unaccompanied. He was away three weeks. The
            first day or two my charge sat in a corner of the library, too sad for either reading or
            playing: in that quiet state she caused me little trouble; but it was succeeded by an
            interval of impatient, fretful weariness; and being too busy, and too old then, to run
            up and down amusing her, I hit on a method by which she might entertain herself. I used
            to send her on her travels round the grounds—now on foot, and now on a pony; indulging
            her with a patient audience of all her real and imaginary adventures when she returned.
            The summer shone in full prime; and she took such a taste for this solitary rambling
            that she often contrived to remain out from breakfast till tea; and then the evenings
            were spent in recounting her fanciful tales. I did not fear her breaking bounds; because
            the gates were generally locked, and I thought she would scarcely venture forth alone,
            if they had stood wide open. Unluckily, my confidence proved misplaced. Catherine came
            to me, one morning, at eight o’clock, and said she was that day an Arabian merchant,
            going to cross the Desert with his caravan; and I must give her plenty of provision for
            herself and beasts: a horse, and three camels, personated by a large hound and a couple
            of pointers. </p>
         <p>   I got together good store of dainties, and slung them in a basket on one
            side of the saddle; and she sprang up as gay as a fairy, sheltered by her wide-brimmed
            hat and gauze veil from the July sun, and trotted off with a merry laugh, mocking my
            cautious counsel to avoid galloping, and come back early. The naughty thing never made
            her appearance at tea. One traveller, the hound, being an old dog and fond of its ease,
            returned; but neither Cathy, nor the pony, nor the two pointers were visible in any
            direction: I despatched emissaries down this path, and that path, and at last went
            wandering in search of her myself. There was a labourer working at a fence round a
            plantation, on the borders of the grounds. I inquired of him if he had seen our young
            lady. “I saw her at morn,” he replied: “she would have me to cut her a hazel switch, and
            then she leapt her Galloway over the hedge yonder, where it is lowest, and galloped out
            of sight.” You may guess how I felt at hearing this news. It struck me directly she must
            have started for Penistone Crags. “What will become of her?” I ejaculated, pushing
            through a gap which the man was repairing, and making straight to the high-road. I
            walked as if for a wager, mile after mile, till a turn brought me in view of the
            Heights; but no Catherine could I detect, far or near. The Crags lie about a mile and a
            half beyond Mr. Heathcliff’s place, and that is four from the Grange, so I began to fear
            night would fall ere I could reach them. “And what if she should have slipped in
            clambering among them,” I reflected, “and been killed, or broken some of her bones?” My
            suspense was truly painful; and, at first, it gave me delightful relief to observe, in
            hurrying by the farmhouse, Charlie, the fiercest of the pointers, lying under a window,
            with swelled head and bleeding ear. I opened the wicket and ran to the door, knocking
            vehemently for admittance. A woman whom I knew, and who formerly lived at Gimmerton,
            answered: she had been servant there since the death of Mr. Earnshaw. “Ah,” said she,
            “you are come a-seeking your little mistress! Don’t be frightened. She’s here safe: but
            I’m glad it isn’t the master.” </p>
         <p>   “He is not at home then, is he?” I panted, quite
            breathless with quick walking and alarm. “No, no,” she replied: “both he and Joseph are
            off, and I think they won’t return this hour or more. Step in and rest you a bit.” I
            entered, and beheld my stray lamb seated on the hearth, rocking herself in a little
            chair that had been her mother’s when a child. Her hat was hung against the wall, and
            she seemed perfectly at home, laughing and chattering, in the best spirits imaginable,
            to Hareton—now a great, strong lad of eighteen—who stared at her with considerable
            curiosity and astonishment: comprehending precious little of the fluent succession of
            remarks and questions which her tongue never ceased pouring forth. “Very well, Miss!” I
            exclaimed, concealing my joy under an angry countenance. “This is your last ride, till
            papa comes back. I’ll not trust you over the threshold again, you naughty, naughty
            girl!” “Aha, Ellen!” she cried, gaily, jumping up and running to my side. “I shall have
            a pretty story to tell to-night; and so you’ve found me out. Have you ever been here in
            your life before?” “Put that hat on, and home at once,” said I. “I’m dreadfully grieved
            at you, Miss Cathy: you’ve done extremely wrong! It’s no use pouting and crying: that
            won’t repay the trouble I’ve had, scouring the country after you. To think how Mr.
            Linton charged me to keep you in; and you stealing off so! It shows you are a cunning
            little fox, and nobody will put faith in you any more.” “What have I done?” sobbed she,
            instantly checked. “Papa charged me nothing: he’ll not scold me, Ellen—he’s never cross,
            like you!” “Come, come!” I repeated. “I’ll tie the riband. Now, let us have no
            petulance. Oh, for shame! You thirteen years old, and such a baby!” This exclamation was
            caused by her pushing the hat from her head, and retreating to the chimney out of my
            reach. “Nay,” said the servant, “don’t be hard on the bonny lass, Mrs. Dean. We made her
            stop: she’d fain have ridden forwards, afeard you should be uneasy. Hareton offered to
            go with her, and I thought he should: it’s a wild road over the hills.” Hareton, during
            the discussion, stood with his hands in his pockets, too awkward to speak; though he
            looked as if he did not relish my intrusion. “How long am I to wait?” I continued,
            disregarding the woman’s interference. “It will be dark in ten minutes. Where is the
            pony, Miss Cathy? And where is Phoenix? I shall leave you, unless you be quick; so
            please yourself.” “The pony is in the yard,” she replied, “and Phoenix is shut in there.
            He’s bitten—and so is Charlie. I was going to tell you all about it; but you are in a
            bad temper, and don’t deserve to hear.” I picked up her hat, and approached to reinstate
            it; but perceiving that the people of the house took her part, she commenced capering
            round the room; and on my giving chase, ran like a mouse over and under and behind the
            furniture, rendering it ridiculous for me to pursue. Hareton and the woman laughed, and
            she joined them, and waxed more impertinent still; till I cried, in great
            irritation,—“Well, Miss Cathy, if you were aware whose house this is you’d be glad
            enough to get out.” “It’s your father’s, isn’t it?” said she, turning to Hareton. “Nay,”
            he replied, looking down, and blushing bashfully. He could not stand a steady gaze from
            her eyes, though they were just his own. “Whose then—your master’s?” she asked. He
            coloured deeper, with a different feeling, muttered an oath, and turned away.</p>
         <p>     “Who is
            his master?” continued the tiresome girl, appealing to me. “He talked about ‘our house,’
            and ‘our folk.’ I thought he had been the owner’s son. And he never said Miss: he should
            have done, shouldn’t he, if he’s a servant?” Hareton grew black as a thunder-cloud at
            this childish speech. I silently shook my questioner, and at last succeeded in equipping
            her for departure. “Now, get my horse,” she said, addressing her unknown kinsman as she
            would one of the stable-boys at the Grange. “And you may come with me. I want to see
            where the goblin-hunter rises in the marsh, and to hear about the fairishes, as you call
            them: but make haste! What’s the matter? Get my horse, I say.” “I’ll see thee damned
            before I be thy servant!” growled the lad. “You’ll see me what?” asked Catherine in
            surprise. “Damned—thou saucy witch!” he replied. “There, Miss Cathy! you see you have
            got into pretty company,” I interposed. “Nice words to be used to a young lady! Pray
            don’t begin to dispute with him. Come, let us seek for Minny ourselves, and begone.”
            “But, Ellen,” cried she, staring fixed in astonishment, “how dare he speak so to me?
            Mustn’t he be made to do as I ask him? You wicked creature, I shall tell papa what you
            said.—Now, then!” Hareton did not appear to feel this threat; so the tears sprang into
            her eyes with indignation. “You bring the pony,” she exclaimed, turning to the woman,
            “and let my dog free this moment!” “Softly, Miss,” answered the addressed. “You’ll lose
            nothing by being civil. Though Mr. Hareton, there, be not the master’s son, he’s your
            cousin: and I was never hired to serve you.” “He my cousin!” cried Cathy, with a
            scornful laugh. “Yes, indeed,” responded her reprover. “Oh, Ellen! don’t let them say
            such things,” she pursued in great trouble. “Papa is gone to fetch my cousin from
            London: my cousin is a gentleman’s son. That my—” she stopped, and wept outright; upset
            at the bare notion of relationship with such a clown. “Hush, hush!” I whispered; “people
            can have many cousins and of all sorts, Miss Cathy, without being any the worse for it;
            only they needn’t keep their company, if they be disagreeable and bad.” “He’s not—he’s
            not my cousin, Ellen!” she went on, gathering fresh grief from reflection, and flinging
            herself into my arms for refuge from the idea. I was much vexed at her and the servant
            for their mutual revelations; having no doubt of Linton’s approaching arrival,
            communicated by the former, being reported to Mr. Heathcliff; and feeling as confident
            that Catherine’s first thought on her father’s return would be to seek an explanation of
            the latter’s assertion concerning her rude-bred kindred. Hareton, recovering from his
            disgust at being taken for a servant, seemed moved by her distress; and, having fetched
            the pony round to the door, he took, to propitiate her, a fine crooked-legged terrier
            whelp from the kennel, and putting it into her hand, bid her whist! for he meant nought.
            Pausing in her lamentations, she surveyed him with a glance of awe and horror, then
            burst forth anew. </p>
         <p>    I could scarcely refrain from smiling at this antipathy to the poor
            fellow; who was a well-made, athletic youth, good-looking in features, and stout and
            healthy, but attired in garments befitting his daily occupations of working on the farm
            and lounging among the moors after rabbits and game. Still, I thought I could detect in
            his physiognomy a mind owning better qualities than his father ever possessed. Good
            things lost amid a wilderness of weeds, to be sure, whose rankness far over-topped their
            neglected growth; yet, notwithstanding, evidence of a wealthy soil, that might yield
            luxuriant crops under other and favourable circumstances. Mr. Heathcliff, I believe, had
            not treated him physically ill; thanks to his fearless nature, which offered no
            temptation to that course of oppression: he had none of the timid susceptibility that
            would have given zest to ill-treatment, in Heathcliff’s judgment. He appeared to have
            bent his malevolence on making him a <tc:racedesc type="implied">brute</tc:racedesc>: he
            was never taught to read or write; never rebuked for any bad habit which did not annoy
            his keeper; never led a single step towards virtue, or guarded by a single precept
            against vice. And from what I heard, Joseph contributed much to his deterioration, by a
            narrow-minded partiality which prompted him to flatter and pet him, as a boy, because he
            was the head of the old family. And as he had been in the habit of accusing Catherine
            Earnshaw and Heathcliff, when children, of putting the master past his patience, and
            compelling him to seek solace in drink by what he termed their “offald ways,” so at
            present he laid the whole burden of Hareton’s faults on the shoulders of the usurper of
            his property. If the lad swore, he wouldn’t correct him: nor however culpably he
            behaved. It gave Joseph satisfaction, apparently, to watch him go the worst lengths: he
            allowed that the lad was ruined: that his soul was abandoned to perdition; but then he
            reflected that Heathcliff must answer for it. Hareton’s blood would be required at his
            hands; and there lay immense consolation in that thought. Joseph had instilled into him
            a pride of name, and of his lineage; he would, had he dared, have fostered hate between
            him and the present owner of the Heights: but his dread of that owner amounted to
            superstition; and he confined his feelings regarding him to muttered innuendoes and
            private comminations. I don’t pretend to be intimately acquainted with the mode of
            living customary in those days at Wuthering Heights: I only speak from hearsay; for I
            saw little. The villagers affirmed Mr. Heathcliff was near, and a cruel hard landlord to
            his tenants; but the house, inside, had regained its ancient aspect of comfort under
            female management, and the scenes of riot common in Hindley’s time were not now enacted
            within its walls. The master was too gloomy to seek companionship with any people, good
            or bad; and he is yet. </p>
         <p>   This, however, is not making progress with my story. Miss Cathy
            rejected the peace-offering of the terrier, and demanded her own dogs, Charlie and
            Phoenix. They came limping and hanging their heads; and we set out for home, sadly out
            of sorts, every one of us. I could not wring from my little lady how she had spent the
            day; except that, as I supposed, the goal of her pilgrimage was Penistone Crags; and she
            arrived without adventure to the gate of the farmhouse, when Hareton happened to issue
            forth, attended by some canine followers, who attacked her train. They had a smart
            battle, before their owners could separate them: that formed an introduction. Catherine
            told Hareton who she was, and where she was going; and asked him to show her the way:
            finally, beguiling him to accompany her. He opened the mysteries of the Fairy Cave, and
            twenty other queer places. But, being in disgrace, I was not favoured with a description
            of the interesting objects she saw. I could gather, however, that her guide had been a
            favourite till she hurt his feelings by addressing him as a servant; and Heathcliff’s
            housekeeper hurt hers by calling him her cousin. Then the language he had held to her
            rankled in her heart; she who was always “love,” and “darling,” and “queen,” and
            “angel,” with everybody at the Grange, to be insulted so shockingly by a stranger! She
            did not comprehend it; and hard work I had to obtain a promise that she would not lay
            the grievance before her father. I explained how he objected to the whole household at
            the Heights, and how sorry he would be to find she had been there; but I insisted most
            on the fact, that if she revealed my negligence of his orders, he would perhaps be so
            angry that I should have to leave; and Cathy couldn’t bear that prospect: she pledged
            her word, and kept it for my sake. After all, she was a sweet little girl. </p>
         <p>Chapter 19</p>
         <p> A letter, edged with black, announced the day of my master’s return. Isabella was dead;
            and he wrote to bid me get mourning for his daughter, and arrange a room, and other
            accommodations, for his youthful nephew. Catherine ran wild with joy at the idea of
            welcoming her father back; and indulged most sanguine anticipations of the innumerable
            excellencies of her “real” cousin. The evening of their expected arrival came. Since
            early morning she had been busy ordering her own small affairs; and now attired in her
            new black frock—poor thing! her aunt’s death impressed her with no definite sorrow—she
            obliged me, by constant worrying, to walk with her down through the grounds to meet
            them. “Linton is just six months younger than I am,” she chattered, as we strolled
            leisurely over the swells and hollows of mossy turf, under shadow of the trees. “How
            delightful it will be to have him for a playfellow! Aunt Isabella sent papa a beautiful
            lock of his hair; it was lighter than mine—more flaxen, and quite as fine. I have it
            carefully preserved in a little glass box; and I’ve often thought what a pleasure it
            would be to see its owner. Oh! I am happy—and papa, dear, dear papa! Come, Ellen, let us
            run! come, run.” She ran, and returned and ran again, many times before my sober
            footsteps reached the gate, and then she seated herself on the grassy bank beside the
            path, and tried to wait patiently; but that was impossible: she couldn’t be still a
            minute. “How long they are!” she exclaimed. “Ah, I see some dust on the road—they are
            coming! No! When will they be here? May we not go a little way—half a mile, Ellen, only
            just half a mile? Do say yes, to that clump of birches at the turn!” I refused
            staunchly. At length her suspense was ended: the travelling carriage rolled in sight.
            Miss Cathy shrieked and stretched out her arms as soon as she caught her father’s face
            looking from the window. He descended, nearly as eager as herself; and a considerable
            interval elapsed ere they had a thought to spare for any but themselves. While they
            exchanged caresses I took a peep in to see after Linton. He was asleep in a corner,
            wrapped in a warm, fur-lined cloak, as if it had been winter. </p>
         <p>  A pale, delicate,
            effeminate boy, who might have been taken for my master’s younger brother, so strong was
            the resemblance: but there was a sickly peevishness in his aspect that Edgar Linton
            never had. The latter saw me looking; and having shaken hands, advised me to close the
            door, and leave him undisturbed; for the journey had fatigued him. Cathy would fain have
            taken one glance, but her father told her to come, and they walked together up the park,
            while I hastened before to prepare the servants. “Now, darling,” said Mr. Linton,
            addressing his daughter, as they halted at the bottom of the front steps: “your cousin
            is not so strong or so merry as you are, and he has lost his mother, remember, a very
            short time since; therefore, don’t expect him to play and run about with you directly.
            And don’t harass him much by talking: let him be quiet this evening, at least, will
            you?” “Yes, yes, papa,” answered Catherine: “but I do want to see him; and he hasn’t
            once looked out.” The carriage stopped; and the sleeper being roused, was lifted to the
            ground by his uncle. “This is your cousin Cathy, Linton,” he said, putting their little
            hands together. “She’s fond of you already; and mind you don’t grieve her by crying
            to-night. Try to be cheerful now; the travelling is at an end, and you have nothing to
            do but rest and amuse yourself as you please.” “Let me go to bed, then,” answered the
            boy, shrinking from Catherine’s salute; and he put his fingers to his eyes to remove
            incipient tears. “Come, come, there’s a good child,” I whispered, leading him in.
            “You’ll make her weep too—see how sorry she is for you!” I do not know whether it was
            sorrow for him, but his cousin put on as sad a countenance as himself, and returned to
            her father. All three entered, and mounted to the library, where tea was laid ready. I
            proceeded to remove Linton’s cap and mantle, and placed him on a chair by the table; but
            he was no sooner seated than he began to cry afresh. My master inquired what was the
            matter. “I can’t sit on a chair,” sobbed the boy. </p>
         <p>   “Go to the sofa, then, and Ellen shall
            bring you some tea,” answered his uncle patiently. He had been greatly tried, during the
            journey, I felt convinced, by his fretful ailing charge. Linton slowly trailed himself
            off, and lay down. Cathy carried a footstool and her cup to his side. At first she sat
            silent; but that could not last: she had resolved to make a pet of her little cousin, as
            she would have him to be; and she commenced stroking his curls, and kissing his cheek,
            and offering him tea in her saucer, like a baby. This pleased him, for he was not much
            better: he dried his eyes, and lightened into a faint smile. “Oh, he’ll do very well,”
            said the master to me, after watching them a minute. “Very well, if we can keep him,
            Ellen. The company of a child of his own age will instil new spirit into him soon, and
            by wishing for strength he’ll gain it.” “Ay, if we can keep him!” I mused to myself; and
            sore misgivings came over me that there was slight hope of that. And then, I thought,
            how ever will that weakling live at Wuthering Heights? Between his father and Hareton,
            what playmates and instructors they’ll be. Our doubts were presently decided—even
            earlier than I expected. I had just taken the children upstairs, after tea was finished,
            and seen Linton asleep—he would not suffer me to leave him till that was the case—I had
            come down, and was standing by the table in the hall, lighting a bedroom candle for Mr.
            Edgar, when a maid stepped out of the kitchen and informed me that Mr. Heathcliff’s
            servant Joseph was at the door, and wished to speak with the master. “I shall ask him
            what he wants first,” I said, in considerable trepidation. “A very unlikely hour to be
            troubling people, and the instant they have returned from a long journey. I don’t think
            the master can see him.” Joseph had advanced through the kitchen as I uttered these
            words, and now presented himself in the hall. He was donned in his Sunday garments, with
            his most sanctimonious and sourest face, and, holding his hat in one hand, and his stick
            in the other, he proceeded to clean his shoes on the mat. “Good-evening, Joseph,” I
            said, coldly. </p>
         <p>    “What business brings you here to-night?” “It’s Maister Linton I mun spake
            to,” he answered, waving me disdainfully aside. “Mr. Linton is going to bed; unless you
            have something particular to say, I’m sure he won’t hear it now,” I continued. “You had
            better sit down in there, and entrust your message to me.” “Which is his rahm?” pursued
            the fellow, surveying the range of closed doors. I perceived he was bent on refusing my
            mediation, so very reluctantly I went up to the library, and announced the unseasonable
            visitor, advising that he should be dismissed till next day. Mr. Linton had no time to
            empower me to do so, for Joseph mounted close at my heels, and, pushing into the
            apartment, planted himself at the far side of the table, with his two fists clapped on
            the head of his stick, and began in an elevated tone, as if anticipating opposition—
            “Hathecliff has sent me for his lad, and I munn’t goa back ’bout him.” Edgar Linton was
            silent a minute; an expression of exceeding sorrow overcast his features: he would have
            pitied the child on his own account; but, recalling Isabella’s hopes and fears, and
            anxious wishes for her son, and her commendations of him to his care, he grieved
            bitterly at the prospect of yielding him up, and searched in his heart how it might be
            avoided. No plan offered itself: the very exhibition of any desire to keep him would
            have rendered the claimant more peremptory: there was nothing left but to resign him.
            However, he was not going to rouse him from his sleep. “Tell Mr. Heathcliff,” he
            answered calmly, “that his son shall come to Wuthering Heights to-morrow. He is in bed,
            and too tired to go the distance now. You may also tell him that the mother of Linton
            desired him to remain under my guardianship; and, at present, his health is very
            precarious.”</p>
         <p>    “Noa!” said Joseph, giving a thud with his prop on the floor, and assuming
            an authoritative air. “Noa! that means naught. Hathecliff maks noa ’count o’ t’ mother,
            nor ye norther; but he’ll hev his lad; und I mun tak’ him—soa now ye knaw!” “You shall
            not to-night!” answered Linton decisively. “Walk down stairs at once, and repeat to your
            master what I have said. Ellen, show him down. Go—” And, aiding the indignant elder with
            a lift by the arm, he rid the room of him and closed the door. “Varrah weell!” shouted
            Joseph, as he slowly drew off. “To-morn, he’s come hisseln, and thrust him out, if ye
            darr!” </p>
         <p>Chapter 20</p>
         <p> To obviate the danger of this threat being fulfilled, Mr. Linton commissioned me to
            take the boy home early, on Catherine’s pony; and, said he—“As we shall now have no
            influence over his destiny, good or bad, you must say nothing of where he is gone to my
            daughter: she cannot associate with him hereafter, and it is better for her to remain in
            ignorance of his proximity; lest she should be restless, and anxious to visit the
            Heights. Merely tell her his father sent for him suddenly, and he has been obliged to
            leave us.” Linton was very reluctant to be roused from his bed at five o’clock, and
            astonished to be informed that he must prepare for further travelling; but I softened
            off the matter by stating that he was going to spend some time with his father, Mr.
            Heathcliff, who wished to see him so much, he did not like to defer the pleasure till he
            should recover from his late journey. “My father!” he cried, in strange perplexity.
            “Mamma never told me I had a father. Where does he live? I’d rather stay with uncle.”
            “He lives a little distance from the Grange,” I replied; “just beyond those hills: not
            so far, but you may walk over here when you get hearty. And you should be glad to go
            home, and to see him. You must try to love him, as you did your mother, and then he will
            love you.” “But why have I not heard of him before?” asked Linton. “Why didn’t mamma and
            he live together, as other people do?” “He had business to keep him in the north,” I
            answered, “and your mother’s health required her to reside in the south.” “And why
            didn’t mamma speak to me about him?” persevered the child. “She often talked of uncle,
            and I learnt to love him long ago. How am I to love papa? I don’t know him.” “Oh, all
            children love their parents,” I said. “Your mother, perhaps, thought you would want to
            be with him if she mentioned him often to you. Let us make haste. An early ride on such
            a beautiful morning is much preferable to an hour’s more sleep.” “Is she to go with us,”
            he demanded, “the little girl I saw yesterday?” “Not now,” replied I. “Is uncle?” he
            continued. “No, I shall be your companion there,” I said. Linton sank back on his pillow
            and fell into a brown study. “I won’t go without uncle,” he cried at length: “I can’t
            tell where you mean to take me.” I attempted to persuade him of the naughtiness of
            showing reluctance to meet his father; still he obstinately resisted any progress
            towards dressing, and I had to call for my master’s assistance in coaxing him out of
            bed. The poor thing was finally got off, with several delusive assurances that his
            absence should be short: that Mr. Edgar and Cathy would visit him, and other promises,
            equally ill-founded, which I invented and reiterated at intervals throughout the way.
            The pure heather-scented air, the bright sunshine, and the gentle canter of Minny,
            relieved his despondency after a while. He began to put questions concerning his new
            home, and its inhabitants, with greater interest and liveliness. “Is Wuthering Heights
            as pleasant a place as Thrushcross Grange?” he inquired, turning to take a last glance
            into the valley, whence a light mist mounted and formed a fleecy cloud on the skirts of
            the blue. </p>
         <p>  “It is not so buried in trees,” I replied, “and it is not quite so large, but
            you can see the country beautifully all round; and the air is healthier for you—fresher
            and drier. You will, perhaps, think the building old and dark at first; though it is a
            respectable house: the next best in the neighbourhood. And you will have such nice
            rambles on the moors. Hareton Earnshaw—that is, Miss Cathy’s other cousin, and so yours
            in a manner—will show you all the sweetest spots; and you can bring a book in fine
            weather, and make a green hollow your study; and, now and then, your uncle may join you
            in a walk: he does, frequently, walk out on the hills.” “And what is my father like?” he
            asked. “Is he as young and handsome as uncle?” “He’s as young,” said I; “but he has
            black hair and eyes, and looks sterner; and he is taller and bigger altogether. He’ll
            not seem to you so gentle and kind at first, perhaps, because it is not his way: still,
            mind you, be frank and cordial with him; and naturally he’ll be fonder of you than any
            uncle, for you are his own.” “Black hair and eyes!” mused Linton. “I can’t fancy him.
            Then I am not like him, am I?” “Not much,” I answered: not a morsel, I thought,
            surveying with regret the white complexion and slim frame of my companion, and his large
            languid eyes—his mother’s eyes, save that, unless a morbid touchiness kindled them a
            moment, they had not a vestige of her sparkling spirit. “How strange that he should
            never come to see mamma and me!” he murmured. “Has he ever seen me? If he has, I must
            have been a baby. I remember not a single thing about him!” “Why, Master Linton,” said
            I, “three hundred miles is a great distance; and ten years seem very different in length
            to a grown-up person compared with what they do to you. It is probable Mr. Heathcliff
            proposed going from summer to summer, but never found a convenient opportunity; and now
            it is too late. Don’t trouble him with questions on the subject: it will disturb him,
            for no good.” The boy was fully occupied with his own cogitations for the remainder of
            the ride, till we halted before the farmhouse garden-gate. I watched to catch his
            impressions in his countenance. He surveyed the carved front and low-browed lattices,
            the straggling gooseberry-bushes and crooked firs, with solemn intentness, and then
            shook his head: his private feelings entirely disapproved of the exterior of his new
            abode. But he had sense to postpone complaining: there might be compensation within.
            Before he dismounted, I went and opened the door. It was half-past six; the family had
            just finished breakfast: the servant was clearing and wiping down the table. Joseph
            stood by his master’s chair telling some tale concerning a lame horse; and Hareton was
            preparing for the hayfield. </p>
         <p>    “Hallo, Nelly!” said Mr. Heathcliff, when he saw me. “I
            feared I should have to come down and fetch my property myself. You’ve brought it, have
            you? Let us see what we can make of it.” He got up and strode to the door: Hareton and
            Joseph followed in gaping curiosity. Poor Linton ran a frightened eye over the faces of
            the three. “Sure-ly,” said Joseph after a grave inspection, “he’s swopped wi’ ye,
            Maister, an’ yon’s his lass!” Heathcliff, having stared his son into an ague of
            confusion, uttered a scornful laugh. “God! what a beauty! what a lovely, charming
            thing!” he exclaimed. “Hav’n’t they reared it on snails and sour milk, Nelly? Oh, damn
            my soul! but that’s worse than I expected—and the devil knows I was not sanguine!” I bid
            the trembling and bewildered child get down, and enter. He did not thoroughly comprehend
            the meaning of his father’s speech, or whether it were intended for him: indeed, he was
            not yet certain that the grim, sneering stranger was his father. But he clung to me with
            growing trepidation; and on Mr. Heathcliff’s taking a seat and bidding him “come hither”
            he hid his face on my shoulder and wept. “Tut, tut!” said Heathcliff, stretching out a
            hand and dragging him roughly between his knees, and then holding up his head by the
            chin. “None of that nonsense! We’re not going to hurt thee, Linton—isn’t that thy name?
            Thou art thy mother’s child, entirely! Where is my share in thee, puling chicken?” He
            took off the boy’s cap and pushed back his thick flaxen curls, felt his slender arms and
            his small fingers; during which examination Linton ceased crying, and lifted his great
            blue eyes to inspect the inspector. “Do you know me?” asked Heathcliff, having satisfied
            himself that the limbs were all equally frail and feeble. “No,” said Linton, with a gaze
            of vacant fear. “You’ve heard of me, I daresay?” “No,” he replied again. “No! What a
            shame of your mother, never to waken your filial regard for me! You are my son, then,
            I’ll tell you; and your mother was a wicked slut to leave you in ignorance of the sort
            of father you possessed. Now, don’t wince, and colour up! Though it is something to see
            you have not white blood. Be a good lad; and I’ll do for you. Nelly, if you be tired you
            may sit down; if not, get home again. I guess you’ll report what you hear and see to the
            cipher at the Grange; and this thing won’t be settled while you linger about it.”
            “Well,” replied I, “I hope you’ll be kind to the boy, Mr. Heathcliff, or you’ll not keep
            him long; and he’s all you have akin in the wide world, that you will ever
            know—remember.” </p>
         <p>    “I’ll be very kind to him, you needn’t fear,” he said, laughing. “Only
            nobody else must be kind to him: I’m jealous of monopolising his affection. And, to
            begin my kindness, Joseph, bring the lad some breakfast. Hareton, you infernal calf,
            begone to your work. Yes, Nell,” he added, when they had departed, “my son is
            prospective owner of your place, and I should not wish him to die till I was certain of
            being his successor. Besides, he’s mine, and I want the triumph of seeing my descendant
            fairly lord of their estates; my child hiring their children to till their fathers’
            lands for wages. That is the sole consideration which can make me endure the whelp: I
            despise him for himself, and hate him for the memories he revives! But that
            consideration is sufficient: he’s as safe with me, and shall be tended as carefully as
            your master tends his own. I have a room upstairs, furnished for him in handsome style;
            I’ve engaged a tutor, also, to come three times a week, from twenty miles’ distance, to
            teach him what he pleases to learn. I’ve ordered Hareton to obey him: and in fact I’ve
            arranged everything with a view to preserve the superior and the gentleman in him, above
            his associates. I do regret, however, that he so little deserves the trouble: if I
            wished any blessing in the world, it was to find him a worthy object of pride; and I’m
            bitterly disappointed with the whey-faced, whining wretch!” While he was speaking,
            Joseph returned bearing a basin of milk-porridge, and placed it before Linton: who
            stirred round the homely mess with a look of aversion, and affirmed he could not eat it.
            I saw the old man-servant shared largely in his master’s scorn of the child; though he
            was compelled to retain the sentiment in his heart, because Heathcliff plainly meant his
            underlings to hold him in honour. </p>
         <p>    “Cannot ate it?” repeated he, peering in Linton’s
            face, and subduing his voice to a whisper, for fear of being overheard. “But Maister
            Hareton nivir ate naught else, when he wer a little ’un; and what wer gooid eneugh for
            him’s gooid eneugh for ye, I’s rayther think!” “I sha’n’t eat it!” answered Linton,
            snappishly. “Take it away.” Joseph snatched up the food indignantly, and brought it to
            us. “Is there aught ails th’ victuals?” he asked, thrusting the tray under Heathcliff’s
            nose. “What should ail them?” he said. “Wah!” answered Joseph, “yon dainty chap says he
            cannut ate ’em. But I guess it’s raight! His mother wer just soa—we wer a’most too mucky
            to sow t’ corn for makking her breead.” “Don’t mention his mother to me,” said the
            master, angrily. “Get him something that he can eat, that’s all. What is his usual food,
            Nelly?” I suggested boiled milk or tea; and the housekeeper received instructions to
            prepare some. Come, I reflected, his father’s selfishness may contribute to his comfort.
            He perceives his delicate constitution, and the necessity of treating him tolerably.
            I’ll console Mr. Edgar by acquainting him with the turn Heathcliff’s humour has taken.
            Having no excuse for lingering longer, I slipped out, while Linton was engaged in
            timidly rebuffing the advances of a friendly sheep-dog. But he was too much on the alert
            to be cheated: as I closed the door, I heard a cry, and a frantic repetition of the
            words— “Don’t leave me! I’ll not stay here! I’ll not stay here!” Then the latch was
            raised and fell: they did not suffer him to come forth. I mounted Minny, and urged her
            to a trot; and so my brief guardianship ended. </p>
         <p>Chapter 21</p>
          <p> We had sad work with little Cathy that day: she rose in high glee, eager to join her
            cousin, and such passionate tears and lamentations followed the news of his departure
            that Edgar himself was obliged to soothe her, by affirming he should come back soon: he
            added, however, “if I can get him”; and there were no hopes of that. This promise poorly
            pacified her; but time was more potent; and though still at intervals she inquired of
            her father when Linton would return, before she did see him again his features had waxed
            so dim in her memory that she did not recognise him. When I chanced to encounter the
            housekeeper of Wuthering Heights, in paying business visits to Gimmerton, I used to ask
            how the young master got on; for he lived almost as secluded as Catherine herself, and
            was never to be seen. I could gather from her that he continued in weak health, and was
            a tiresome inmate. She said Mr. Heathcliff seemed to dislike him ever longer and worse,
            though he took some trouble to conceal it: he had an antipathy to the sound of his
            voice, and could not do at all with his sitting in the same room with him many minutes
            together. There seldom passed much talk between them: Linton learnt his lessons and
            spent his evenings in a small apartment they called the parlour: or else lay in bed all
            day: for he was constantly getting coughs, and colds, and aches, and pains of some sort.
            “And I never knew such a faint-hearted creature,” added the woman; “nor one so careful
            of hisseln. He will go on, if I leave the window open a bit late in the evening. Oh!
            it’s killing, a breath of night air! And he must have a fire in the middle of summer;
            and Joseph’s bacca-pipe is poison; and he must always have sweets and dainties, and
            always milk, milk for ever—heeding naught how the rest of us are pinched in winter; and
            there he’ll sit, wrapped in his furred cloak in his chair by the fire, with some toast
            and water or other slop on the hob to sip at; and if Hareton, for pity, comes to amuse
            him—Hareton is not bad-natured, though he’s rough—they’re sure to part, one swearing and
            the other crying. I believe the master would relish Earnshaw’s thrashing him to a mummy,
            if he were not his son; and I’m certain he would be fit to turn him out of doors, if he
            knew half the nursing he gives hisseln. But then he won’t go into danger of temptation:
            he never enters the parlour, and should Linton show those ways in the house where he is,
            he sends him upstairs directly.” </p>
          <p>  I divined, from this account, that utter lack of
            sympathy had rendered young Heathcliff selfish and disagreeable, if he were not so
            originally; and my interest in him, consequently, decayed: though still I was moved with
            a sense of grief at his lot, and a wish that he had been left with us. Mr. Edgar
            encouraged me to gain information: he thought a great deal about him, I fancy, and would
            have run some risk to see him; and he told me once to ask the housekeeper whether he
            ever came into the village? She said he had only been twice, on horseback, accompanying
            his father; and both times he pretended to be quite knocked up for three or four days
            afterwards. That housekeeper left, if I recollect rightly, two years after he came; and
            another, whom I did not know, was her successor; she lives there still. Time wore on at
            the Grange in its former pleasant way till Miss Cathy reached sixteen. On the
            anniversary of her birth we never manifested any signs of rejoicing, because it was also
            the anniversary of my late mistress’s death. Her father invariably spent that day alone
            in the library; and walked, at dusk, as far as Gimmerton kirkyard, where he would
            frequently prolong his stay beyond midnight. Therefore Catherine was thrown on her own
            resources for amusement. This twentieth of March was a beautiful spring day, and when
            her father had retired, my young lady came down dressed for going out, and said she
            asked to have a ramble on the edge of the moor with me: Mr. Linton had given her leave,
            if we went only a short distance and were back within the hour. “So make haste, Ellen!”
            she cried. “I know where I wish to go; where a colony of moor-game are settled: I want
            to see whether they have made their nests yet.” “That must be a good distance up,” I
            answered; “they don’t breed on the edge of the moor.” “No, it’s not,” she said. “I’ve
            gone very near with papa.” I put on my bonnet and sallied out, thinking nothing more of
            the matter. She bounded before me, and returned to my side, and was off again like a
            young greyhound; and, at first, I found plenty of entertainment in listening to the
            larks singing far and near, and enjoying the sweet, warm sunshine; and watching her, my
            pet and my delight, with her golden ringlets flying loose behind, and her bright cheek,
            as soft and pure in its bloom as a wild rose, and her eyes radiant with cloudless
            pleasure. She was a happy creature, and an angel, in those days. It’s a pity she could
            not be content. </p>
         <p>   “Well,” said I, “where are your moor-game, Miss Cathy? We should be at
            them: the Grange park-fence is a great way off now.” “Oh, a little further—only a little
            further, Ellen,” was her answer, continually. “Climb to that hillock, pass that bank,
            and by the time you reach the other side I shall have raised the birds.” But there were
            so many hillocks and banks to climb and pass, that, at length, I began to be weary, and
            told her we must halt, and retrace our steps. I shouted to her, as she had outstripped
            me a long way; she either did not hear or did not regard, for she still sprang on, and I
            was compelled to follow. Finally, she dived into a hollow; and before I came in sight of
            her again, she was two miles nearer Wuthering Heights than her own home; and I beheld a
            couple of persons arrest her, one of whom I felt convinced was Mr. Heathcliff himself.
            Cathy had been caught in the fact of plundering, or, at least, hunting out the nests of
            the grouse. The Heights were Heathcliff’s land, and he was reproving the poacher. “I’ve
            neither taken any nor found any,” she said, as I toiled to them, expanding her hands in
            corroboration of the statement. “I didn’t mean to take them; but papa told me there were
            quantities up here, and I wished to see the eggs.” Heathcliff glanced at me with an
            ill-meaning smile, expressing his acquaintance with the party, and, consequently, his
            malevolence towards it, and demanded who “papa” was? “Mr. Linton of Thrushcross Grange,”
            she replied. “I thought you did not know me, or you wouldn’t have spoken in that way.”
            “You suppose papa is highly esteemed and respected, then?” he said, sarcastically. “And
            what are you?” inquired Catherine, gazing curiously on the speaker. “That man I’ve seen
            before. Is he your son?” She pointed to Hareton, the other individual, who had gained
            nothing but increased bulk and strength by the addition of two years to his age: he
            seemed as awkward and rough as ever. “Miss Cathy,” I interrupted, “it will be three
            hours instead of one that we are out, presently. We really must go back.” “No, that man
            is not my son,” answered Heathcliff, pushing me aside. “But I have one, and you have
            seen him before too; and, though your nurse is in a hurry, I think both you and she
            would be the better for a little rest. Will you just turn this nab of heath, and walk
            into my house? You’ll get home earlier for the ease; and you shall receive a kind
            welcome.” I whispered Catherine that she mustn’t, on any account, accede to the
            proposal: it was entirely out of the question. </p>
         <p>   “Why?” she asked, aloud. “I’m tired of
            running, and the ground is dewy: I can’t sit here. Let us go, Ellen. Besides, he says I
            have seen his son. He’s mistaken, I think; but I guess where he lives: at the farmhouse
            I visited in coming from Penistone Crags. Don’t you?” “I do. Come, Nelly, hold your
            tongue—it will be a treat for her to look in on us. Hareton, get forwards with the lass.
            You shall walk with me, Nelly.” “No, she’s not going to any such place,” I cried,
            struggling to release my arm, which he had seized: but she was almost at the door-stones
            already, scampering round the brow at full speed. Her appointed companion did not
            pretend to escort her: he shied off by the road-side, and vanished. “Mr. Heathcliff,
            it’s very wrong,” I continued: “you know you mean no good. And there she’ll see Linton,
            and all will be told as soon as ever we return; and I shall have the blame.” “I want her
            to see Linton,” he answered; “he’s looking better these few days; it’s not often he’s
            fit to be seen. And we’ll soon persuade her to keep the visit secret: where is the harm
            of it?” “The harm of it is, that her father would hate me if he found I suffered her to
            enter your house; and I am convinced you have a bad design in encouraging her to do so,”
            I replied. “My design is as honest as possible. I’ll inform you of its whole scope,” he
            said. “That the two cousins may fall in love, and get married. I’m acting generously to
            your master: his young chit has no expectations, and should she second my wishes she’ll
            be provided for at once as joint successor with Linton.” “If Linton died,” I answered,
            “and his life is quite uncertain, Catherine would be the heir.” “No, she would not,” he
            said. “There is no clause in the will to secure it so: his property would go to me; but,
            to prevent disputes, I desire their union, and am resolved to bring it about.” “And I’m
            resolved she shall never approach your house with me again,” I returned, as we reached
            the gate, where Miss Cathy waited our coming. Heathcliff bade me be quiet; and,
            preceding us up the path, hastened to open the door. My young lady gave him several
            looks, as if she could not exactly make up her mind what to think of him; but now he
            smiled when he met her eye, and softened his voice in addressing her; and I was foolish
            enough to imagine the memory of her mother might disarm him from desiring her injury.
            Linton stood on the hearth. He had been out walking in the fields, for his cap was on,
            and he was calling to Joseph to bring him dry shoes. He had grown tall of his age, still
            wanting some months of sixteen. His features were pretty yet, and his eye and complexion
            brighter than I remembered them, though with merely temporary lustre borrowed from the
            salubrious air and genial sun. “Now, who is that?” asked Mr. Heathcliff, turning to
            Cathy. “Can you tell?” </p>
         <p>   “Your son?” she said, having doubtfully surveyed, first one and
            then the other. “Yes, yes,” answered he: “but is this the only time you have beheld him?
            Think! Ah! you have a short memory. Linton, don’t you recall your cousin, that you used
            to tease us so with wishing to see?” “What, Linton!” cried Cathy, kindling into joyful
            surprise at the name. “Is that little Linton? He’s taller than I am! Are you Linton?”
            The youth stepped forward, and acknowledged himself: she kissed him fervently, and they
            gazed with wonder at the change time had wrought in the appearance of each. Catherine
            had reached her full height; her figure was both plump and slender, elastic as steel,
            and her whole aspect sparkling with health and spirits. Linton’s looks and movements
            were very languid, and his form extremely slight; but there was a grace in his manner
            that mitigated these defects, and rendered him not unpleasing. After exchanging numerous
            marks of fondness with him, his cousin went to Mr. Heathcliff, who lingered by the door,
            dividing his attention between the objects inside and those that lay without:
            pretending, that is, to observe the latter, and really noting the former alone. “And you
            are my uncle, then!” she cried, reaching up to salute him. “I thought I liked you,
            though you were cross at first. Why don’t you visit at the Grange with Linton? To live
            all these years such close neighbours, and never see us, is odd: what have you done so
            for?” “I visited it once or twice too often before you were born,” he answered.
            “There—damn it! If you have any kisses to spare, give them to Linton: they are thrown
            away on me.” “Naughty Ellen!” exclaimed Catherine, flying to attack me next with her
            lavish caresses. </p>
        <p>    “Wicked Ellen! to try to hinder me from entering. But I’ll take this
            walk every morning in future: may I, uncle? and sometimes bring papa. Won’t you be glad
            to see us?” “Of course,” replied the uncle, with a hardly suppressed grimace, resulting
            from his deep aversion to both the proposed visitors. “But stay,” he continued, turning
            towards the young lady. “Now I think of it, I’d better tell you. Mr. Linton has a
            prejudice against me: we quarrelled at one time of our lives, with unchristian ferocity;
            and, if you mention coming here to him, he’ll put a veto on your visits altogether.
            Therefore, you must not mention it, unless you be careless of seeing your cousin
            hereafter: you may come, if you will, but you must not mention it.” “Why did you
            quarrel?” asked Catherine, considerably crestfallen. “He thought me too poor to wed his
            sister,” answered Heathcliff, “and was grieved that I got her: his pride was hurt, and
            he’ll never forgive it.” “That’s wrong!” said the young lady: “some time I’ll tell him
            so. But Linton and I have no share in your quarrel. I’ll not come here, then; he shall
            come to the Grange.” “It will be too far for me,” murmured her cousin: “to walk four
            miles would kill me. No, come here, Miss Catherine, now and then: not every morning, but
            once or twice a week.” The father launched towards his son a glance of bitter contempt.
            “I am afraid, Nelly, I shall lose my labour,” he muttered to me. “Miss Catherine, as the
            ninny calls her, will discover his value, and send him to the devil. Now, if it had been
            Hareton!—Do you know that, twenty times a day, I covet Hareton, with all his
            degradation? I’d have loved the lad had he been some one else. But I think he’s safe
            from her love. I’ll pit him against that paltry creature, unless it bestir itself
            briskly. We calculate it will scarcely last till it is eighteen. Oh, confound the vapid
            thing! He’s absorbed in drying his feet, and never looks at her.—Linton!” “Yes, father,”
            answered the boy. “Have you nothing to show your cousin anywhere about, not even a
            rabbit or a weasel’s nest? Take her into the garden, before you change your shoes; and
            into the stable to see your horse.” “Wouldn’t you rather sit here?” asked Linton,
            addressing Cathy in a tone which expressed reluctance to move again. “I don’t know,” she
            replied, casting a longing look to the door, and evidently eager to be active. He kept
            his seat, and shrank closer to the fire. Heathcliff rose, and went into the kitchen, and
            from thence to the yard, calling out for Hareton. Hareton responded, and presently the
            two re-entered. The young man had been washing himself, as was visible by the glow on
            his cheeks and his wetted hair. “Oh, I’ll ask you, uncle,” cried Miss Cathy,
            recollecting the housekeeper’s assertion. “That is not my cousin, is he?” “Yes,” he
            replied, “your mother’s nephew. Don’t you like him?” Catherine looked queer. “Is he not
            a handsome lad?” he continued. </p>
          <p>  The uncivil little thing stood on tiptoe, and whispered a
            sentence in Heathcliff’s ear. He laughed; Hareton darkened: I perceived he was very
            sensitive to suspected slights, and had obviously a dim notion of his inferiority. But
            his master or guardian chased the frown by exclaiming— “You’ll be the favourite among
            us, Hareton! She says you are a—What was it? Well, something very flattering. Here! you
            go with her round the farm. And behave like a gentleman, mind! Don’t use any bad words;
            and don’t stare when the young lady is not looking at you, and be ready to hide your
            face when she is; and, when you speak, say your words slowly, and keep your hands out of
            your pockets. Be off, and entertain her as nicely as you can.” He watched the couple
            walking past the window. Earnshaw had his countenance completely averted from his
            companion. He seemed studying the familiar landscape with a stranger’s and an artist’s
            interest. Catherine took a sly look at him, expressing small admiration. She then turned
            her attention to seeking out objects of amusement for herself, and tripped merrily on,
            lilting a tune to supply the lack of conversation. “I’ve tied his tongue,” observed
            Heathcliff. “He’ll not venture a single syllable all the time! Nelly, you recollect me
            at his age—nay, some years younger. Did I ever look so stupid: so ‘gaumless,’ as Joseph
            calls it?” “Worse,” I replied, “because more sullen with it.” “I’ve a pleasure in him,”
            he continued, reflecting aloud. “He has satisfied my expectations. If he were a born
            fool I should not enjoy it half so much. But he’s no fool; and I can sympathise with all
            his feelings, having felt them myself. I know what he suffers now, for instance,
            exactly: it is merely a beginning of what he shall suffer, though. And he’ll never be
            able to emerge from his bathos of coarseness and ignorance. I’ve got him faster than his
            scoundrel of a father secured me, and lower; for he takes a pride in his brutishness.
            I’ve taught him to scorn everything extra-animal as silly and weak. Don’t you think
            Hindley would be proud of his son, if he could see him? almost as proud as I am of mine.
            But there’s this difference; one is gold put to the use of paving-stones, and the other
            is tin polished to ape a service of silver. Mine has nothing valuable about it; yet I
            shall have the merit of making it go as far as such poor stuff can go. His had
            first-rate qualities, and they are lost: rendered worse than unavailing. I have nothing
            to regret; he would have more than any, but I, are aware of. And the best of it is,
            Hareton is damnably fond of me! You’ll own that I’ve outmatched Hindley there. If the
            dead villain could rise from his grave to abuse me for his offspring’s wrongs, I should
            have the fun of seeing the said offspring fight him back again, indignant that he should
            dare to rail at the one friend he has in the world!” Heathcliff chuckled a fiendish
            laugh at the idea. I made no reply, because I saw that he expected none. Meantime, our
            young companion, who sat too removed from us to hear what was said, began to evince
            symptoms of uneasiness, probably repenting that he had denied himself the treat of
            Catherine’s society for fear of a little fatigue. His father remarked the restless
            glances wandering to the window, and the hand irresolutely extended towards his cap.</p>
          <p>  “Get up, you idle boy!” he exclaimed, with assumed heartiness. “Away after them! they
            are just at the corner, by the stand of hives.” Linton gathered his energies, and left
            the hearth. The lattice was open, and, as he stepped out, I heard Cathy inquiring of her
            unsociable attendant what was that inscription over the door? Hareton stared up, and
            scratched his head like a true clown. “It’s some damnable writing,” he answered. “I
            cannot read it.” “Can’t read it?” cried Catherine; “I can read it: it’s English. But I
            want to know why it is there.” Linton giggled: the first appearance of mirth he had
            exhibited. “He does not know his letters,” he said to his cousin. “Could you believe in
            the existence of such a colossal dunce?” “Is he all as he should be?” asked Miss Cathy,
            seriously; “or is he simple: not right? I’ve questioned him twice now, and each time he
            looked so stupid I think he does not understand me. I can hardly understand him, I’m
            sure!” Linton repeated his laugh, and glanced at Hareton tauntingly; who certainly did
            not seem quite clear of comprehension at that moment. “There’s nothing the matter but
            laziness; is there, Earnshaw?” he said. “My cousin fancies you are an idiot. There you
            experience the consequence of scorning ‘book-larning,’ as you would say. Have you
            noticed, Catherine, his frightful Yorkshire pronunciation?” </p>
          <p>  “Why, where the devil is the
            use on’t?” growled Hareton, more ready in answering his daily companion. He was about to
            enlarge further, but the two youngsters broke into a noisy fit of merriment: my giddy
            miss being delighted to discover that she might turn his strange talk to matter of
            amusement. “Where is the use of the devil in that sentence?” tittered Linton. “Papa told
            you not to say any bad words, and you can’t open your mouth without one. Do try to
            behave like a gentleman, now do!” “If thou weren’t more a lass than a lad, I’d fell thee
            this minute, I would; pitiful lath of a crater!” retorted the angry boor, retreating,
            while his face burnt with mingled rage and mortification; for he was conscious of being
            insulted, and embarrassed how to resent it. Mr. Heathcliff having overheard the
            conversation, as well as I, smiled when he saw him go; but immediately afterwards cast a
            look of singular aversion on the flippant pair, who remained chattering in the doorway:
            the boy finding animation enough while discussing Hareton’s faults and deficiencies, and
            relating anecdotes of his goings on; and the girl relishing his pert and spiteful
            sayings, without considering the ill-nature they evinced. I began to dislike, more than
            to compassionate Linton, and to excuse his father in some measure for holding him cheap.
            We stayed till afternoon: I could not tear Miss Cathy away sooner; but happily my master
            had not quitted his apartment, and remained ignorant of our prolonged absence. As we
            walked home, I would fain have enlightened my charge on the characters of the people we
            had quitted: but she got it into her head that I was prejudiced against them. “Aha!” she
            cried, “you take papa’s side, Ellen: you are partial I know; or else you wouldn’t have
            cheated me so many years into the notion that Linton lived a long way from here. I’m
            really extremely angry; only I’m so pleased I can’t show it! But you must hold your
            tongue about my uncle; he’s my uncle, remember; and I’ll scold papa for quarrelling with
            him.” And so she ran on, till I relinquished the endeavour to convince her of her
            mistake. She did not mention the visit that night, because she did not see Mr. Linton.
            Next day it all came out, sadly to my chagrin; and still I was not altogether sorry: I
            thought the burden of directing and warning would be more efficiently borne by him than
            me. But he was too timid in giving satisfactory reasons for his wish that she should
            shun connection with the household of the Heights, and Catherine liked good reasons for
            every restraint that harassed her petted will. “Papa!” she exclaimed, after the
            morning’s salutations, “guess whom I saw yesterday, in my walk on the moors. Ah, papa,
            you started! you’ve not done right, have you, now? I saw—but listen, and you shall hear
            how I found you out; and Ellen, who is in league with you, and yet pretended to pity me
            so, when I kept hoping, and was always disappointed about Linton’s coming back!” She
            gave a faithful account of her excursion and its consequences; and my master, though he
            cast more than one reproachful look at me, said nothing till she had concluded. Then he
            drew her to him, and asked if she knew why he had concealed Linton’s near neighbourhood
            from her? Could she think it was to deny her a pleasure that she might harmlessly enjoy?
            “It was because you disliked Mr. Heathcliff,” she answered. “Then you believe I care
            more for my own feelings than yours, Cathy?” he said.</p>
         <p>   “No, it was not because I disliked
            Mr. Heathcliff, but because Mr. Heathcliff dislikes me; and is a most diabolical man,
            delighting to wrong and ruin those he hates, if they give him the slightest opportunity.
            I knew that you could not keep up an acquaintance with your cousin without being brought
            into contact with him; and I knew he would detest you on my account; so for your own
            good, and nothing else, I took precautions that you should not see Linton again. I meant
            to explain this some time as you grew older, and I’m sorry I delayed it.” “But Mr.
            Heathcliff was quite cordial, papa,” observed Catherine, not at all convinced; “and he
            didn’t object to our seeing each other: he said I might come to his house when I
            pleased; only I must not tell you, because you had quarrelled with him, and would not
            forgive him for marrying aunt Isabella. And you won’t. You are the one to be blamed: he
            is willing to let us be friends, at least; Linton and I; and you are not.” My master,
            perceiving that she would not take his word for her uncle-in-law’s evil disposition,
            gave a hasty sketch of his conduct to Isabella, and the manner in which Wuthering
            Heights became his property. He could not bear to discourse long upon the topic; for
            though he spoke little of it, he still felt the same horror and detestation of his
            ancient enemy that had occupied his heart ever since Mrs. Linton’s death. “She might
            have been living yet, if it had not been for him!” was his constant bitter reflection;
            and, in his eyes, Heathcliff seemed a murderer. Miss Cathy—conversant with no bad deeds
            except her own slight acts of disobedience, injustice, and passion, arising from hot
            temper and thoughtlessness, and repented of on the day they were committed—was amazed at
            the blackness of spirit that could brood on and cover revenge for years, and
            deliberately prosecute its plans without a visitation of remorse. She appeared so deeply
            impressed and shocked at this new view of human nature—excluded from all her studies and
            all her ideas till now—that Mr. Edgar deemed it unnecessary to pursue the subject. He
            merely added: “You will know hereafter, darling, why I wish you to avoid his house and
            family; now return to your old employments and amusements, and think no more about
            them.” Catherine kissed her father, and sat down quietly to her lessons for a couple of
            hours, according to custom; then she accompanied him into the grounds, and the whole day
            passed as usual: but in the evening, when she had retired to her room, and I went to
            help her to undress, I found her crying, on her knees by the bedside. “Oh, fie, silly
            child!” I exclaimed. “If you had any real griefs you’d be ashamed to waste a tear on
            this little contrariety. You never had one shadow of substantial sorrow, Miss Catherine.
            Suppose, for a minute, that master and I were dead, and you were by yourself in the
            world: how would you feel, then? Compare the present occasion with such an affliction as
            that, and be thankful for the friends you have, instead of coveting more.” “I’m not
            crying for myself, Ellen,” she answered, “it’s for him. He expected to see me again
            to-morrow, and there he’ll be so disappointed: and he’ll wait for me, and I sha’n’t
            come!” “Nonsense!” said I, “do you imagine he has thought as much of you as you have of
            him? Hasn’t he Hareton for a companion? Not one in a hundred would weep at losing a
            relation they had just seen twice, for two afternoons. Linton will conjecture how it is,
            and trouble himself no further about you.” </p>
         <p>   “But may I not write a note to tell him why I
            cannot come?” she asked, rising to her feet. “And just send those books I promised to
            lend him? His books are not as nice as mine, and he wanted to have them extremely, when
            I told him how interesting they were. May I not, Ellen?” “No, indeed! no, indeed!”
            replied I with decision. “Then he would write to you, and there’d never be an end of it.
            No, Miss Catherine, the acquaintance must be dropped entirely: so papa expects, and I
            shall see that it is done.” “But how can one little note—?” she recommenced, putting on
            an imploring countenance. “Silence!” I interrupted. “We’ll not begin with your little
            notes. Get into bed.” She threw at me a very naughty look, so naughty that I would not
            kiss her good-night at first: I covered her up, and shut her door, in great displeasure;
            but, repenting half-way, I returned softly, and lo! there was Miss standing at the table
            with a bit of blank paper before her and a pencil in her hand, which she guiltily
            slipped out of sight on my entrance. “You’ll get nobody to take that, Catherine,” I
            said, “if you write it; and at present I shall put out your candle.” I set the
            extinguisher on the flame, receiving as I did so a slap on my hand and a petulant “cross
            thing!” I then quitted her again, and she drew the bolt in one of her worst, most
            peevish humours. The letter was finished and forwarded to its destination by a
            milk-fetcher who came from the village; but that I didn’t learn till some time
            afterwards. Weeks passed on, and Cathy recovered her temper; though she grew wondrous
            fond of stealing off to corners by herself; and often, if I came near her suddenly while
            reading, she would start and bend over the book, evidently desirous to hide it; and I
            detected edges of loose paper sticking out beyond the leaves. She also got a trick of
            coming down early in the morning and lingering about the kitchen, as if she were
            expecting the arrival of something; and she had a small drawer in a cabinet in the
            library, which she would trifle over for hours, and whose key she took special care to
            remove when she left it. One day, as she inspected this drawer, I observed that the
            playthings and trinkets which recently formed its contents were transmuted into bits of
            folded paper. My curiosity and suspicions were roused; I determined to take a peep at
            her mysterious treasures; so, at night, as soon as she and my master were safe upstairs,
            I searched, and readily found among my house keys one that would fit the lock. Having
            opened, I emptied the whole contents into my apron, and took them with me to examine at
            leisure in my own chamber. Though I could not but suspect, I was still surprised to
            discover that they were a mass of correspondence—daily almost, it must have been—from
            Linton Heathcliff: answers to documents forwarded by her. The earlier dated were
            embarrassed and short; gradually, however, they expanded into copious love-letters,
            foolish, as the age of the writer rendered natural, yet with touches here and there
            which I thought were borrowed from a more experienced source. Some of them struck me as
            singularly odd compounds of ardour and flatness; commencing in strong feeling, and
            concluding in the affected, wordy style that a schoolboy might use to a fancied,
            incorporeal sweetheart. Whether they satisfied Cathy I don’t know; but they appeared
            very worthless trash to me. </p>
          <p>  After turning over as many as I thought proper, I tied them
            in a handkerchief and set them aside, relocking the vacant drawer. Following her habit,
            my young lady descended early, and visited the kitchen: I watched her go to the door, on
            the arrival of a certain little boy; and, while the dairymaid filled his can, she tucked
            something into his jacket pocket, and plucked something out. I went round by the garden,
            and laid wait for the messenger; who fought valorously to defend his trust, and we spilt
            the milk between us; but I succeeded in abstracting the epistle; and, threatening
            serious consequences if he did not look sharp home, I remained under the wall and
            perused Miss Cathy’s affectionate composition. It was more simple and more eloquent than
            her cousin’s: very pretty and very silly. I shook my head, and went meditating into the
            house. The day being wet, she could not divert herself with rambling about the park; so,
            at the conclusion of her morning studies, she resorted to the solace of the drawer. Her
            father sat reading at the table; and I, on purpose, had sought a bit of work in some
            unripped fringes of the window-curtain, keeping my eye steadily fixed on her
            proceedings. Never did any bird flying back to a plundered nest, which it had left
            brimful of chirping young ones, express more complete despair, in its anguished cries
            and flutterings, than she by her single “Oh!” and the change that transfigured her late
            happy countenance. Mr. Linton looked up. “What is the matter, love? Have you hurt
            yourself?” he said. His tone and look assured her he had not been the discoverer of the
            hoard. “No, papa!” she gasped. “Ellen! Ellen! come upstairs—I’m sick!” I obeyed her
            summons, and accompanied her out. “Oh, Ellen! you have got them,” she commenced
            immediately, dropping on her knees, when we were enclosed alone. “Oh, give them to me,
            and I’ll never, never do so again! Don’t tell papa. You have not told papa, Ellen? say
            you have not? I’ve been exceedingly naughty, but I won’t do it any more!” With a grave
            severity in my manner I bade her stand up. “So,” I exclaimed, “Miss Catherine, you are
            tolerably far on, it seems: you may well be ashamed of them! A fine bundle of trash you
            study in your leisure hours, to be sure: why, it’s good enough to be printed! And what
            do you suppose the master will think when I display it before him? I hav’n’t shown it
            yet, but you needn’t imagine I shall keep your ridiculous secrets. For shame! and you
            must have led the way in writing such absurdities: he would not have thought of
            beginning, I’m certain.” “I didn’t! I didn’t!” sobbed Cathy, fit to break her heart. “I
            didn’t once think of loving him till—” “Loving!” cried I, as scornfully as I could utter
            the word. “Loving! Did anybody ever hear the like! I might just as well talk of loving
            the miller who comes once a year to buy our corn. Pretty loving, indeed! and both times
            together you have seen Linton hardly four hours in your life! Now here is the babyish
            trash. I’m going with it to the library; and we’ll see what your father says to such
            loving.” </p>
        <p>    She sprang at her precious epistles, but I held them above my head; and then
            she poured out further frantic entreaties that I would burn them—do anything rather than
            show them. And being really fully as much inclined to laugh as scold—for I esteemed it
            all girlish vanity—I at length relented in a measure, and asked,—“If I consent to burn
            them, will you promise faithfully neither to send nor receive a letter again, nor a book
            (for I perceive you have sent him books), nor locks of hair, nor rings, nor playthings?”
            “We don’t send playthings,” cried Catherine, her pride overcoming her shame. “Nor
            anything at all, then, my lady?” I said. “Unless you will, here I go.” “I promise,
            Ellen!” she cried, catching my dress. “Oh, put them in the fire, do, do!” But when I
            proceeded to open a place with the poker the sacrifice was too painful to be borne. She
            earnestly supplicated that I would spare her one or two. “One or two, Ellen, to keep for
            Linton’s sake!” I unknotted the handkerchief, and commenced dropping them in from an
            angle, and the flame curled up the chimney. “I will have one, you cruel wretch!” she
            screamed, darting her hand into the fire, and drawing forth some half-consumed
            fragments, at the expense of her fingers. “Very well—and I will have some to exhibit to
            papa!” I answered, shaking back the rest into the bundle, and turning anew to the door.
            She emptied her blackened pieces into the flames, and motioned me to finish the
            immolation. It was done; I stirred up the ashes, and interred them under a shovelful of
            coals; and she mutely, and with a sense of intense injury, retired to her private
            apartment. I descended to tell my master that the young lady’s qualm of sickness was
            almost gone, but I judged it best for her to lie down a while. She wouldn’t dine; but
            she reappeared at tea, pale, and red about the eyes, and marvellously subdued in outward
            aspect. Next morning I answered the letter by a slip of paper, inscribed, “Master
            Heathcliff is requested to send no more notes to Miss Linton, as she will not receive
            them.” And, thenceforth, the little boy came with vacant pockets. </p>
         <p>Chapter 22</p>
         <p> Summer drew to an end, and early autumn: it was past Michaelmas, but the harvest was
            late that year, and a few of our fields were still uncleared. Mr. Linton and his
            daughter would frequently walk out among the reapers; at the carrying of the last
            sheaves they stayed till dusk, and the evening happening to be chill and damp, my master
            caught a bad cold, that settled obstinately on his lungs, and confined him indoors
            throughout the whole of the winter, nearly without intermission. Poor Cathy, frightened
            from her little romance, had been considerably sadder and duller since its abandonment;
            and her father insisted on her reading less, and taking more exercise. She had his
            companionship no longer; I esteemed it a duty to supply its lack, as much as possible,
            with mine: an inefficient substitute; for I could only spare two or three hours, from my
            numerous diurnal occupations, to follow her footsteps, and then my society was obviously
            less desirable than his. On an afternoon in October, or the beginning of November—a
            fresh watery afternoon, when the turf and paths were rustling with moist, withered
            leaves, and the cold blue sky was half hidden by clouds—dark grey streamers, rapidly
            mounting from the west, and boding abundant rain—I requested my young lady to forego her
            ramble, because I was certain of showers. She refused; and I unwillingly donned a cloak,
            and took my umbrella to accompany her on a stroll to the bottom of the park: a formal
            walk which she generally affected if low-spirited—and that she invariably was when Mr.
            Edgar had been worse than ordinary, a thing never known from his confession, but guessed
            both by her and me from his increased silence and the melancholy of his countenance. She
            went sadly on: there was no running or bounding now, though the chill wind might well
            have tempted her to race. And often, from the side of my eye, I could detect her raising
            a hand, and brushing something off her cheek. </p>
         <p>   I gazed round for a means of diverting her
            thoughts. On one side of the road rose a high, rough bank, where hazels and stunted
            oaks, with their roots half exposed, held uncertain tenure: the soil was too loose for
            the latter; and strong winds had blown some nearly horizontal. In summer Miss Catherine
            delighted to climb along these trunks, and sit in the branches, swinging twenty feet
            above the ground; and I, pleased with her agility and her light, childish heart, still
            considered it proper to scold every time I caught her at such an elevation, but so that
            she knew there was no necessity for descending. From dinner to tea she would lie in her
            breeze-rocked cradle, doing nothing except singing old songs—my nursery lore—to herself,
            or watching the birds, joint tenants, feed and entice their young ones to fly: or
            nestling with closed lids, half thinking, half dreaming, happier than words can express.
            “Look, Miss!” I exclaimed, pointing to a nook under the roots of one twisted tree.
            “Winter is not here yet. There’s a little flower up yonder, the last bud from the
            multitude of bluebells that clouded those turf steps in July with a lilac mist. Will you
            clamber up, and pluck it to show to papa?” Cathy stared a long time at the lonely
            blossom trembling in its earthy shelter, and replied, at length—“No, I’ll not touch it:
            but it looks melancholy, does it not, Ellen?” “Yes,” I observed, “about as starved and
            sackless as you: your cheeks are bloodless; let us take hold of hands and run. You’re so
            low, I daresay I shall keep up with you.” “No,” she repeated, and continued sauntering
            on, pausing at intervals to muse over a bit of moss, or a tuft of blanched grass, or a
            fungus spreading its bright orange among the heaps of brown foliage; and, ever and anon,
            her hand was lifted to her averted face. “Catherine, why are you crying, love?” I asked,
            approaching and putting my arm over her shoulder. “You mustn’t cry because papa has a
            cold; be thankful it is nothing worse.” She now put no further restraint on her tears;
            her breath was stifled by sobs. “Oh, it will be something worse,” she said. “And what
            shall I do when papa and you leave me, and I am by myself? I can’t forget your words,
            Ellen; they are always in my ear. How life will be changed, how dreary the world will
            be, when papa and you are dead.” “None can tell whether you won’t die before us,” I
            replied. “It’s wrong to anticipate evil. We’ll hope there are years and years to come
            before any of us go: master is young, and I am strong, and hardly forty-five. My mother
            lived till eighty, a canty dame to the last. And suppose Mr. Linton were spared till he
            saw sixty, that would be more years than you have counted, Miss. And would it not be
            foolish to mourn a calamity above twenty years beforehand?” </p>
         <p>   “But Aunt Isabella was
            younger than papa,” she remarked, gazing up with timid hope to seek further consolation.
            “Aunt Isabella had not you and me to nurse her,” I replied. “She wasn’t as happy as
            Master: she hadn’t as much to live for. All you need do, is to wait well on your father,
            and cheer him by letting him see you cheerful; and avoid giving him anxiety on any
            subject: mind that, Cathy! I’ll not disguise but you might kill him if you were wild and
            reckless, and cherished a foolish, fanciful affection for the son of a person who would
            be glad to have him in his grave; and allowed him to discover that you fretted over the
            separation he has judged it expedient to make.” “I fret about nothing on earth except
            papa’s illness,” answered my companion. “I care for nothing in comparison with papa. And
            I’ll never—never—oh, never, while I have my senses, do an act or say a word to vex him.
            I love him better than myself, Ellen; and I know it by this: I pray every night that I
            may live after him; because I would rather be miserable than that he should be: that
            proves I love him better than myself.” “Good words,” I replied. “But deeds must prove it
            also; and after he is well, remember you don’t forget resolutions formed in the hour of
            fear.” As we talked, we neared a door that opened on the road; and my young lady,
            lightening into sunshine again, climbed up and seated herself on the top of the wall,
            reaching over to gather some hips that bloomed scarlet on the summit branches of the
            wild-rose trees shadowing the highway side: the lower fruit had disappeared, but only
            birds could touch the upper, except from Cathy’s present station. In stretching to pull
            them, her hat fell off; and as the door was locked, she proposed scrambling down to
            recover it. I bid her be cautious lest she got a fall, and she nimbly disappeared. But
            the return was no such easy matter: the stones were smooth and neatly cemented, and the
            rosebushes and blackberry stragglers could yield no assistance in re-ascending. I, like
            a fool, didn’t recollect that, till I heard her laughing and exclaiming—“Ellen! you’ll
            have to fetch the key, or else I must run round to the porter’s lodge. I can’t scale the
            ramparts on this side!” “Stay where you are,” I answered; “I have my bundle of keys in
            my pocket: perhaps I may manage to open it; if not, I’ll go.” Catherine amused herself
            with dancing to and fro before the door, while I tried all the large keys in succession.
            I had applied the last, and found that none would do; so, repeating my desire that she
            would remain there, I was about to hurry home as fast as I could, when an approaching
            sound arrested me. It was the trot of a horse; Cathy’s dance stopped also. “Who is
            that?” I whispered. “Ellen, I wish you could open the door,” whispered back my
            companion, anxiously. </p>
         <p>   “Ho, Miss Linton!” cried a deep voice (the rider’s), “I’m glad to
            meet you. Don’t be in haste to enter, for I have an explanation to ask and obtain.” “I
            sha’n’t speak to you, Mr. Heathcliff,” answered Catherine. “Papa says you are a wicked
            man, and you hate both him and me; and Ellen says the same.” “That is nothing to the
            purpose,” said Heathcliff. (He it was.) “I don’t hate my son, I suppose; and it is
            concerning him that I demand your attention. Yes; you have cause to blush. Two or three
            months since, were you not in the habit of writing to Linton? making love in play, eh?
            You deserved, both of you, flogging for that! You especially, the elder; and less
            sensitive, as it turns out. I’ve got your letters, and if you give me any pertness I’ll
            send them to your father. I presume you grew weary of the amusement and dropped it,
            didn’t you? Well, you dropped Linton with it into a Slough of Despond. He was in
            earnest: in love, really. As true as I live, he’s dying for you; breaking his heart at
            your fickleness: not figuratively, but actually. Though Hareton has made him a standing
            jest for six weeks, and I have used more serious measures, and attempted to frighten him
            out of his idiocy, he gets worse daily; and he’ll be under the sod before summer, unless
            you restore him!” “How can you lie so glaringly to the poor child?” I called from the
            inside. “Pray ride on! How can you deliberately get up such paltry falsehoods? Miss
            Cathy, I’ll knock the lock off with a stone: you won’t believe that vile nonsense. You
            can feel in yourself it is impossible that a person should die for love of a stranger.”
            “I was not aware there were eavesdroppers,” muttered the detected villain. “Worthy Mrs.
            Dean, I like you, but I don’t like your double-dealing,” he added aloud. “How could you
            lie so glaringly as to affirm I hated the ‘poor child’? and invent bugbear stories to
            terrify her from my door-stones? Catherine Linton (the very name warms me), my bonny
            lass, I shall be from home all this week; go and see if I have not spoken truth: do,
            there’s a darling! Just imagine your father in my place, and Linton in yours; then think
            how you would value your careless lover if he refused to stir a step to comfort you,
            when your father himself entreated him; and don’t, from pure stupidity, fall into the
            same error. I swear, on my salvation, he’s going to his grave, and none but you can save
            him!” The lock gave way and I issued out. “I swear Linton is dying,” repeated
            Heathcliff, looking hard at me. “And grief and disappointment are hastening his death.
            Nelly, if you won’t let her go, you can walk over yourself. But I shall not return till
            this time next week; and I think your master himself would scarcely object to her
            visiting her cousin.” “Come in,” said I, taking Cathy by the arm and half forcing her to
            re-enter; for she lingered, viewing with troubled eyes the features of the speaker, too
            stern to express his inward deceit. He pushed his horse close, and, bending down,
            observed— “Miss Catherine, I’ll own to you that I have little patience with Linton; and
            Hareton and Joseph have less. I’ll own that he’s with a harsh set. He pines for
            kindness, as well as love; and a kind word from you would be his best medicine. Don’t
            mind Mrs. Dean’s cruel cautions; but be generous, and contrive to see him. He dreams of
            you day and night, and cannot be persuaded that you don’t hate him, since you neither
            write nor call.” </p>
         <p>     I closed the door, and rolled a stone to assist the loosened lock in
            holding it; and spreading my umbrella, I drew my charge underneath: for the rain began
            to drive through the moaning branches of the trees, and warned us to avoid delay. Our
            hurry prevented any comment on the encounter with Heathcliff, as we stretched towards
            home; but I divined instinctively that Catherine’s heart was clouded now in double
            darkness. Her features were so sad, they did not seem hers: she evidently regarded what
            she had heard as every syllable true. The master had retired to rest before we came in.
            Cathy stole to his room to inquire how he was; he had fallen asleep. She returned, and
            asked me to sit with her in the library. We took our tea together; and afterwards she
            lay down on the rug, and told me not to talk, for she was weary. I got a book, and
            pretended to read. As soon as she supposed me absorbed in my occupation, she recommenced
            her silent weeping: it appeared, at present, her favourite diversion. I suffered her to
            enjoy it a while; then I expostulated: deriding and ridiculing all Mr. Heathcliff’s
            assertions about his son, as if I were certain she would coincide. Alas! I hadn’t skill
            to counteract the effect his account had produced: it was just what he intended. “You
            may be right, Ellen,” she answered; “but I shall never feel at ease till I know. And I
            must tell Linton it is not my fault that I don’t write, and convince him that I shall
            not change.” What use were anger and protestations against her silly credulity? We
            parted that night—hostile; but next day beheld me on the road to Wuthering Heights, by
            the side of my wilful young mistress’s pony. I couldn’t bear to witness her sorrow: to
            see her pale, dejected countenance, and heavy eyes: and I yielded, in the faint hope
            that Linton himself might prove, by his reception of us, how little of the tale was
            founded on fact. </p>
         <p>Chapter 23</p>
         <p> The rainy night had ushered in a misty morning—half frost, half drizzle—and temporary
            brooks crossed our path—gurgling from the uplands. My feet were thoroughly wetted; I was
            cross and low; exactly the humour suited for making the most of these disagreeable
            things. We entered the farm-house by the kitchen way, to ascertain whether Mr.
            Heathcliff were really absent: because I put slight faith in his own affirmation. Joseph
            seemed sitting in a sort of elysium alone, beside a roaring fire; a quart of ale on the
            table near him, bristling with large pieces of toasted oat-cake; and his black, short
            pipe in his mouth. Catherine ran to the hearth to warm herself. I asked if the master
            was in? My question remained so long unanswered, that I thought the old man had grown
            deaf, and repeated it louder. “Na—ay!” he snarled, or rather screamed through his nose.
            “Na—ay! yah muh goa back whear yah coom frough.” “Joseph!” cried a peevish voice,
            simultaneously with me, from the inner room. “How often am I to call you? There are only
            a few red ashes now. Joseph! come this moment.” Vigorous puffs, and a resolute stare
            into the grate, declared he had no ear for this appeal. The housekeeper and Hareton were
            invisible; one gone on an errand, and the other at his work, probably. We knew Linton’s
            tones, and entered. “Oh, I hope you’ll die in a garret, starved to death!” said the boy,
            mistaking our approach for that of his negligent attendant. He stopped on observing his
            error: his cousin flew to him. “Is that you, Miss Linton?” he said, raising his head
            from the arm of the great chair, in which he reclined. “No—don’t kiss me: it takes my
            breath. Dear me! Papa said you would call,” continued he, after recovering a little from
            Catherine’s embrace; while she stood by looking very contrite. “Will you shut the door,
            if you please? you left it open; and those—those detestable creatures won’t bring coals
            to the fire. It’s so cold!” I stirred up the cinders, and fetched a scuttleful myself.
            The invalid complained of being covered with ashes; but he had a tiresome cough, and
            looked feverish and ill, so I did not rebuke his temper. “Well, Linton,” murmured
            Catherine, when his corrugated brow relaxed, “are you glad to see me? Can I do you any
            good?”</p>
         <p> “Why didn’t you come before?” he asked. “You should have come, instead of
            writing. It tired me dreadfully writing those long letters. I’d far rather have talked
            to you. Now, I can neither bear to talk, nor anything else. I wonder where Zillah is!
            Will you” (looking at me) “step into the kitchen and see?” I had received no thanks for
            my other service; and being unwilling to run to and fro at his behest, I replied—
            “Nobody is out there but Joseph.” “I want to drink,” he exclaimed fretfully, turning
            away. “Zillah is constantly gadding off to Gimmerton since papa went: it’s miserable!
            And I’m obliged to come down here—they resolved never to hear me upstairs.” “Is your
            father attentive to you, Master Heathcliff?” I asked, perceiving Catherine to be checked
            in her friendly advances. “Attentive? He makes them a little more attentive at least,”
            he cried. “The wretches! Do you know, Miss Linton, that brute Hareton laughs at me! I
            hate him! indeed, I hate them all: they are odious beings.” Cathy began searching for
            some water; she lighted on a pitcher in the dresser, filled a tumbler, and brought it.
            He bid her add a spoonful of wine from a bottle on the table; and having swallowed a
            small portion, appeared more tranquil, and said she was very kind. “And are you glad to
            see me?” asked she, reiterating her former question, and pleased to detect the faint
            dawn of a smile. “Yes, I am. It’s something new to hear a voice like yours!” he replied.
            “But I have been vexed, because you wouldn’t come. And papa swore it was owing to me: he
            called me a pitiful, shuffling, worthless thing; and said you despised me; and if he had
            been in my place, he would be more the master of the Grange than your father by this
            time. But you don’t despise me, do you, Miss—?” “I wish you would say Catherine, or
            Cathy,” interrupted my young lady. “Despise you? No! Next to papa and Ellen, I love you
            better than anybody living. I don’t love Mr. Heathcliff, though; and I dare not come
            when he returns: will he stay away many days?” “Not many,” answered Linton; “but he goes
            on to the moors frequently, since the shooting season commenced; and you might spend an
            hour or two with me in his absence. Do say you will. I think I should not be peevish
            with you: you’d not provoke me, and you’d always be ready to help me, wouldn’t you?”
            “Yes,” said Catherine, stroking his long soft hair, “if I could only get papa’s consent,
            I’d spend half my time with you. Pretty Linton! I wish you were my brother.” “And then
            you would like me as well as your father?” observed he, more cheerfully. “But papa says
            you would love me better than him and all the world, if you were my wife; so I’d rather
            you were that.” “No, I should never love anybody better than papa,” she returned
            gravely. “And people hate their wives, sometimes; but not their sisters and brothers:
            and if you were the latter, you would live with us, and papa would be as fond of you as
            he is of me.” Linton denied that people ever hated their wives; but Cathy affirmed they
            did, and, in her wisdom, instanced his own father’s aversion to her aunt. I endeavoured
            to stop her thoughtless tongue. I couldn’t succeed till everything she knew was out.
            Master Heathcliff, much irritated, asserted her relation was false. “Papa told me; and
            papa does not tell falsehoods,” she answered pertly. “My papa scorns yours!” cried
            Linton. “He calls him a sneaking fool.” “Yours is a wicked man,” retorted Catherine;
            “and you are very naughty to dare to repeat what he says. He must be wicked to have made
            Aunt Isabella leave him as she did.” “She didn’t leave him,” said the boy; “you sha’n’t
            contradict me.” “She did,” cried my young lady. “Well, I’ll tell you something!” said
            Linton. “Your mother hated your father: now then.” </p>
         <p>   “Oh!” exclaimed Catherine, too
            enraged to continue. “And she loved mine,” added he. “You little liar! I hate you now!”
            she panted, and her face grew red with passion. “She did! she did!” sang Linton, sinking
            into the recess of his chair, and leaning back his head to enjoy the agitation of the
            other disputant, who stood behind. “Hush, Master Heathcliff!” I said; “that’s your
            father’s tale, too, I suppose.” “It isn’t: you hold your tongue!” he answered. “She did,
            she did, Catherine! she did, she did!” Cathy, beside herself, gave the chair a violent
            push, and caused him to fall against one arm. He was immediately seized by a suffocating
            cough that soon ended his triumph. It lasted so long that it frightened even me. As to
            his cousin, she wept with all her might, aghast at the mischief she had done: though she
            said nothing. I held him till the fit exhausted itself. Then he thrust me away, and
            leant his head down silently. Catherine quelled her lamentations also, took a seat
            opposite, and looked solemnly into the fire. “How do you feel now, Master Heathcliff?” I
            inquired, after waiting ten minutes. “I wish she felt as I do,” he replied: “spiteful,
            cruel thing! Hareton never touches me: he never struck me in his life. And I was better
            to-day: and there—” his voice died in a whimper. “I didn’t strike you!” muttered Cathy,
            chewing her lip to prevent another burst of emotion. He sighed and moaned like one under
            great suffering, and kept it up for a quarter of an hour; on purpose to distress his
            cousin apparently, for whenever he caught a stifled sob from her he put renewed pain and
            pathos into the inflexions of his voice. “I’m sorry I hurt you, Linton,” she said at
            length, racked beyond endurance. “But I couldn’t have been hurt by that little push, and
            I had no idea that you could, either: you’re not much, are you, Linton? Don’t let me go
            home thinking I’ve done you harm. Answer! speak to me.” “I can’t speak to you,” he
            murmured; “you’ve hurt me so that I shall lie awake all night choking with this cough.
            If you had it you’d know what it was; but you’ll be comfortably asleep while I’m in
            agony, and nobody near me. I wonder how you would like to pass those fearful nights!”
            And he began to wail aloud, for very pity of himself. “Since you are in the habit of
            passing dreadful nights,” I said, “it won’t be Miss who spoils your ease: you’d be the
            same had she never come. However, she shall not disturb you again; and perhaps you’ll
            get quieter when we leave you.” “Must I go?” asked Catherine dolefully, bending over
            him. “Do you want me to go, Linton?” “You can’t alter what you’ve done,” he replied
            pettishly, shrinking from her, “unless you alter it for the worse by teasing me into a
            fever.” </p>
         <p>  “Well, then, I must go?” she repeated. “Let me alone, at least,” said he; “I
            can’t bear your talking.” She lingered, and resisted my persuasions to departure a
            tiresome while; but as he neither looked up nor spoke, she finally made a movement to
            the door, and I followed. We were recalled by a scream. Linton had slid from his seat on
            to the hearthstone, and lay writhing in the mere perverseness of an indulged plague of a
            child, determined to be as grievous and harassing as it can. I thoroughly gauged his
            disposition from his behaviour, and saw at once it would be folly to attempt humouring
            him. Not so my companion: she ran back in terror, knelt down, and cried, and soothed,
            and entreated, till he grew quiet from lack of breath: by no means from compunction at
            distressing her. “I shall lift him on to the settle,” I said, “and he may roll about as
            he pleases: we can’t stop to watch him. I hope you are satisfied, Miss Cathy, that you
            are not the person to benefit him; and that his condition of health is not occasioned by
            attachment to you. Now, then, there he is! Come away: as soon as he knows there is
            nobody by to care for his nonsense, he’ll be glad to lie still.” She placed a cushion
            under his head, and offered him some water; he rejected the latter, and tossed uneasily
            on the former, as if it were a stone or a block of wood. She tried to put it more
            comfortably. “I can’t do with that,” he said; “it’s not high enough.” Catherine brought
            another to lay above it. “That’s too high,” murmured the provoking thing. “How must I
            arrange it, then?” she asked despairingly. He twined himself up to her, as she half
            knelt by the settle, and converted her shoulder into a support. “No, that won’t do,” I
            said. “You’ll be content with the cushion, Master Heathcliff. Miss has wasted too much
            time on you already: we cannot remain five minutes longer.” </p>
         <p>   “Yes, yes, we can!” replied
            Cathy. “He’s good and patient now. He’s beginning to think I shall have far greater
            misery than he will to-night, if I believe he is the worse for my visit: and then I dare
            not come again. Tell the truth about it, Linton; for I mustn’t come, if I have hurt
            you.” “You must come, to cure me,” he answered. “You ought to come, because you have
            hurt me: you know you have extremely! I was not as ill when you entered as I am at
            present—was I?” “But you’ve made yourself ill by crying and being in a passion.—I didn’t
            do it all,” said his cousin. “However, we’ll be friends now. And you want me: you would
            wish to see me sometimes, really?” “I told you I did,” he replied impatiently. “Sit on
            the settle and let me lean on your knee. That’s as mamma used to do, whole afternoons
            together. Sit quite still and don’t talk: but you may sing a song, if you can sing; or
            you may say a nice long interesting ballad—one of those you promised to teach me; or a
            story. I’d rather have a ballad, though: begin.” Catherine repeated the longest she
            could remember. The employment pleased both mightily. Linton would have another, and
            after that another, notwithstanding my strenuous objections; and so they went on until
            the clock struck twelve, and we heard Hareton in the court, returning for his dinner.
            “And to-morrow, Catherine, will you be here to-morrow?” asked young Heathcliff, holding
            her frock as she rose reluctantly. “No,” I answered, “nor next day neither.” She,
            however, gave a different response evidently, for his forehead cleared as she stooped
            and whispered in his ear. “You won’t go to-morrow, recollect, Miss!” I commenced, when
            we were out of the house. “You are not dreaming of it, are you?” She smiled. “Oh, I’ll
            take good care,” I continued: “I’ll have that lock mended, and you can escape by no way
            else.” “I can get over the wall,” she said laughing. “The Grange is not a prison, Ellen,
            and you are not my gaoler. And besides, I’m almost seventeen: I’m a woman. And I’m
            certain Linton would recover quickly if he had me to look after him. I’m older than he
            is, you know, and wiser: less childish, am I not? And he’ll soon do as I direct him,
            with some slight coaxing. He’s a pretty little darling when he’s good. I’d make such a
            pet of him, if he were mine. We should never quarrel, should we, after we were used to
            each other? Don’t you like him, Ellen?” “Like him!” I exclaimed. “The worst-tempered bit
            of a sickly slip that ever struggled into its teens. Happily, as Mr. Heathcliff
            conjectured, he’ll not win twenty. I doubt whether he’ll see spring, indeed. And small
            loss to his family whenever he drops off. And lucky it is for us that his father took
            him: the kinder he was treated, the more tedious and selfish he’d be. I’m glad you have
            no chance of having him for a husband, Miss Catherine.” My companion waxed serious at
            hearing this speech. To speak of his death so regardlessly wounded her feelings. “He’s
            younger than I,” she answered, after a protracted pause of meditation, “and he ought to
            live the longest: he will—he must live as long as I do. He’s as strong now as when he
            first came into the north; I’m positive of that. It’s only a cold that ails him, the
            same as papa has. You say papa will get better, and why shouldn’t he?” “Well, well,” I
            cried, “after all, we needn’t trouble ourselves; for listen, Miss,—and mind, I’ll keep
            my word,—if you attempt going to Wuthering Heights again, with or without me, I shall
            inform Mr. Linton, and, unless he allow it, the intimacy with your cousin must not be
            revived.” “It has been revived,” muttered Cathy, sulkily. “Must not be continued, then,”
            I said.</p>
         <p>   “We’ll see,” was her reply, and she set off at a gallop, leaving me to toil in
            the rear. We both reached home before our dinner-time; my master supposed we had been
            wandering through the park, and therefore he demanded no explanation of our absence. As
            soon as I entered I hastened to change my soaked shoes and stockings; but sitting such a
            while at the Heights had done the mischief. On the succeeding morning I was laid up, and
            during three weeks I remained incapacitated for attending to my duties: a calamity never
            experienced prior to that period, and never, I am thankful to say, since. My little
            mistress behaved like an angel in coming to wait on me, and cheer my solitude; the
            confinement brought me exceedingly low. It is wearisome, to a stirring active body: but
            few have slighter reasons for complaint than I had. The moment Catherine left Mr.
            Linton’s room she appeared at my bedside. Her day was divided between us; no amusement
            usurped a minute: she neglected her meals, her studies, and her play; and she was the
            fondest nurse that ever watched. She must have had a warm heart, when she loved her
            father so, to give so much to me. I said her days were divided between us; but the
            master retired early, and I generally needed nothing after six o’clock, thus the evening
            was her own. Poor thing! I never considered what she did with herself after tea. And
            though frequently, when she looked in to bid me good-night, I remarked a fresh colour in
            her cheeks and a pinkness over her slender fingers, instead of fancying the hue borrowed
            from a cold ride across the moors, I laid it to the charge of a hot fire in the library.
         </p>
         <p>Chapter 24</p>
         <p> At the close of three weeks I was able to quit my chamber and move about the house. And
            on the first occasion of my sitting up in the evening I asked Catherine to read to me,
            because my eyes were weak. We were in the library, the master having gone to bed: she
            consented, rather unwillingly, I fancied; and imagining my sort of books did not suit
            her, I bid her please herself in the choice of what she perused. She selected one of her
            own favourites, and got forward steadily about an hour; then came frequent questions.
            “Ellen, are not you tired? Hadn’t you better lie down now? You’ll be sick, keeping up so
            long, Ellen.” “No, no, dear, I’m not tired,” I returned, continually. Perceiving me
            immovable, she essayed another method of showing her disrelish for her occupation. It
            changed to yawning, and stretching, and— “Ellen, I’m tired.” “Give over then and talk,”
            I answered. That was worse: she fretted and sighed, and looked at her watch till eight,
            and finally went to her room, completely overdone with sleep; judging by her peevish,
            heavy look, and the constant rubbing she inflicted on her eyes. The following night she
            seemed more impatient still; and on the third from recovering my company she complained
            of a headache, and left me. I thought her conduct odd; and having remained alone a long
            while, I resolved on going and inquiring whether she were better, and asking her to come
            and lie on the sofa, instead of upstairs in the dark. No Catherine could I discover
            upstairs, and none below. The servants affirmed they had not seen her. I listened at Mr.
            Edgar’s door; all was silence. I returned to her apartment, extinguished my candle, and
            seated myself in the window. The moon shone bright; a sprinkling of snow covered the
            ground, and I reflected that she might, possibly, have taken it into her head to walk
            about the garden, for refreshment. I did detect a figure creeping along the inner fence
            of the park; but it was not my young mistress: on its emerging into the light, I
            recognised one of the grooms. He stood a considerable period, viewing the carriage-road
            through the grounds; then started off at a brisk pace, as if he had detected something,
            and reappeared presently, leading Miss’s pony; and there she was, just dismounted, and
            walking by its side. The man took his charge stealthily across the grass towards the
            stable. Cathy entered by the casement-window of the drawing-room, and glided noiselessly
            up to where I awaited her. She put the door gently to, slipped off her snowy shoes,
            untied her hat, and was proceeding, unconscious of my espionage, to lay aside her
            mantle, when I suddenly rose and revealed myself. The surprise petrified her an instant:
            she uttered an inarticulate exclamation, and stood fixed. “My dear Miss Catherine,” I
            began, too vividly impressed by her recent kindness to break into a scold, “where have
            you been riding out at this hour? And why should you try to deceive me by telling a
            tale? Where have you been? Speak!” “To the bottom of the park,” she stammered. “I didn’t
            tell a tale.” “And nowhere else?” I demanded. </p>
         <p>  “No,” was the muttered reply. “Oh,
            Catherine!” I cried, sorrowfully. “You know you have been doing wrong, or you wouldn’t
            be driven to uttering an untruth to me. That does grieve me. I’d rather be three months
            ill, than hear you frame a deliberate lie.” She sprang forward, and bursting into tears,
            threw her arms round my neck. “Well, Ellen, I’m so afraid of you being angry,” she said.
            “Promise not to be angry, and you shall know the very truth: I hate to hide it.” We sat
            down in the window-seat; I assured her I would not scold, whatever her secret might be,
            and I guessed it, of course; so she commenced— “I’ve been to Wuthering Heights, Ellen,
            and I’ve never missed going a day since you fell ill; except thrice before, and twice
            after you left your room. I gave Michael books and pictures to prepare Minny every
            evening, and to put her back in the stable: you mustn’t scold him either, mind. I was at
            the Heights by half-past six, and generally stayed till half-past eight, and then
            galloped home. It was not to amuse myself that I went: I was often wretched all the
            time. Now and then I was happy: once in a week perhaps. At first, I expected there would
            be sad work persuading you to let me keep my word to Linton: for I had engaged to call
            again next day, when we quitted him; but, as you stayed upstairs on the morrow, I
            escaped that trouble. While Michael was refastening the lock of the park door in the
            afternoon, I got possession of the key, and told him how my cousin wished me to visit
            him, because he was sick, and couldn’t come to the Grange; and how papa would object to
            my going: and then I negotiated with him about the pony. He is fond of reading, and he
            thinks of leaving soon to get married; so he offered, if I would lend him books out of
            the library, to do what I wished: but I preferred giving him my own, and that satisfied
            him better. “On my second visit Linton seemed in lively spirits; and Zillah (that is
            their housekeeper) made us a clean room and a good fire, and told us that, as Joseph was
            out at a prayer-meeting and Hareton Earnshaw was off with his dogs—robbing our woods of
            pheasants, as I heard afterwards—we might do what we liked. She brought me some warm
            wine and gingerbread, and appeared exceedingly good-natured; and Linton sat in the
            arm-chair, and I in the little rocking chair on the hearth-stone, and we laughed and
            talked so merrily, and found so much to say: we planned where we would go, and what we
            would do in summer. I needn’t repeat that, because you would call it silly. “One time,
            however, we were near quarrelling. He said the pleasantest manner of spending a hot July
            day was lying from morning till evening on a bank of heath in the middle of the moors,
            with the bees humming dreamily about among the bloom, and the larks singing high up
            overhead, and the blue sky and bright sun shining steadily and cloudlessly. That was his
            most perfect idea of heaven’s happiness: mine was rocking in a rustling green tree, with
            a west wind blowing, and bright white clouds flitting rapidly above; and not only larks,
            but throstles, and blackbirds, and linnets, and cuckoos pouring out music on every side,
            and the moors seen at a distance, broken into cool dusky dells; but close by great
            swells of long grass undulating in waves to the breeze; and woods and sounding water,
            and the whole world awake and wild with joy. </p>
         <p>   He wanted all to lie in an ecstasy of
            peace; I wanted all to sparkle and dance in a glorious jubilee. I said his heaven would
            be only half alive; and he said mine would be drunk: I said I should fall asleep in his;
            and he said he could not breathe in mine, and began to grow very snappish. At last, we
            agreed to try both, as soon as the right weather came; and then we kissed each other and
            were friends. “After sitting still an hour, I looked at the great room with its smooth
            uncarpeted floor, and thought how nice it would be to play in, if we removed the table;
            and I asked Linton to call Zillah in to help us, and we’d have a game at
            blindman’s-buff; she should try to catch us: you used to, you know, Ellen. He wouldn’t:
            there was no pleasure in it, he said; but he consented to play at ball with me. We found
            two in a cupboard, among a heap of old toys, tops, and hoops, and battledores and
            shuttlecocks. One was marked C., and the other H.; I wished to have the C., because that
            stood for Catherine, and the H. might be for Heathcliff, his name; but the bran came out
            of H., and Linton didn’t like it. I beat him constantly; and he got cross again, and
            coughed, and returned to his chair. That night, though, he easily recovered his good
            humour: he was charmed with two or three pretty songs—your songs, Ellen; and when I was
            obliged to go, he begged and entreated me to come the following evening; and I promised.
            Minny and I went flying home as light as air; and I dreamt of Wuthering Heights and my
            sweet, darling cousin, till morning. “On the morrow I was sad; partly because you were
            poorly, and partly that I wished my father knew, and approved of my excursions: but it
            was beautiful moonlight after tea; and, as I rode on, the gloom cleared. I shall have
            another happy evening, I thought to myself; and what delights me more, my pretty Linton
            will. I trotted up their garden, and was turning round to the back, when that fellow
            Earnshaw met me, took my bridle, and bid me go in by the front entrance. He patted
            Minny’s neck, and said she was a bonny beast, and appeared as if he wanted me to speak
            to him. I only told him to leave my horse alone, or else it would kick him. He answered
            in his vulgar accent, ‘It wouldn’t do mitch hurt if it did;’ and surveyed its legs with
            a smile. I was half inclined to make it try; however, he moved off to open the door,
            and, as he raised the latch, he looked up to the inscription above, and said, with a
            stupid mixture of awkwardness and elation: ‘Miss Catherine! I can read yon, now.’
            “‘Wonderful,’ I exclaimed. ‘Pray let us hear you—you are grown clever!’ “He spelt, and
            drawled over by syllables, the name—‘Hareton Earnshaw.’ “‘And the figures?’ I cried,
            encouragingly, perceiving that he came to a dead halt. “‘I cannot tell them yet,’ he
            answered. </p>
         <p>   “‘Oh, you dunce!’ I said, laughing heartily at his failure. “The fool stared,
            with a grin hovering about his lips, and a scowl gathering over his eyes, as if
            uncertain whether he might not join in my mirth: whether it were not pleasant
            familiarity, or what it really was, contempt. I settled his doubts, by suddenly
            retrieving my gravity and desiring him to walk away, for I came to see Linton, not him.
            He reddened—I saw that by the moonlight—dropped his hand from the latch, and skulked
            off, a picture of mortified vanity. He imagined himself to be as accomplished as Linton,
            I suppose, because he could spell his own name; and was marvellously discomfited that I
            didn’t think the same.” “Stop, Miss Catherine, dear!” I interrupted. “I shall not scold,
            but I don’t like your conduct there. If you had remembered that Hareton was your cousin
            as much as Master Heathcliff, you would have felt how improper it was to behave in that
            way. At least, it was praiseworthy ambition for him to desire to be as accomplished as
            Linton; and probably he did not learn merely to show off: you had made him ashamed of
            his ignorance before, I have no doubt; and he wished to remedy it and please you. To
            sneer at his imperfect attempt was very bad breeding. Had you been brought up in his
            circumstances, would you be less rude? He was as quick and as intelligent a child as
            ever you were; and I’m hurt that he should be despised now, because that base Heathcliff
            has treated him so unjustly.” “Well, Ellen, you won’t cry about it, will you?” she
            exclaimed, surprised at my earnestness. “But wait, and you shall hear if he conned his A
            B C to please me; and if it were worth while being civil to the brute. I entered; Linton
            was lying on the settle, and half got up to welcome me. “‘I’m ill to-night, Catherine,
            love,’ he said; ‘and you must have all the talk, and let me listen. Come, and sit by me.
            I was sure you wouldn’t break your word, and I’ll make you promise again, before you
            go.’ </p>
         <p>   “I knew now that I mustn’t tease him, as he was ill; and I spoke softly and put no
            questions, and avoided irritating him in any way. I had brought some of my nicest books
            for him: he asked me to read a little of one, and I was about to comply, when Earnshaw
            burst the door open: having gathered venom with reflection. He advanced direct to us,
            seized Linton by the arm, and swung him off the seat. “‘Get to thy own room!’ he said,
            in a voice almost inarticulate with passion; and his face looked swelled and furious.
            ‘Take her there if she comes to see thee: thou shalln’t keep me out of this. Begone wi’
            ye both!’ “He swore at us, and left Linton no time to answer, nearly throwing him into
            the kitchen; and he clenched his fist as I followed, seemingly longing to knock me down.
            I was afraid for a moment, and I let one volume fall; he kicked it after me, and shut us
            out. I heard a malignant, crackly laugh by the fire, and turning, beheld that odious
            Joseph standing rubbing his bony hands, and quivering. “‘I wer sure he’d sarve ye out!
            He’s a grand lad! He’s getten t’ raight sperrit in him! He knaws—ay, he knaws, as weel
            as I do, who sud be t’ maister yonder—Ech, ech, ech! He made ye skift properly! Ech,
            ech, ech!’ “‘Where must we go?’ I asked of my cousin, disregarding the old wretch’s
            mockery. “Linton was white and trembling. He was not pretty then, Ellen: oh, no! he
            looked frightful; for his thin face and large eyes were wrought into an expression of
            frantic, powerless fury. He grasped the handle of the door, and shook it: it was
            fastened inside. “‘If you don’t let me in, I’ll kill you!—If you don’t let me in, I’ll
            kill you!’ he rather shrieked than said. ‘Devil! devil!—I’ll kill you—I’ll kill you!’
            “Joseph uttered his croaking laugh again. “‘Thear, that’s t’ father!’ he cried. ‘That’s
            father! We’ve allas summut o’ either side in us. Niver heed, Hareton, lad—dunnut be
            ’feard—he cannot get at thee!’ “I took hold of Linton’s hands, and tried to pull him
            away; but he shrieked so shockingly that I dared not proceed. At last his cries were
            choked by a dreadful fit of coughing; blood gushed from his mouth, and he fell on the
            ground. I ran into the yard, sick with terror; and called for Zillah, as loud as I
            could. She soon heard me: she was milking the cows in a shed behind the barn, and
            hurrying from her work, she inquired what there was to do? I hadn’t breath to explain;
            dragging her in, I looked about for Linton. Earnshaw had come out to examine the
            mischief he had caused, and he was then conveying the poor thing upstairs. Zillah and I
            ascended after him; but he stopped me at the top of the steps, and said I shouldn’t go
            in: I must go home. I exclaimed that he had killed Linton, and I would enter. Joseph
            locked the door, and declared I should do ‘no sich stuff,’ and asked me whether I were
            ‘bahn to be as mad as him.’ I stood crying till the housekeeper reappeared. She affirmed
            he would be better in a bit, but he couldn’t do with that shrieking and din; and she
            took me, and nearly carried me into the house. “Ellen, I was ready to tear my hair off
            my head! </p>
         <p>  I sobbed and wept so that my eyes were almost blind; and the ruffian you have
            such sympathy with stood opposite: presuming every now and then to bid me ‘wisht,’ and
            denying that it was his fault; and, finally, frightened by my assertions that I would
            tell papa, and that he should be put in prison and hanged, he commenced blubbering
            himself, and hurried out to hide his cowardly agitation. Still, I was not rid of him:
            when at length they compelled me to depart, and I had got some hundred yards off the
            premises, he suddenly issued from the shadow of the road-side, and checked Minny and
            took hold of me. “‘Miss Catherine, I’m ill grieved,’ he began, ‘but it’s rayther too
            bad—’ “I gave him a cut with my whip, thinking perhaps he would murder me. He let go,
            thundering one of his horrid curses, and I galloped home more than half out of my
            senses. “I didn’t bid you good-night that evening, and I didn’t go to Wuthering Heights
            the next: I wished to go exceedingly; but I was strangely excited, and dreaded to hear
            that Linton was dead, sometimes; and sometimes shuddered at the thought of encountering
            Hareton. On the third day I took courage: at least, I couldn’t bear longer suspense, and
            stole off once more. I went at five o’clock, and walked; fancying I might manage to
            creep into the house, and up to Linton’s room, unobserved. However, the dogs gave notice
            of my approach. Zillah received me, and saying ‘the lad was mending nicely,’ showed me
            into a small, tidy, carpeted apartment, where, to my inexpressible joy, I beheld Linton
            laid on a little sofa, reading one of my books. But he would neither speak to me nor
            look at me, through a whole hour, Ellen: he has such an unhappy temper. And what quite
            confounded me, when he did open his mouth, it was to utter the falsehood that I had
            occasioned the uproar, and Hareton was not to blame! Unable to reply, except
            passionately, I got up and walked from the room. He sent after me a faint ‘Catherine!’
            He did not reckon on being answered so: but I wouldn’t turn back; and the morrow was the
            second day on which I stayed at home, nearly determined to visit him no more. But it was
            so miserable going to bed and getting up, and never hearing anything about him, that my
            resolution melted into air before it was properly formed. It had appeared wrong to take
            the journey once; now it seemed wrong to refrain. Michael came to ask if he must saddle
            Minny; I said ‘Yes,’ and considered myself doing a duty as she bore me over the hills. I
            was forced to pass the front windows to get to the court: it was no use trying to
            conceal my presence. “‘Young master is in the house,’ said Zillah, as she saw me making
            for the parlour. I went in; Earnshaw was there also, but he quitted the room directly.
            Linton sat in the great arm-chair half asleep; walking up to the fire, I began in a
            serious tone, partly meaning it to be true— “‘As you don’t like me, Linton, and as you
            think I come on purpose to hurt you, and pretend that I do so every time, this is our
            last meeting: let us say good-bye; and tell Mr. Heathcliff that you have no wish to see
            me, and that he mustn’t invent any more falsehoods on the subject.’ “‘Sit down and take
            your hat off, Catherine,’ he answered. </p>
         <p>   ‘You are so much happier than I am, you ought to
            be better. Papa talks enough of my defects, and shows enough scorn of me, to make it
            natural I should doubt myself. I doubt whether I am not altogether as worthless as he
            calls me, frequently; and then I feel so cross and bitter, I hate everybody! I am
            worthless, and bad in temper, and bad in spirit, almost always; and, if you choose, you
            may say good-bye: you’ll get rid of an annoyance. Only, Catherine, do me this justice:
            believe that if I might be as sweet, and as kind, and as good as you are, I would be; as
            willingly, and more so, than as happy and as healthy. And believe that your kindness has
            made me love you deeper than if I deserved your love: and though I couldn’t, and cannot
            help showing my nature to you, I regret it and repent it; and shall regret and repent it
            till I die!’ “I felt he spoke the truth; and I felt I must forgive him: and, though we
            should quarrel the next moment, I must forgive him again. We were reconciled; but we
            cried, both of us, the whole time I stayed: not entirely for sorrow; yet I was sorry
            Linton had that distorted nature. He’ll never let his friends be at ease, and he’ll
            never be at ease himself! I have always gone to his little parlour, since that night;
            because his father returned the day after. “About three times, I think, we have been
            merry and hopeful, as we were the first evening; the rest of my visits were dreary and
            troubled: now with his selfishness and spite, and now with his sufferings: but I’ve
            learned to endure the former with nearly as little resentment as the latter. Mr.
            Heathcliff purposely avoids me: I have hardly seen him at all. Last Sunday, indeed,
            coming earlier than usual, I heard him abusing poor Linton cruelly for his conduct of
            the night before. I can’t tell how he knew of it, unless he listened. Linton had
            certainly behaved provokingly: however, it was the business of nobody but me, and I
            interrupted Mr. Heathcliff’s lecture by entering and telling him so. He burst into a
            laugh, and went away, saying he was glad I took that view of the matter. Since then,
            I’ve told Linton he must whisper his bitter things. </p>
         <p>  Now, Ellen, you have heard all. I
            can’t be prevented from going to Wuthering Heights, except by inflicting misery on two
            people; whereas, if you’ll only not tell papa, my going need disturb the tranquillity of
            none. You’ll not tell, will you? It will be very heartless, if you do.” “I’ll make up my
            mind on that point by to-morrow, Miss Catherine,” I replied. “It requires some study;
            and so I’ll leave you to your rest, and go think it over.” I thought it over aloud, in
            my master’s presence; walking straight from her room to his, and relating the whole
            story: with the exception of her conversations with her cousin, and any mention of
            Hareton. Mr. Linton was alarmed and distressed, more than he would acknowledge to me. In
            the morning, Catherine learnt my betrayal of her confidence, and she learnt also that
            her secret visits were to end. In vain she wept and writhed against the interdict, and
            implored her father to have pity on Linton: all she got to comfort her was a promise
            that he would write and give him leave to come to the Grange when he pleased; but
            explaining that he must no longer expect to see Catherine at Wuthering Heights. Perhaps,
            had he been aware of his nephew’s disposition and state of health, he would have seen
            fit to withhold even that slight consolation. </p>
         <p>Chpater 25</p>
         <p> “These things happened last winter, sir,” said Mrs. Dean; “hardly more than a year ago.
            Last winter, I did not think, at another twelve months’ end, I should be amusing a
            stranger to the family with relating them! Yet, who knows how long you’ll be a stranger?
            You’re too young to rest always contented, living by yourself; and I some way fancy no
            one could see Catherine Linton and not love her. You smile; but why do you look so
            lively and interested when I talk about her? and why have you asked me to hang her
            picture over your fireplace? and why—?” “Stop, my good friend!” I cried. “It may be very
            possible that I should love her; but would she love me? I doubt it too much to venture
            my tranquillity by running into temptation: and then my home is not here. I’m of the
            busy world, and to its arms I must return. Go on. Was Catherine obedient to her father’s
            commands?” “She was,” continued the housekeeper. “Her affection for him was still the
            chief sentiment in her heart; and he spoke without anger: he spoke in the deep
            tenderness of one about to leave his treasure amid perils and foes, where his remembered
            words would be the only aid that he could bequeath to guide her. He said to me, a few
            days afterwards, ‘I wish my nephew would write, Ellen, or call. Tell me, sincerely, what
            you think of him: is he changed for the better, or is there a prospect of improvement,
            as he grows a man?’ “‘He’s very delicate, sir,’ I replied; ‘and scarcely likely to reach
            manhood: but this I can say, he does not resemble his father; and if Miss Catherine had
            the misfortune to marry him, he would not be beyond her control: unless she were
            extremely and foolishly indulgent. However, master, you’ll have plenty of time to get
            acquainted with him and see whether he would suit her: it wants four years and more to
            his being of age.’” Edgar sighed; and, walking to the window, looked out towards
            Gimmerton Kirk. It was a misty afternoon, but the February sun shone dimly, and we could
            just distinguish the two fir-trees in the yard, and the sparely-scattered gravestones.
            “I’ve prayed often,” he half soliloquised, “for the approach of what is coming; and now
            I begin to shrink, and fear it. </p>
         <p> I thought the memory of the hour I came down that glen a
            bridegroom would be less sweet than the anticipation that I was soon, in a few months,
            or, possibly, weeks, to be carried up, and laid in its lonely hollow! Ellen, I’ve been
            very happy with my little Cathy: through winter nights and summer days she was a living
            hope at my side. But I’ve been as happy musing by myself among those stones, under that
            old church: lying, through the long June evenings, on the green mound of her mother’s
            grave, and wishing—yearning for the time when I might lie beneath it. What can I do for
            Cathy? How must I quit her? I’d not care one moment for Linton being Heathcliff’s son;
            nor for his taking her from me, if he could console her for my loss. I’d not care that
            Heathcliff gained his ends, and triumphed in robbing me of my last blessing! But should
            Linton be unworthy—only a feeble tool to his father—I cannot abandon her to him! And,
            hard though it be to crush her buoyant spirit, I must persevere in making her sad while
            I live, and leaving her solitary when I die. Darling! I’d rather resign her to God, and
            lay her in the earth before me.” “Resign her to God as it is, sir,” I answered, “and if
            we should lose you—which may He forbid—under His providence, I’ll stand her friend and
            counsellor to the last. Miss Catherine is a good girl: I don’t fear that she will go
            wilfully wrong; and people who do their duty are always finally rewarded.” Spring
            advanced; yet my master gathered no real strength, though he resumed his walks in the
            grounds with his daughter. To her inexperienced notions, this itself was a sign of
            convalescence; and then his cheek was often flushed, and his eyes were bright; she felt
            sure of his recovering. On her seventeenth birthday, he did not visit the churchyard: it
            was raining, and I observed— “You’ll surely not go out to-night, sir?” He answered,—“No,
            I’ll defer it this year a little longer.” He wrote again to Linton, expressing his great
            desire to see him; and, had the invalid been presentable, I’ve no doubt his father would
            have permitted him to come. As it was, being instructed, he returned an answer,
            intimating that Mr. Heathcliff objected to his calling at the Grange; but his uncle’s
            kind remembrance delighted him, and he hoped to meet him sometimes in his rambles, and
            personally to petition that his cousin and he might not remain long so utterly divided.
            That part of his letter was simple, and probably his own. Heathcliff knew he could plead
            eloquently for Catherine’s company, then. </p>
         <p>     “I do not ask,” he said, “that she may visit
            here; but am I never to see her, because my father forbids me to go to her home, and you
            forbid her to come to mine? Do, now and then, ride with her towards the Heights; and let
            us exchange a few words, in your presence! We have done nothing to deserve this
            separation; and you are not angry with me: you have no reason to dislike me, you allow,
            yourself. Dear uncle! send me a kind note to-morrow, and leave to join you anywhere you
            please, except at Thrushcross Grange. I believe an interview would convince you that my
            father’s character is not mine: he affirms I am more your nephew than his son; and
            though I have faults which render me unworthy of Catherine, she has excused them, and
            for her sake, you should also. You inquire after my health—it is better; but while I
            remain cut off from all hope, and doomed to solitude, or the society of those who never
            did and never will like me, how can I be cheerful and well?” Edgar, though he felt for
            the boy, could not consent to grant his request; because he could not accompany
            Catherine. He said, in summer, perhaps, they might meet: meantime, he wished him to
            continue writing at intervals, and engaged to give him what advice and comfort he was
            able by letter; being well aware of his hard position in his family. Linton complied;
            and had he been unrestrained, would probably have spoiled all by filling his epistles
            with complaints and lamentations: but his father kept a sharp watch over him; and, of
            course, insisted on every line that my master sent being shown; so, instead of penning
            his peculiar personal sufferings and distresses, the themes constantly uppermost in his
            thoughts, he harped on the cruel obligation of being held asunder from his friend and
            love; and gently intimated that Mr. Linton must allow an interview soon, or he should
            fear he was purposely deceiving him with empty promises. Cathy was a powerful ally at
            home; and between them they at length persuaded my master to acquiesce in their having a
            ride or a walk together about once a week, under my guardianship, and on the moors
            nearest the Grange: for June found him still declining. </p>
         <p>  Though he had set aside yearly a
            portion of his income for my young lady’s fortune, he had a natural desire that she
            might retain—or at least return in a short time to—the house of her ancestors; and he
            considered her only prospect of doing that was by a union with his heir; he had no idea
            that the latter was failing almost as fast as himself; nor had any one, I believe: no
            doctor visited the Heights, and no one saw Master Heathcliff to make report of his
            condition among us. I, for my part, began to fancy my forebodings were false, and that
            he must be actually rallying, when he mentioned riding and walking on the moors, and
            seemed so earnest in pursuing his object. I could not picture a father treating a dying
            child as tyrannically and wickedly as I afterwards learned Heathcliff had treated him,
            to compel this apparent eagerness: his efforts redoubling the more imminently his
            avaricious and unfeeling plans were threatened with defeat by death. </p>
         <p>Chapter 26</p>
         <p> Summer was already past its prime, when Edgar reluctantly yielded his assent to their
            entreaties, and Catherine and I set out on our first ride to join her cousin. It was a
            close, sultry day: devoid of sunshine, but with a sky too dappled and hazy to threaten
            rain: and our place of meeting had been fixed at the guide-stone, by the cross-roads. On
            arriving there, however, a little herd-boy, despatched as a messenger, told us
            that,—“Maister Linton wer just o’ this side th’ Heights: and he’d be mitch obleeged to
            us to gang on a bit further.” “Then Master Linton has forgot the first injunction of his
            uncle,” I observed: “he bid us keep on the Grange land, and here we are off at once.”
            “Well, we’ll turn our horses’ heads round when we reach him,” answered my companion;
            “our excursion shall lie towards home.” But when we reached him, and that was scarcely a
            quarter of a mile from his own door, we found he had no horse; and we were forced to
            dismount, and leave ours to graze. He lay on the heath, awaiting our approach, and did
            not rise till we came within a few yards. Then he walked so feebly, and looked so pale,
            that I immediately exclaimed,—“Why, Master Heathcliff, you are not fit for enjoying a
            ramble this morning. How ill you do look!” Catherine surveyed him with grief and
            astonishment: she changed the ejaculation of joy on her lips to one of alarm; and the
            congratulation on their long-postponed meeting to an anxious inquiry, whether he were
            worse than usual? “No—better—better!” he panted, trembling, and retaining her hand as if
            he needed its support, while his large blue eyes wandered timidly over her; the
            hollowness round them transforming to haggard wildness the languid expression they once
            possessed. “But you have been worse,” persisted his cousin; “worse than when I saw you
            last; you are thinner, and—” </p>
         <p>   “I’m tired,” he interrupted, hurriedly. “It is too hot for
            walking, let us rest here. And, in the morning, I often feel sick—papa says I grow so
            fast.” Badly satisfied, Cathy sat down, and he reclined beside her. “This is something
            like your paradise,” said she, making an effort at cheerfulness. “You recollect the two
            days we agreed to spend in the place and way each thought pleasantest? This is nearly
            yours, only there are clouds; but then they are so soft and mellow: it is nicer than
            sunshine. Next week, if you can, we’ll ride down to the Grange Park, and try mine.”
            Linton did not appear to remember what she talked of; and he had evidently great
            difficulty in sustaining any kind of conversation. His lack of interest in the subjects
            she started, and his equal incapacity to contribute to her entertainment, were so
            obvious that she could not conceal her disappointment. An indefinite alteration had come
            over his whole person and manner. The pettishness that might be caressed into fondness,
            had yielded to a listless apathy; there was less of the peevish temper of a child which
            frets and teases on purpose to be soothed, and more of the self-absorbed moroseness of a
            confirmed invalid, repelling consolation, and ready to regard the good-humoured mirth of
            others as an insult. Catherine perceived, as well as I did, that he held it rather a
            punishment, than a gratification, to endure our company; and she made no scruple of
            proposing, presently, to depart. That proposal, unexpectedly, roused Linton from his
            lethargy, and threw him into a strange state of agitation. He glanced fearfully towards
            the Heights, begging she would remain another half-hour, at least. “But I think,” said
            Cathy, “you’d be more comfortable at home than sitting here; and I cannot amuse you
            to-day, I see, by my tales, and songs, and chatter: you have grown wiser than I, in
            these six months; you have little taste for my diversions now: or else, if I could amuse
            you, I’d willingly stay.” “Stay to rest yourself,” he replied. “And, Catherine, don’t
            think or say that I’m very unwell: it is the heavy weather and heat that make me dull;
            and I walked about, before you came, a great deal for me. Tell uncle I’m in tolerable
            health, will you?” “I’ll tell him that you say so, Linton. I couldn’t affirm that you
            are,” observed my young lady, wondering at his pertinacious assertion of what was
            evidently an untruth. “And be here again next Thursday,” continued he, shunning her
            puzzled gaze. </p>
         <p>  “And give him my thanks for permitting you to come—my best thanks,
            Catherine. And—and, if you did meet my father, and he asked you about me, don’t lead him
            to suppose that I’ve been extremely silent and stupid: don’t look sad and downcast, as
            you are doing—he’ll be angry.” “I care nothing for his anger,” exclaimed Cathy,
            imagining she would be its object. “But I do,” said her cousin, shuddering. “Don’t
            provoke him against me, Catherine, for he is very hard.” “Is he severe to you, Master
            Heathcliff?” I inquired. “Has he grown weary of indulgence, and passed from passive to
            active hatred?” Linton looked at me, but did not answer; and, after keeping her seat by
            his side another ten minutes, during which his head fell drowsily on his breast, and he
            uttered nothing except suppressed moans of exhaustion or pain, Cathy began to seek
            solace in looking for bilberries, and sharing the produce of her researches with me: she
            did not offer them to him, for she saw further notice would only weary and annoy. “Is it
            half-an-hour now, Ellen?” she whispered in my ear, at last. “I can’t tell why we should
            stay. He’s asleep, and papa will be wanting us back.” “Well, we must not leave him
            asleep,” I answered; “wait till he wakes, and be patient. You were mighty eager to set
            off, but your longing to see poor Linton has soon evaporated!” “Why did he wish to see
            me?” returned Catherine. “In his crossest humours, formerly, I liked him better than I
            do in his present curious mood. It’s just as if it were a task he was compelled to
            perform—this interview—for fear his father should scold him. But I’m hardly going to
            come to give Mr. Heathcliff pleasure; whatever reason he may have for ordering Linton to
            undergo this penance. And, though I’m glad he’s better in health, I’m sorry he’s so much
            less pleasant, and so much less affectionate to me.” “You think he is better in health,
            then?” I said. “Yes,” she answered; “because he always made such a great deal of his
            sufferings, you know. He is not tolerably well, as he told me to tell papa; but he’s
            better, very likely.” </p>
         <p>   “There you differ with me, Miss Cathy,” I remarked; “I should
            conjecture him to be far worse.” Linton here started from his slumber in bewildered
            terror, and asked if any one had called his name. “No,” said Catherine; “unless in
            dreams. I cannot conceive how you manage to doze out of doors, in the morning.” “I
            thought I heard my father,” he gasped, glancing up to the frowning nab above us. “You
            are sure nobody spoke?” “Quite sure,” replied his cousin. “Only Ellen and I were
            disputing concerning your health. Are you truly stronger, Linton, than when we separated
            in winter? If you be, I’m certain one thing is not stronger—your regard for me:
            speak,—are you?” The tears gushed from Linton’s eyes as he answered, “Yes, yes, I am!”
            And, still under the spell of the imaginary voice, his gaze wandered up and down to
            detect its owner. Cathy rose. “For to-day we must part,” she said. “And I won’t conceal
            that I have been sadly disappointed with our meeting; though I’ll mention it to nobody
            but you: not that I stand in awe of Mr. Heathcliff.” “Hush,” murmured Linton; “for God’s
            sake, hush! He’s coming.” And he clung to Catherine’s arm, striving to detain her; but
            at that announcement she hastily disengaged herself, and whistled to Minny, who obeyed
            her like a dog. </p>
         <p>  “I’ll be here next Thursday,” she cried, springing to the saddle.
            “Good-bye. Quick, Ellen!” And so we left him, scarcely conscious of our departure, so
            absorbed was he in anticipating his father’s approach. Before we reached home,
            Catherine’s displeasure softened into a perplexed sensation of pity and regret, largely
            blended with vague, uneasy doubts about Linton’s actual circumstances, physical and
            social: in which I partook, though I counselled her not to say much; for a second
            journey would make us better judges. My master requested an account of our ongoings. His
            nephew’s offering of thanks was duly delivered, Miss Cathy gently touching on the rest:
            I also threw little light on his inquiries, for I hardly knew what to hide and what to
            reveal. </p>
         <p>Chapter 27</p>
         <p> Seven days glided away, every one marking its course by the henceforth rapid alteration
            of Edgar Linton’s state. The havoc that months had previously wrought was now emulated
            by the inroads of hours. Catherine we would fain have deluded yet; but her own quick
            spirit refused to delude her: it divined in secret, and brooded on the dreadful
            probability, gradually ripening into certainty. She had not the heart to mention her
            ride, when Thursday came round; I mentioned it for her, and obtained permission to order
            her out of doors: for the library, where her father stopped a short time daily—the brief
            period he could bear to sit up—and his chamber, had become her whole world. She grudged
            each moment that did not find her bending over his pillow, or seated by his side. Her
            countenance grew wan with watching and sorrow, and my master gladly dismissed her to
            what he flattered himself would be a happy change of scene and society; drawing comfort
            from the hope that she would not now be left entirely alone after his death. He had a
            fixed idea, I guessed by several observations he let fall, that, as his nephew resembled
            him in person, he would resemble him in mind; for Linton’s letters bore few or no
            indications of his defective character. And I, through pardonable weakness, refrained
            from correcting the error; asking myself what good there would be in disturbing his last
            moments with information that he had neither power nor opportunity to turn to account.
            We deferred our excursion till the afternoon; a golden afternoon of August: every breath
            from the hills so full of life, that it seemed whoever respired it, though dying, might
            revive. Catherine’s face was just like the landscape—shadows and sunshine flitting over
            it in rapid succession; but the shadows rested longer, and the sunshine was more
            transient; and her poor little heart reproached itself for even that passing
            forgetfulness of its cares. We discerned Linton watching at the same spot he had
            selected before. </p>
          <p>  My young mistress alighted, and told me that, as she was resolved to
            stay a very little while, I had better hold the pony and remain on horseback; but I
            dissented: I wouldn’t risk losing sight of the charge committed to me a minute; so we
            climbed the slope of heath together. Master Heathcliff received us with greater
            animation on this occasion: not the animation of high spirits though, nor yet of joy; it
            looked more like fear. “It is late!” he said, speaking short and with difficulty. “Is
            not your father very ill? I thought you wouldn’t come.” “Why won’t you be candid?” cried
            Catherine, swallowing her greeting. “Why cannot you say at once you don’t want me? It is
            strange, Linton, that for the second time you have brought me here on purpose,
            apparently to distress us both, and for no reason besides!” Linton shivered, and glanced
            at her, half supplicating, half ashamed; but his cousin’s patience was not sufficient to
            endure this enigmatical behaviour. “My father is very ill,” she said; “and why am I
            called from his bedside? Why didn’t you send to absolve me from my promise, when you
            wished I wouldn’t keep it? Come! I desire an explanation: playing and trifling are
            completely banished out of my mind; and I can’t dance attendance on your affectations
            now!” “My affectations!” he murmured; “what are they? For heaven’s sake, Catherine,
            don’t look so angry! Despise me as much as you please; I am a worthless, cowardly
            wretch: I can’t be scorned enough; but I’m too mean for your anger. Hate my father, and
            spare me for contempt.” </p>
         <p>   “Nonsense!” cried Catherine in a passion. “Foolish, silly boy!
            And there! he trembles, as if I were really going to touch him! You needn’t bespeak
            contempt, Linton: anybody will have it spontaneously at your service. Get off! I shall
            return home: it is folly dragging you from the hearth-stone, and pretending—what do we
            pretend? Let go my frock! If I pitied you for crying and looking so very frightened, you
            should spurn such pity. Ellen, tell him how disgraceful this conduct is. Rise, and don’t
            degrade yourself into an abject reptile—don’t!” With streaming face and an expression of
            agony, Linton had thrown his nerveless frame along the ground: he seemed convulsed with
            exquisite terror. “Oh!” he sobbed, “I cannot bear it! Catherine, Catherine, I’m a
            traitor, too, and I dare not tell you! But leave me, and I shall be killed! Dear
            Catherine, my life is in your hands: and you have said you loved me, and if you did, it
            wouldn’t harm you. You’ll not go, then? kind, sweet, good Catherine! And perhaps you
            will consent—and he’ll let me die with you!” My young lady, on witnessing his intense
            anguish, stooped to raise him. The old feeling of indulgent tenderness overcame her
            vexation, and she grew thoroughly moved and alarmed. “Consent to what?” she asked. “To
            stay! tell me the meaning of this strange talk, and I will. You contradict your own
            words, and distract me! Be calm and frank, and confess at once all that weighs on your
            heart. You wouldn’t injure me, Linton, would you? You wouldn’t let any enemy hurt me, if
            you could prevent it? I’ll believe you are a coward, for yourself, but not a cowardly
            betrayer of your best friend.” “But my father threatened me,” gasped the boy, clasping
            his attenuated fingers, “and I dread him—I dread him! I dare not tell!” “Oh, well!” said
            Catherine, with scornful compassion, “keep your secret: I’m no coward. Save yourself:
            I’m not afraid!” Her magnanimity provoked his tears: he wept wildly, kissing her
            supporting hands, and yet could not summon courage to speak out. I was cogitating what
            the mystery might be, and determined Catherine should never suffer to benefit him or any
            one else, by my good will; when, hearing a rustle among the ling, I looked up and saw
            Mr. Heathcliff almost close upon us, descending the Heights. He didn’t cast a glance
            towards my companions, though they were sufficiently near for Linton’s sobs to be
            audible; but hailing me in the almost hearty tone he assumed to none besides, and the
            sincerity of which I couldn’t avoid doubting, he said— “It is something to see you so
            near to my house, Nelly. How are you at the Grange? Let us hear. The rumour goes,” he
            added, in a lower tone, “that Edgar Linton is on his death-bed: perhaps they exaggerate
            his illness?” </p>
         <p>   “No; my master is dying,” I replied: “it is true enough. A sad thing it
            will be for us all, but a blessing for him!” “How long will he last, do you think?” he
            asked. “I don’t know,” I said. “Because,” he continued, looking at the two young people,
            who were fixed under his eye—Linton appeared as if he could not venture to stir or raise
            his head, and Catherine could not move, on his account—“because that lad yonder seems
            determined to beat me; and I’d thank his uncle to be quick, and go before him! Hallo!
            has the whelp been playing that game long? I did give him some lessons about snivelling.
            Is he pretty lively with Miss Linton generally?” “Lively? no—he has shown the greatest
            distress,” I answered. “To see him, I should say, that instead of rambling with his
            sweetheart on the hills, he ought to be in bed, under the hands of a doctor.” “He shall
            be, in a day or two,” muttered Heathcliff. “But first—get up, Linton! Get up!” he
            shouted. “Don’t grovel on the ground there: up, this moment!” Linton had sunk prostrate
            again in another paroxysm of helpless fear, caused by his father’s glance towards him, I
            suppose: there was nothing else to produce such humiliation. He made several efforts to
            obey, but his little strength was annihilated for the time, and he fell back again with
            a moan. Mr. Heathcliff advanced, and lifted him to lean against a ridge of turf. “Now,”
            said he, with curbed ferocity, “I’m getting angry—and if you don’t command that paltry
            spirit of yours—damn you! get up directly!” “I will, father,” he panted. “Only, let me
            alone, or I shall faint. I’ve done as you wished, I’m sure. Catherine will tell you that
            I—that I—have been cheerful. Ah! keep by me, Catherine; give me your hand.” “Take mine,”
            said his father; “stand on your feet. There now—she’ll lend you her arm: that’s right,
            look at her. You would imagine I was the devil himself, Miss Linton, to excite such
            horror. Be so kind as to walk home with him, will you? He shudders if I touch him.”
            “Linton dear!” whispered Catherine, “I can’t go to Wuthering Heights: papa has forbidden
            me. He’ll not harm you: why are you so afraid?” “I can never re-enter that house,” he
            answered. </p>
         <p>   “I’m not to re-enter it without you!” “Stop!” cried his father. “We’ll respect
            Catherine’s filial scruples. Nelly, take him in, and I’ll follow your advice concerning
            the doctor, without delay.” “You’ll do well,” replied I. “But I must remain with my
            mistress: to mind your son is not my business.” “You are very stiff,” said Heathcliff,
            “I know that: but you’ll force me to pinch the baby and make it scream before it moves
            your charity. Come, then, my hero. Are you willing to return, escorted by me?” He
            approached once more, and made as if he would seize the fragile being; but, shrinking
            back, Linton clung to his cousin, and implored her to accompany him, with a frantic
            importunity that admitted no denial. However I disapproved, I couldn’t hinder her:
            indeed, how could she have refused him herself? What was filling him with dread we had
            no means of discerning; but there he was, powerless under its gripe, and any addition
            seemed capable of shocking him into idiocy. We reached the threshold; Catherine walked
            in, and I stood waiting till she had conducted the invalid to a chair, expecting her out
            immediately; when Mr. Heathcliff, pushing me forward, exclaimed—“My house is not
            stricken with the plague, Nelly; and I have a mind to be hospitable to-day: sit down,
            and allow me to shut the door.” He shut and locked it also. I started. “You shall have
            tea before you go home,” he added. “I am by myself. Hareton is gone with some cattle to
            the Lees, and Zillah and Joseph are off on a journey of pleasure; and, though I’m used
            to being alone, I’d rather have some interesting company, if I can get it. Miss Linton,
            take your seat by him. I give you what I have: the present is hardly worth accepting;
            but I have nothing else to offer. It is Linton, I mean. </p>
          <p>  How she does stare! It’s odd
            what a <tc:racedesc type="implied">savage</tc:racedesc> feeling I have to anything that
            seems afraid of me! Had I been born where laws are less strict and tastes less dainty, I
            should treat myself to a slow vivisection of those two, as an evening’s amusement.” He
            drew in his breath, struck the table, and swore to himself, “By hell! I hate them.” “I
            am not afraid of you!” exclaimed Catherine, who could not hear the latter part of his
            speech. She stepped close up; her black eyes flashing with passion and resolution. “Give
            me that key: I will have it!” she said. “I wouldn’t eat or drink here, if I were
            starving.” Heathcliff had the key in his hand that remained on the table. He looked up,
            seized with a sort of surprise at her boldness; or, possibly, reminded, by her voice and
            glance, of the person from whom she inherited it. She snatched at the instrument, and
            half succeeded in getting it out of his loosened fingers: but her action recalled him to
            the present; he recovered it speedily. “Now, Catherine Linton,” he said, “stand off, or
            I shall knock you down; and that will make Mrs. Dean mad.” Regardless of this warning,
            she captured his closed hand and its contents again. “We will go!” she repeated,
            exerting her utmost efforts to cause the iron muscles to relax; and finding that her
            nails made no impression, she applied her teeth pretty sharply. Heathcliff glanced at me
            a glance that kept me from interfering a moment. Catherine was too intent on his fingers
            to notice his face. </p>
         <p>   He opened them suddenly, and resigned the object of dispute; but,
            ere she had well secured it, he seized her with the liberated hand, and, pulling her on
            his knee, administered with the other a shower of terrific slaps on both sides of the
            head, each sufficient to have fulfilled his threat, had she been able to fall. At this
            diabolical violence I rushed on him furiously. “You <tc:racedesc type="explicit"
               >villain</tc:racedesc>!” I began to cry, “you <tc:racedesc type="explicit"
               >villain</tc:racedesc>!” A touch on the chest silenced me: I am stout, and soon put
            out of breath; and, what with that and the rage, I staggered dizzily back, and felt
            ready to suffocate, or to burst a blood-vessel. The scene was over in two minutes;
            Catherine, released, put her two hands to her temples, and looked just as if she were
            not sure whether her ears were off or on. She trembled like a reed, poor thing, and
            leant against the table perfectly bewildered. “I know how to chastise children, you
            see,” said the <tc:racedesc type="implied">scoundrel</tc:racedesc>, grimly, as he
            stooped to repossess himself of the key, which had dropped to the floor. </p>
         <p>   “Go to Linton
            now, as I told you; and cry at your ease! I shall be your father, to-morrow—all the
            father you’ll have in a few days—and you shall have plenty of that. You can bear plenty;
            you’re no weakling: you shall have a daily taste, if I catch such a devil of a temper in
            your eyes again!” Cathy ran to me instead of Linton, and knelt down and put her burning
            cheek on my lap, weeping aloud. Her cousin had shrunk into a corner of the settle, as
            quiet as a mouse, congratulating himself, I dare say, that the correction had alighted
            on another than him. Mr. Heathcliff, perceiving us all confounded, rose, and
            expeditiously made the tea himself. The cups and saucers were laid ready. He poured it
            out, and handed me a cup. “Wash away your spleen,” he said. “And help your own naughty
            pet and mine. It is not poisoned, though I prepared it. I’m going out to seek your
            horses.” Our first thought, on his departure, was to force an exit somewhere. We tried
            the kitchen door, but that was fastened outside: we looked at the windows—they were too
            narrow for even Cathy’s little figure. “Master Linton,” I cried, seeing we were
            regularly imprisoned, “you know what your diabolical father is after, and you shall tell
            us, or I’ll box your ears, as he has done your cousin’s.” “Yes, Linton, you must tell,”
            said Catherine. “It was for your sake I came; and it will be wickedly ungrateful if you
            refuse.” “Give me some tea, I’m thirsty, and then I’ll tell you,” he answered. “Mrs.
            Dean, go away. I don’t like you standing over me. Now, Catherine, you are letting your
            tears fall into my cup. I won’t drink that. Give me another.” Catherine pushed another
            to him, and wiped her face. I felt disgusted at the little wretch’s composure, since he
            was no longer in terror for himself. The anguish he had exhibited on the moor subsided
            as soon as ever he entered Wuthering Heights; so I guessed he had been menaced with an
            awful visitation of wrath if he failed in decoying us there; and, that accomplished, he
            had no further immediate fears. “Papa wants us to be married,” he continued, after
            sipping some of the liquid. “And he knows your papa wouldn’t let us marry now; and he’s
            afraid of my dying if we wait; so we are to be married in the morning, and you are to
            stay here all night; and, if you do as he wishes, you shall return home next day, and
            take me with you.” </p>
        <p>    “Take you with her, pitiful changeling!” I exclaimed. “You marry?
            Why, the man is mad! or he thinks us fools, every one. And do you imagine that beautiful
            young lady, that healthy, hearty girl, will tie herself to a little perishing monkey
            like you? Are you cherishing the notion that anybody, let alone Miss Catherine Linton,
            would have you for a husband? You want whipping for bringing us in here at all, with
            your dastardly puling tricks: and—don’t look so silly, now! I’ve a very good mind to
            shake you severely, for your contemptible treachery, and your imbecile conceit.” I did
            give him a slight shaking; but it brought on the cough, and he took to his ordinary
            resource of moaning and weeping, and Catherine rebuked me. “Stay all night? No,” she
            said, looking slowly round. “Ellen, I’ll burn that door down but I’ll get out.” And she
            would have commenced the execution of her threat directly, but Linton was up in alarm
            for his dear self again. He clasped her in his two feeble arms sobbing:—“Won’t you have
            me, and save me? not let me come to the Grange? Oh, darling Catherine! you mustn’t go
            and leave, after all. You must obey my father—you must!” “I must obey my own,” she
            replied, “and relieve him from this cruel suspense. The whole night! What would he
            think? He’ll be distressed already. I’ll either break or burn a way out of the house. Be
            quiet! You’re in no danger; but if you hinder me—Linton, I love papa better than you!”
            The mortal terror he felt of Mr. Heathcliff’s anger restored to the boy his coward’s
            eloquence. Catherine was near distraught: still, she persisted that she must go home,
            and tried entreaty in her turn, persuading him to subdue his selfish agony. While they
            were thus occupied, our jailor re-entered. </p>
          <p>  “Your beasts have trotted off,” he said,
            “and—now Linton! snivelling again? What has she been doing to you? Come, come—have done,
            and get to bed. In a month or two, my lad, you’ll be able to pay her back her present
            tyrannies with a vigorous hand. You’re pining for pure love, are you not? nothing else
            in the world: and she shall have you! There, to bed! Zillah won’t be here to-night; you
            must undress yourself. Hush! hold your noise! Once in your own room, I’ll not come near
            you: you needn’t fear. By chance, you’ve managed tolerably. I’ll look to the rest.” He
            spoke these words, holding the door open for his son to pass, and the latter achieved
            his exit exactly as a spaniel might which suspected the person who attended on it of
            designing a spiteful squeeze. The lock was re-secured. Heathcliff approached the fire,
            where my mistress and I stood silent. Catherine looked up, and instinctively raised her
            hand to her cheek: his neighbourhood revived a painful sensation. Anybody else would
            have been incapable of regarding the childish act with sternness, but he scowled on her
            and muttered—“Oh! you are not afraid of me? Your courage is well disguised: you seem
            damnably afraid!” “I am afraid now,” she replied, “because, if I stay, papa will be
            miserable: and how can I endure making him miserable—when he—when he—Mr. Heathcliff, let
            me go home! I promise to marry Linton: papa would like me to: and I love him. Why should
            you wish to force me to do what I’ll willingly do of myself?” “Let him dare to force
            you,” I cried. “There’s law in the land, thank God! there is; though we be in an
            out-of-the-way place. I’d inform if he were my own son: and it’s felony without benefit
            of clergy!” “Silence!” said the <tc:racedesc type="explicit">ruffian</tc:racedesc>. “To
            the devil with your clamour! I don’t want you to speak. Miss Linton, I shall enjoy
            myself remarkably in thinking your father will be miserable: I shall not sleep for
            satisfaction. You could have hit on no surer way of fixing your residence under my roof
            for the next twenty-four hours than informing me that such an event would follow. As to
            your promise to marry Linton, I’ll take care you shall keep it; for you shall not quit
            this place till it is fulfilled.” </p>
         <p>  “Send Ellen, then, to let papa know I’m safe!”
            exclaimed Catherine, weeping bitterly. “Or marry me now. Poor papa! Ellen, he’ll think
            we’re lost. What shall we do?” “Not he! He’ll think you are tired of waiting on him, and
            run off for a little amusement,” answered Heathcliff. “You cannot deny that you entered
            my house of your own accord, in contempt of his injunctions to the contrary. And it is
            quite natural that you should desire amusement at your age; and that you would weary of
            nursing a sick man, and that man only your father. Catherine, his happiest days were
            over when your days began. He cursed you, I dare say, for coming into the world (I did,
            at least); and it would just do if he cursed you as he went out of it. I’d join him. I
            don’t love you! How should I? Weep away. As far as I can see, it will be your chief
            diversion hereafter; unless Linton make amends for other losses: and your provident
            parent appears to fancy he may. His letters of advice and consolation entertained me
            vastly. In his last he recommended my jewel to be careful of his; and kind to her when
            he got her. Careful and kind—that’s paternal. But Linton requires his whole stock of
            care and kindness for himself. Linton can play the little tyrant well. He’ll undertake
            to torture any number of cats, if their teeth be drawn and their claws pared. You’ll be
            able to tell his uncle fine tales of his kindness, when you get home again, I assure
            you.” “You’re right there!” I said; “explain your son’s character. Show his resemblance
            to yourself: and then, I hope, Miss Cathy will think twice before she takes the
            cockatrice!” “I don’t much mind speaking of his amiable qualities now,” he answered;
            “because she must either accept him or remain a prisoner, and you along with her, till
            your master dies. I can detain you both, quite concealed, here. If you doubt, encourage
            her to retract her word, and you’ll have an opportunity of judging!” “I’ll not retract
            my word,” said Catherine. </p>
        <p>    “I’ll marry him within this hour, if I may go to Thrushcross
            Grange afterwards. Mr. Heathcliff, you’re a cruel man, but you’re not a fiend; and you
            won’t, from mere malice, destroy irrevocably all my happiness. If papa thought I had
            left him on purpose, and if he died before I returned, could I bear to live? I’ve given
            over crying: but I’m going to kneel here, at your knee; and I’ll not get up, and I’ll
            not take my eyes from your face till you look back at me! No, don’t turn away! do look!
            you’ll see nothing to provoke you. I don’t hate you. I’m not angry that you struck me.
            Have you never loved anybody in all your life, uncle? never? Ah! you must look once. I’m
            so wretched, you can’t help being sorry and pitying me.” “Keep your eft’s fingers off;
            and move, or I’ll kick you!” cried Heathcliff, brutally repulsing her. “I’d rather be
            hugged by a snake. How the devil can you dream of fawning on me? I detest you!” He
            shrugged his shoulders: shook himself, indeed, as if his flesh crept with aversion; and
            thrust back his chair; while I got up, and opened my mouth, to commence a downright
            torrent of abuse. But I was rendered dumb in the middle of the first sentence, by a
            threat that I should be shown into a room by myself the very next syllable I uttered. It
            was growing dark—we heard a sound of voices at the garden-gate. Our host hurried out
            instantly: he had his wits about him; we had not. There was a talk of two or three
            minutes, and he returned alone. “I thought it had been your cousin Hareton,” I observed
            to Catherine. “I wish he would arrive! Who knows but he might take our part?” “It was
            three servants sent to seek you from the Grange,” said Heathcliff, overhearing me. “You
            should have opened a lattice and called out: but I could swear that chit is glad you
            didn’t. She’s glad to be obliged to stay, I’m certain.” At learning the chance we had
            missed, we both gave vent to our grief without control; and he allowed us to wail on
            till nine o’clock. Then he bid us go upstairs, through the kitchen, to Zillah’s chamber;
            and I whispered my companion to obey: perhaps we might contrive to get through the
            window there, or into a garret, and out by its skylight. The window, however, was
            narrow, like those below, and the garret trap was safe from our attempts; for we were
            fastened in as before. We neither of us lay down: Catherine took her station by the
            lattice, and watched anxiously for morning; a deep sigh being the only answer I could
            obtain to my frequent entreaties that she would try to rest. I seated myself in a chair,
            and rocked to and fro, passing harsh judgment on my many derelictions of duty; from
            which, it struck me then, all the misfortunes of my employers sprang. It was not the
            case, in reality, I am aware; but it was, in my imagination, that dismal night; and I
            thought Heathcliff himself less guilty than I. </p>
          <p>  At seven o’clock he came, and inquired if
            Miss Linton had risen. She ran to the door immediately, and answered, “Yes.” “Here,
            then,” he said, opening it, and pulling her out. I rose to follow, but he turned the
            lock again. I demanded my release. “Be patient,” he replied; “I’ll send up your
            breakfast in a while.” I thumped on the panels, and rattled the latch angrily; and
            Catherine asked why I was still shut up? He answered, I must try to endure it another
            hour, and they went away. I endured it two or three hours; at length, I heard a
            footstep: not Heathcliff’s. “I’ve brought you something to eat,” said a voice; “oppen t’
            door!” Complying eagerly, I beheld Hareton, laden with food enough to last me all day.
            “Tak’ it,” he added, thrusting the tray into my hand. “Stay one minute,” I began. “Nay,”
            cried he, and retired, regardless of any prayers I could pour forth to detain him. And
            there I remained enclosed the whole day, and the whole of the next night; and another,
            and another. Five nights and four days I remained, altogether, seeing nobody but Hareton
            once every morning; and he was a model of a jailor: surly, and dumb, and deaf to every
            attempt at moving his sense of justice or compassion. </p>
         <p>Chapter 28</p>
         <p> On the fifth morning, or rather afternoon, a different step approached—lighter and
            shorter; and, this time, the person entered the room. It was Zillah; donned in her
            scarlet shawl, with a black silk bonnet on her head, and a willow-basket swung to her
            arm. “Eh, dear! Mrs. Dean!” she exclaimed. “Well! there is a talk about you at
            Gimmerton. I never thought but you were sunk in the Blackhorse marsh, and missy with
            you, till master told me you’d been found, and he’d lodged you here! What! and you must
            have got on an island, sure? And how long were you in the hole? Did master save you,
            Mrs. Dean? But you’re not so thin—you’ve not been so poorly, have you?” “Your master is
            a true <tc:racedesc type="implied">scoundrel</tc:racedesc>!” I replied. “But he shall answer for it. He needn’t have raised that
            tale: it shall all be laid bare!” “What do you mean?” asked Zillah. “It’s not his tale:
            they tell that in the village—about your being lost in the marsh; and I calls to
            Earnshaw, when I come in—‘Eh, they’s queer things, Mr. Hareton, happened since I went
            off. It’s a sad pity of that likely young lass, and cant Nelly Dean.’ He stared. </p>
         <p>   I
            thought he had not heard aught, so I told him the rumour. The master listened, and he
            just smiled to himself, and said, ‘If they have been in the marsh, they are out now,
            Zillah. Nelly Dean is lodged, at this minute, in your room. You can tell her to flit,
            when you go up; here is the key. The bog-water got into her head, and she would have run
            home quite flighty, but I fixed her till she came round to her senses. You can bid her
            go to the Grange at once, if she be able, and carry a message from me, that her young
            lady will follow in time to attend the squire’s funeral.’” “Mr. Edgar is not dead?” I
            gasped. “Oh! Zillah, Zillah!” “No, no; sit you down, my good mistress,” she replied;
            “you’re right sickly yet. He’s not dead; Doctor Kenneth thinks he may last another day.
            I met him on the road and asked.” Instead of sitting down, I snatched my outdoor things,
            and hastened below, for the way was free. On entering the house, I looked about for some
            one to give information of Catherine. The place was filled with sunshine, and the door
            stood wide open; but nobody seemed at hand. As I hesitated whether to go off at once, or
            return and seek my mistress, a slight cough drew my attention to the hearth. Linton lay
            on the settle, sole tenant, sucking a stick of sugar-candy, and pursuing my movements
            with apathetic eyes. “Where is Miss Catherine?” I demanded sternly, supposing I could
            frighten him into giving intelligence, by catching him thus, alone. He sucked on like an
            innocent. “Is she gone?” I said. </p>
         <p>   “No,” he replied; “she’s upstairs: she’s not to go; we
            won’t let her.” “You won’t let her, little idiot!” I exclaimed. “Direct me to her room
            immediately, or I’ll make you sing out sharply.” “Papa would make you sing out, if you
            attempted to get there,” he answered. “He says I’m not to be soft with Catherine: she’s
            my wife, and it’s shameful that she should wish to leave me. He says she hates me and
            wants me to die, that she may have my money; but she shan’t have it: and she shan’t go
            home! She never shall!—she may cry, and be sick as much as she pleases!” He resumed his
            former occupation, closing his lids, as if he meant to drop asleep. “Master Heathcliff,”
            I resumed, “have you forgotten all Catherine’s kindness to you last winter, when you
            affirmed you loved her, and when she brought you books and sung you songs, and came many
            a time through wind and snow to see you? She wept to miss one evening, because you would
            be disappointed; and you felt then that she was a hundred times too good to you: and now
            you believe the lies your father tells, though you know he detests you both. And you
            join him against her. That’s fine gratitude, is it not?” The corner of Linton’s mouth
            fell, and he took the sugar-candy from his lips. “Did she come to Wuthering Heights
            because she hated you?” I continued. “Think for yourself! As to your money, she does not
            even know that you will have any. And you say she’s sick; and yet you leave her alone,
            up there in a strange house! You who have felt what it is to be so neglected! You could
            pity your own sufferings; and she pitied them, too; but you won’t pity hers! I shed
            tears, Master Heathcliff, you see—an elderly woman, and a servant merely—and you, after
            pretending such affection, and having reason to worship her almost, store every tear you
            have for yourself, and lie there quite at ease. Ah! you’re a heartless, selfish boy!” “I
            can’t stay with her,” he answered crossly.</p>
         <p>    “I’ll not stay by myself. She cries so I
            can’t bear it. And she won’t give over, though I say I’ll call my father. I did call him
            once, and he threatened to strangle her if she was not quiet; but she began again the
            instant he left the room, moaning and grieving all night long, though I screamed for
            vexation that I couldn’t sleep.” “Is Mr. Heathcliff out?” I inquired, perceiving that
            the <tc:racedesc type="implied">wretched creature</tc:racedesc> had no power to sympathise with his cousin’s mental tortures.
            “He’s in the court,” he replied, “talking to Doctor Kenneth; who says uncle is dying,
            truly, at last. I’m glad, for I shall be master of the Grange after him. Catherine
            always spoke of it as her house. It isn’t hers! It’s mine: papa says everything she has
            is mine. All her nice books are mine; she offered to give me them, and her pretty birds,
            and her pony Minny, if I would get the key of our room, and let her out; but I told her
            she had nothing to give, they were all, all mine. And then she cried, and took a little
            picture from her neck, and said I should have that; two pictures in a gold case, on one
            side her mother, and on the other uncle, when they were young. That was yesterday—I said
            they were mine, too; and tried to get them from her. The spiteful thing wouldn’t let me:
            she pushed me off, and hurt me. I shrieked out—that frightens her—she heard papa coming,
            and she broke the hinges and divided the case, and gave me her mother’s portrait; the
            other she attempted to hide: but papa asked what was the matter, and I explained it. He
            took the one I had away, and ordered her to resign hers to me; she refused, and he—he
            struck her down, and wrenched it off the chain, and crushed it with his foot.” “And were
            you pleased to see her struck?” I asked: having my designs in encouraging his talk. “I
            winked,” he answered: “I wink to see my father strike a dog or a horse, he does it so
            hard. Yet I was glad at first—she deserved punishing for pushing me: but when papa was
            gone, she made me come to the window and showed me her cheek cut on the inside, against
            her teeth, and her mouth filling with blood; and then she gathered up the bits of the
            picture, and went and sat down with her face to the wall, and she has never spoken to me
            since: and I sometimes think she can’t speak for pain. I don’t like to think so; but
            she’s a naughty thing for crying continually; and she looks so pale and wild, I’m afraid
            of her.” </p>
         <p>    “And you can get the key if you choose?” I said. “Yes, when I am upstairs,” he
            answered; “but I can’t walk upstairs now.” “In what apartment is it?” I asked. “Oh,” he
            cried, “I shan’t tell you where it is. It is our secret. Nobody, neither Hareton nor
            Zillah, is to know. There! you’ve tired me—go away, go away!” And he turned his face on
            to his arm, and shut his eyes again. I considered it best to depart without seeing Mr.
            Heathcliff, and bring a rescue for my young lady from the Grange. On reaching it, the
            astonishment of my fellow-servants to see me, and their joy also, was intense; and when
            they heard that their little mistress was safe, two or three were about to hurry up and
            shout the news at Mr. Edgar’s door: but I bespoke the announcement of it myself. How
            changed I found him, even in those few days! He lay an image of sadness and resignation
            awaiting his death. Very young he looked: though his actual age was thirty-nine, one
            would have called him ten years younger, at least. He thought of Catherine; for he
            murmured her name. I touched his hand, and spoke. “Catherine is coming, dear master!” I
            whispered; “she is alive and well; and will be here, I hope, to-night.” I trembled at
            the first effects of this intelligence: he half rose up, looked eagerly round the
            apartment, and then sank back in a swoon. As soon as he recovered, I related our
            compulsory visit, and detention at the Heights. I said Heathcliff forced me to go in:
            which was not quite true. I uttered as little as possible against Linton; nor did I
            describe all his father’s brutal conduct—my intentions being to add no bitterness, if I
            could help it, to his already overflowing cup. He divined that one of his enemy’s
            purposes was to secure the personal property, as well as the estate, to his son: or
            rather himself; yet why he did not wait till his decease was a puzzle to my master,
            because ignorant how nearly he and his nephew would quit the world together. However, he
            felt that his will had better be altered: instead of leaving Catherine’s fortune at her
            own disposal, he determined to put it in the hands of trustees for her use during life,
            and for her children, if she had any, after her. By that means, it could not fall to Mr.
            Heathcliff should Linton die. Having received his orders, I despatched a man to fetch
            the attorney, and four more, provided with serviceable weapons, to demand my young lady
            of her jailor. </p>
         <p>   Both parties were delayed very late. The single servant returned first.
            He said Mr. Green, the lawyer, was out when he arrived at his house, and he had to wait
            two hours for his re-entrance; and then Mr. Green told him he had a little business in
            the village that must be done; but he would be at Thrushcross Grange before morning. The
            four men came back unaccompanied also. They brought word that Catherine was ill: too ill
            to quit her room; and Heathcliff would not suffer them to see her. I scolded the stupid
            fellows well for listening to that tale, which I would not carry to my master; resolving
            to take a whole bevy up to the Heights, at daylight, and storm it literally, unless the
            prisoner were quietly surrendered to us. Her father shall see her, I vowed, and vowed
            again, if that <tc:racedesc type="explicit">devil</tc:racedesc> be killed on his own door-stones in trying to prevent it! Happily,
            I was spared the journey and the trouble. I had gone downstairs at three o’clock to
            fetch a jug of water; and was passing through the hall with it in my hand, when a sharp
            knock at the front door made me jump. “Oh! it is Green,” I said, recollecting
            myself—“only Green,” and I went on, intending to send somebody else to open it; but the
            knock was repeated: not loud, and still importunately. I put the jug on the banister and
            hastened to admit him myself. The harvest moon shone clear outside. It was not the
            attorney. My own sweet little mistress sprang on my neck sobbing, “Ellen, Ellen! Is papa
            alive?” “Yes,” I cried: “yes, my angel, he is, God be thanked, you are safe with us
            again!” She wanted to run, breathless as she was, upstairs to Mr. Linton’s room; but I
            compelled her to sit down on a chair, and made her drink, and washed her pale face,
            chafing it into a faint colour with my apron. Then I said I must go first, and tell of
            her arrival; imploring her to say, she should be happy with young Heathcliff. She
            stared, but soon comprehending why I counselled her to utter the falsehood, she assured
            me she would not complain. I couldn’t abide to be present at their meeting. I stood
            outside the chamber-door a quarter of an hour, and hardly ventured near the bed, then.
            All was composed, however: Catherine’s despair was as silent as her father’s joy. She
            supported him calmly, in appearance; and he fixed on her features his raised eyes that
            seemed dilating with ecstasy. </p>
         <p>  He died blissfully, Mr. Lockwood: he died so. Kissing her
            cheek, he murmured,—“I am going to her; and you, darling child, shall come to us!” and
            never stirred or spoke again; but continued that rapt, radiant gaze, till his pulse
            imperceptibly stopped and his soul departed. None could have noticed the exact minute of
            his death, it was so entirely without a struggle. Whether Catherine had spent her tears,
            or whether the grief were too weighty to let them flow, she sat there dry-eyed till the
            sun rose: she sat till noon, and would still have remained brooding over that deathbed,
            but I insisted on her coming away and taking some repose. It was well I succeeded in
            removing her, for at dinner-time appeared the lawyer, having called at Wuthering Heights
            to get his instructions how to behave. He had sold himself to Mr. Heathcliff: that was
            the cause of his delay in obeying my master’s summons. Fortunately, no thought of
            worldly affairs crossed the latter’s mind, to disturb him, after his daughter’s arrival.
            Mr. Green took upon himself to order everything and everybody about the place. He gave
            all the servants but me, notice to quit. He would have carried his delegated authority
            to the point of insisting that Edgar Linton should not be buried beside his wife, but in
            the chapel, with his family. There was the will, however, to hinder that, and my loud
            protestations against any infringement of its directions. The funeral was hurried over;
            Catherine, Mrs. Linton Heathcliff now, was suffered to stay at the Grange till her
            father’s corpse had quitted it. </p>
         <p>  She told me that her anguish had at last spurred Linton
            to incur the risk of liberating her. She heard the men I sent disputing at the door, and
            she gathered the sense of Heathcliff’s answer. It drove her desperate. Linton who had
            been conveyed up to the little parlour soon after I left, was terrified into fetching
            the key before his father re-ascended. He had the cunning to unlock and re-lock the
            door, without shutting it; and when he should have gone to bed, he begged to sleep with
            Hareton, and his petition was granted for once. Catherine stole out before break of day.
            She dared not try the doors lest the dogs should raise an alarm; she visited the empty
            chambers and examined their windows; and, luckily, lighting on her mother’s, she got
            easily out of its lattice, and on to the ground, by means of the fir-tree close by. Her
            accomplice suffered for his share in the escape, notwithstanding his timid contrivances.
         </p>
         <p>Chapter 29</p>
         <p> The evening after the funeral, my young lady and I were seated in the library; now
            musing mournfully—one of us despairingly—on our loss, now venturing conjectures as to
            the gloomy future. We had just agreed the best destiny which could await Catherine would
            be a permission to continue resident at the Grange; at least during Linton’s life: he
            being allowed to join her there, and I to remain as housekeeper. That seemed rather too
            favourable an arrangement to be hoped for; and yet I did hope, and began to cheer up
            under the prospect of retaining my home and my employment, and, above all, my beloved
            young mistress; when a servant—one of the discarded ones, not yet departed—rushed
            hastily in, and said “that <tc:racedesc type="implied">devil</tc:racedesc> Heathcliff” was coming through the court: should he
            fasten the door in his face? If we had been mad enough to order that proceeding, we had
            not time. He made no ceremony of knocking or announcing his name: he was master, and
            availed himself of the master’s privilege to walk straight in, without saying a word.
            The sound of our informant’s voice directed him to the library; he entered and motioning
            him out, shut the door. It was the same room into which he had been ushered, as a guest,
            eighteen years before: the same moon shone through the window; and the same autumn
            landscape lay outside. We had not yet lighted a candle, but all the apartment was
            visible, even to the portraits on the wall: the splendid head of Mrs. Linton, and the
            graceful one of her husband. Heathcliff advanced to the hearth. Time had little altered
            his person either. </p>
         <p>  There was the same man: his <tc:racedesc type="explicit">dark</tc:racedesc> face rather sallower and more
            composed, his frame a stone or two heavier, perhaps, and no other difference. Catherine
            had risen with an impulse to dash out, when she saw him. “Stop!” he said, arresting her
            by the arm. “No more runnings away! Where would you go? I’m come to fetch you home; and
            I hope you’ll be a dutiful daughter and not encourage my son to further disobedience. I
            was embarrassed how to punish him when I discovered his part in the business: he’s such
            a cobweb, a pinch would annihilate him; but you’ll see by his look that he has received
            his due! I brought him down one evening, the day before yesterday, and just set him in a
            chair, and never touched him afterwards. I sent Hareton out, and we had the room to
            ourselves. In two hours, I called Joseph to carry him up again; and since then my
            presence is as potent on his nerves as a ghost; and I fancy he sees me often, though I
            am not near. Hareton says he wakes and shrieks in the night by the hour together, and
            calls you to protect him from me; and, whether you like your precious mate, or not, you
            must come: he’s your concern now; I yield all my interest in him to you.” “Why not let
            Catherine continue here,” I pleaded, “and send Master Linton to her? As you hate them
            both, you’d not miss them: they can only be a daily plague to your unnatural heart.”
            “I’m seeking a tenant for the Grange,” he answered; “and I want my children about me, to
            be sure. Besides, that lass owes me her services for her bread. I’m not going to nurture
            her in luxury and idleness after Linton is gone. Make haste and get ready, now; and
            don’t oblige me to compel you.” </p>
         <p>    “I shall,” said Catherine. “Linton is all I have to love
            in the world, and though you have done what you could to make him hateful to me, and me
            to him, you cannot make us hate each other. And I defy you to hurt him when I am by, and
            I defy you to frighten me!” “You are a boastful champion,” replied Heathcliff; “but I
            don’t like you well enough to hurt him: you shall get the full benefit of the torment,
            as long as it lasts. It is not I who will make him hateful to you—it is his own sweet
            spirit. He’s as bitter as gall at your desertion and its consequences: don’t expect
            thanks for this noble devotion. I heard him draw a pleasant picture to Zillah of what he
            would do if he were as strong as I: the inclination is there, and his very weakness will
            sharpen his wits to find a substitute for strength.” “I know he has a bad nature,” said
            Catherine: “he’s your son. But I’m glad I’ve a better, to forgive it; and I know he
            loves me, and for that reason I love him. Mr. Heathcliff, you have nobody to love you;
            and, however miserable you make us, we shall still have the revenge of thinking that
            your cruelty arises from your greater misery. You are miserable, are you not? Lonely,
            like the devil, and envious like him? Nobody loves you—nobody will cry for you when you
            die! I wouldn’t be you!” Catherine spoke with a kind of dreary triumph: she seemed to
            have made up her mind to enter into the spirit of her future family, and draw pleasure
            from the griefs of her enemies. “You shall be sorry to be yourself presently,” said her
            father-in-law, “if you stand there another minute. Begone, witch, and get your things!”
            She scornfully withdrew. In her absence I began to beg for Zillah’s place at the
            Heights, offering to resign mine to her; but he would suffer it on no account. He bid me
            be silent; and then, for the first time, allowed himself a glance round the room and a
            look at the pictures. Having studied Mrs. Linton’s, he said—“I shall have that home. Not
            because I need it, but—” He turned abruptly to the fire, and continued, with what, for
            lack of a better word, I must call a smile—“I’ll tell you what I did yesterday! I got
            the sexton, who was digging Linton’s grave, to remove the earth off her coffin lid, and
            I opened it. </p>
         <p>   I thought, once, I would have stayed there: when I saw her face again—it is
            hers yet!—he had hard work to stir me; but he said it would change if the air blew on
            it, and so I struck one side of the coffin loose, and covered it up: not Linton’s side,
            damn him! I wish he’d been soldered in lead. And I bribed the sexton to pull it away
            when I’m laid there, and slide mine out too; I’ll have it made so: and then by the time
            Linton gets to us he’ll not know which is which!” “You were very wicked, Mr.
            Heathcliff!” I exclaimed; “were you not ashamed to disturb the dead?” “I disturbed
            nobody, Nelly,” he replied; “and I gave some ease to myself. I shall be a great deal
            more comfortable now; and you’ll have a better chance of keeping me underground, when I
            get there. Disturbed her? No! she has disturbed me, night and day, through eighteen
            years—incessantly—remorselessly—till yesternight; and yesternight I was tranquil. I
            dreamt I was sleeping the last sleep by that sleeper, with my heart stopped and my cheek
            frozen against hers.” “And if she had been dissolved into earth, or worse, what would
            you have dreamt of then?” I said. “Of dissolving with her, and being more happy still!”
            he answered. “Do you suppose I dread any change of that sort? I expected such a
            transformation on raising the lid, but I’m better pleased that it should not commence
            till I share it. Besides, unless I had received a distinct impression of her passionless
            features, that strange feeling would hardly have been removed. It began oddly. You know
            I was wild after she died; and eternally, from dawn to dawn, praying her to return to me
            her spirit! I have a strong faith in ghosts: I have a conviction that they can, and do,
            exist among us! The day she was buried, there came a fall of snow. In the evening I went
            to the churchyard. It blew bleak as winter—all round was solitary. I didn’t fear that
            her fool of a husband would wander up the glen so late; and no one else had business to
            bring them there. Being alone, and conscious two yards of loose earth was the sole
            barrier between us, I said to myself—‘I’ll have her in my arms again! If she be cold,
            I’ll think it is this north wind that chills me; and if she be motionless, it is sleep.’
            I got a spade from the tool-house, and began to delve with all my might—it scraped the
            coffin; I fell to work with my hands; the wood commenced cracking about the screws; I
            was on the point of attaining my object, when it seemed that I heard a sigh from some
            one above, close at the edge of the grave, and bending down. ‘If I can only get this
            off,’ I muttered, ‘I wish they may shovel in the earth over us both!’ and I wrenched at
            it more desperately still. There was another sigh, close at my ear.</p>
         <p>  I appeared to feel
            the warm breath of it displacing the sleet-laden wind. I knew no living thing in flesh
            and blood was by; but, as certainly as you perceive the approach to some substantial
            body in the dark, though it cannot be discerned, so certainly I felt that Cathy was
            there: not under me, but on the earth. A sudden sense of relief flowed from my heart
            through every limb. I relinquished my labour of agony, and turned consoled at once:
            unspeakably consoled. Her presence was with me: it remained while I re-filled the grave,
            and led me home. You may laugh, if you will; but I was sure I should see her there. I
            was sure she was with me, and I could not help talking to her. Having reached the
            Heights, I rushed eagerly to the door. It was fastened; and, I remember, that accursed
            Earnshaw and my wife opposed my entrance. I remember stopping to kick the breath out of
            him, and then hurrying upstairs, to my room and hers. I looked round impatiently—I felt
            her by me—I could almost see her, and yet I could not! I ought to have sweat blood then,
            from the anguish of my yearning—from the fervour of my supplications to have but one
            glimpse! I had not one. She showed herself, as she often was in life, a devil to me!
            And, since then, sometimes more and sometimes less, I’ve been the sport of that
            intolerable torture! Infernal! keeping my nerves at such a stretch that, if they had not
            resembled catgut, they would long ago have relaxed to the feebleness of Linton’s. When I
            sat in the house with Hareton, it seemed that on going out I should meet her; when I
            walked on the moors I should meet her coming in. When I went from home I hastened to
            return; she must be somewhere at the Heights, I was certain! And when I slept in her
            chamber—I was beaten out of that. I couldn’t lie there; for the moment I closed my eyes,
            she was either outside the window, or sliding back the panels, or entering the room, or
            even resting her darling head on the same pillow as she did when a child; and I must
            open my lids to see. And so I opened and closed them a hundred times a night—to be
            always disappointed! It racked me! I’ve often groaned aloud, till that old rascal Joseph
            no doubt believed that my conscience was playing the fiend inside of me. Now, since I’ve
            seen her, I’m pacified—a little. It was a strange way of killing: not by inches, but by
            fractions of hairbreadths, to beguile me with the spectre of a hope through eighteen
            years!” </p>
         <p>  Mr. Heathcliff paused and wiped his forehead; his hair clung to it, wet with
            perspiration; his eyes were fixed on the red embers of the fire, the brows not
            contracted, but raised next the temples; diminishing the grim aspect of his countenance,
            but imparting a peculiar look of trouble, and a painful appearance of mental tension
            towards one absorbing subject. He only half addressed me, and I maintained silence. I
            didn’t like to hear him talk! After a short period he resumed his meditation on the
            picture, took it down and leant it against the sofa to contemplate it at better
            advantage; and while so occupied Catherine entered, announcing that she was ready, when
            her pony should be saddled. “Send that over to-morrow,” said Heathcliff to me; then
            turning to her, he added: “You may do without your pony: it is a fine evening, and
            you’ll need no ponies at Wuthering Heights; for what journeys you take, your own feet
            will serve you. Come along.” “Good-bye, Ellen!” whispered my dear little mistress. As
            she kissed me, her lips felt like ice. “Come and see me, Ellen; don’t forget.” “Take
            care you do no such thing, Mrs. Dean!” said her new father. “When I wish to speak to you
            I’ll come here. I want none of your prying at my house!” He signed her to precede him;
            and casting back a look that cut my heart, she obeyed. I watched them, from the window,
            walk down the garden. Heathcliff fixed Catherine’s arm under his: though she disputed
            the act at first evidently; and with rapid strides he hurried her into the alley, whose
            trees concealed them. </p>
         <p>Chapter 30</p>
         <p> I have paid a visit to the Heights, but I have not seen her since she left: Joseph held
            the door in his hand when I called to ask after her, and wouldn’t let me pass. He said
            Mrs. Linton was “thrang,” and the master was not in. Zillah has told me something of the
            way they go on, otherwise I should hardly know who was dead and who living. She thinks
            Catherine haughty, and does not like her, I can guess by her talk. My young lady asked
            some aid of her when she first came; but Mr. Heathcliff told her to follow her own
            business, and let his daughter-in-law look after herself; and Zillah willingly
            acquiesced, being a narrow-minded, selfish woman. Catherine evinced a child’s annoyance
            at this neglect; repaid it with contempt, and thus enlisted my informant among her
            enemies, as securely as if she had done her some great wrong. I had a long talk with
            Zillah about six weeks ago, a little before you came, one day when we foregathered on
            the moor; and this is what she told me. “The first thing Mrs. Linton did,” she said, “on
            her arrival at the Heights, was to run upstairs, without even wishing good-evening to me
            and Joseph; she shut herself into Linton’s room, and remained till morning. Then, while
            the master and Earnshaw were at breakfast, she entered the house, and asked all in a
            quiver if the doctor might be sent for? her cousin was very ill. “‘We know that!’
            answered Heathcliff; ‘but his life is not worth a farthing, and I won’t spend a farthing
            on him.’ “‘But I cannot tell how to do,’ she said; ‘and if nobody will help me, he’ll
            die!’ “‘Walk out of the room,’ cried the master, ‘and let me never hear a word more
            about him! None here care what becomes of him; if you do, act the nurse; if you do not,
            lock him up and leave him.’ “Then she began to bother me, and I said I’d had enough
            plague with the tiresome thing; we each had our tasks, and hers was to wait on Linton:
            Mr. Heathcliff bid me leave that labour to her. </p>
         <p>   “How they managed together, I can’t
            tell. I fancy he fretted a great deal, and moaned hisseln night and day; and she had
            precious little rest: one could guess by her white face and heavy eyes. She sometimes
            came into the kitchen all wildered like, and looked as if she would fain beg assistance;
            but I was not going to disobey the master: I never dare disobey him, Mrs. Dean; and,
            though I thought it wrong that Kenneth should not be sent for, it was no concern of mine
            either to advise or complain, and I always refused to meddle. Once or twice, after we
            had gone to bed, I’ve happened to open my door again and seen her sitting crying on the
            stairs’-top; and then I’ve shut myself in quick, for fear of being moved to interfere. I
            did pity her then, I’m sure: still I didn’t wish to lose my place, you know. “At last,
            one night she came boldly into my chamber, and frightened me out of my wits, by saying,
            ‘Tell Mr. Heathcliff that his son is dying—I’m sure he is, this time. Get up, instantly,
            and tell him.’ “Having uttered this speech, she vanished again. I lay a quarter of an
            hour listening and trembling. Nothing stirred—the house was quiet. “She’s mistaken, I
            said to myself. He’s got over it. I needn’t disturb them; and I began to doze. But my
            sleep was marred a second time by a sharp ringing of the bell—the only bell we have, put
            up on purpose for Linton; and the master called to me to see what was the matter, and
            inform them that he wouldn’t have that noise repeated. “I delivered Catherine’s message.
            He cursed to himself, and in a few minutes came out with a lighted candle, and proceeded
            to their room. I followed. Mrs. Heathcliff was seated by the bedside, with her hands
            folded on her knees. Her father-in-law went up, held the light to Linton’s face, looked
            at him, and touched him; afterwards he turned to her. “‘Now—Catherine,’ he said, ‘how do
            you feel?’ “She was dumb. “‘How do you feel, Catherine?’ he repeated. “‘He’s safe, and
            I’m free,’ she answered: ‘I should feel well—but,’ she continued, with a bitterness she
            couldn’t conceal, ‘you have left me so long to struggle against death alone, that I feel
            and see only death! I feel like death!’ “And she looked like it, too! I gave her a
            little wine. Hareton and Joseph, who had been wakened by the ringing and the sound of
            feet, and heard our talk from outside, now entered. Joseph was fain, I believe, of the
            lad’s removal; Hareton seemed a thought bothered: though he was more taken up with
            staring at Catherine than thinking of Linton. But the master bid him get off to bed
            again: we didn’t want his help. He afterwards made Joseph remove the body to his
            chamber, and told me to return to mine, and Mrs. Heathcliff remained by herself. “In the
            morning, he sent me to tell her she must come down to breakfast: she had undressed, and
            appeared going to sleep, and said she was ill; at which I hardly wondered. I informed
            Mr. Heathcliff, and he replied,—‘Well, let her be till after the funeral; and go up now
            and then to get her what is needful; and, as soon as she seems better, tell me.’” </p>
         <p>  Cathy
            stayed upstairs a fortnight, according to Zillah; who visited her twice a day, and would
            have been rather more friendly, but her attempts at increasing kindness were proudly and
            promptly repelled. Heathcliff went up once, to show her Linton’s will. He had bequeathed
            the whole of his, and what had been her, moveable property, to his father: the poor
            creature was threatened, or coaxed, into that act during her week’s absence, when his
            uncle died. The lands, being a minor, he could not meddle with. However, Mr. Heathcliff
            has claimed and kept them in his wife’s right and his also: I suppose legally; at any
            rate, Catherine, destitute of cash and friends, cannot disturb his possession. “Nobody,”
            said Zillah, “ever approached her door, except that once, but I; and nobody asked
            anything about her. The first occasion of her coming down into the house was on a Sunday
            afternoon. She had cried out, when I carried up her dinner, that she couldn’t bear any
            longer being in the cold; and I told her the master was going to Thrushcross Grange, and
            Earnshaw and I needn’t hinder her from descending; so, as soon as she heard Heathcliff’s
            horse trot off, she made her appearance, donned in black, and her yellow curls combed
            back behind her ears as plain as a Quaker: she couldn’t comb them out. “Joseph and I
            generally go to chapel on Sundays:” the kirk, (you know, has no minister now, explained
            Mrs. Dean; and they call the Methodists’ or Baptists’ place, I can’t say which it is, at
            Gimmerton, a chapel.) “Joseph had gone,” she continued, “but I thought proper to bide at
            home. Young folks are always the better for an elder’s over-looking; and Hareton, with
            all his bashfulness, isn’t a model of nice behaviour. I let him know that his cousin
            would very likely sit with us, and she had been always used to see the Sabbath
            respected; so he had as good leave his guns and bits of indoor work alone, while she
            stayed. He coloured up at the news, and cast his eyes over his hands and clothes. The
            train-oil and gunpowder were shoved out of sight in a minute. I saw he meant to give her
            his company; and I guessed, by his way, he wanted to be presentable; so, laughing, as I
            durst not laugh when the master is by, I offered to help him, if he would, and joked at
            his confusion. He grew sullen, and began to swear. “Now, Mrs. Dean,” Zillah went on,
            seeing me not pleased by her manner, “you happen think your young lady too fine for Mr.
            Hareton; and happen you’re right: but I own I should love well to bring her pride a peg
            lower. And what will all her learning and her daintiness do for her, now? She’s as poor
            as you or I: poorer, I’ll be bound: you’re saving, and I’m doing my little all that
            road.” Hareton allowed Zillah to give him her aid; and she flattered him into a good
            humour; so, when Catherine came, half forgetting her former insults, he tried to make
            himself agreeable, by the housekeeper’s account. “Missis walked in,” she said, “as chill
            as an icicle, and as high as a princess. I got up and offered her my seat in the
            arm-chair. </p>
         <p>   No, she turned up her nose at my civility. Earnshaw rose, too, and bid her
            come to the settle, and sit close by the fire: he was sure she was starved. “‘I’ve been
            starved a month and more,’ she answered, resting on the word as scornful as she could.
            “And she got a chair for herself, and placed it at a distance from both of us. Having
            sat till she was warm, she began to look round, and discovered a number of books on the
            dresser; she was instantly upon her feet again, stretching to reach them: but they were
            too high up. Her cousin, after watching her endeavours a while, at last summoned courage
            to help her; she held her frock, and he filled it with the first that came to hand.
            “That was a great advance for the lad. She didn’t thank him; still, he felt gratified
            that she had accepted his assistance, and ventured to stand behind as she examined them,
            and even to stoop and point out what struck his fancy in certain old pictures which they
            contained; nor was he daunted by the saucy style in which she jerked the page from his
            finger: he contented himself with going a bit farther back and looking at her instead of
            the book. She continued reading, or seeking for something to read. His attention became,
            by degrees, quite centred in the study of her thick silky curls: her face he couldn’t
            see, and she couldn’t see him. And, perhaps, not quite awake to what he did, but
            attracted like a child to a candle, at last he proceeded from staring to touching; he
            put out his hand and stroked one curl, as gently as if it were a bird. He might have
            stuck a knife into her neck, she started round in such a taking. “‘Get away this moment!
            How dare you touch me? Why are you stopping there?’ she cried, in a tone of disgust. ‘I
            can’t endure you! I’ll go upstairs again, if you come near me.’ “Mr. Hareton recoiled,
            looking as foolish as he could do: he sat down in the settle very quiet, and she
            continued turning over her volumes another half hour; finally, Earnshaw crossed over,
            and whispered to me.</p>
         <p>   “‘Will you ask her to read to us, Zillah? I’m stalled of doing
            naught; and I do like—I could like to hear her! Dunnot say I wanted it, but ask of
            yourseln.’ “‘Mr. Hareton wishes you would read to us, ma’am,’ I said, immediately. ‘He’d
            take it very kind—he’d be much obliged.’ “She frowned; and looking up, answered— “‘Mr.
            Hareton, and the whole set of you, will be good enough to understand that I reject any
            pretence at kindness you have the hypocrisy to offer! I despise you, and will have
            nothing to say to any of you! When I would have given my life for one kind word, even to
            see one of your faces, you all kept off. But I won’t complain to you! I’m driven down
            here by the cold; not either to amuse you or enjoy your society.’ “‘What could I ha’
            done?’ began Earnshaw. ‘How was I to blame?’ “‘Oh! you are an exception,’ answered Mrs.
            Heathcliff. ‘I never missed such a concern as you.’ “‘But I offered more than once, and
            asked,’ he said, kindling up at her pertness, ‘I asked Mr. Heathcliff to let me wake for
            you—’ “‘Be silent! I’ll go out of doors, or anywhere, rather than have your disagreeable
            voice in my ear!’ said my lady. “Hareton muttered she might go to hell, for him! and
            unslinging his gun, restrained himself from his Sunday occupations no longer. He talked
            now, freely enough; and she presently saw fit to retreat to her solitude: but the frost
            had set in, and, in spite of her pride, she was forced to condescend to our company,
            more and more. However, I took care there should be no further scorning at my good
            nature: ever since, I’ve been as stiff as herself; and she has no lover or liker among
            us: and she does not deserve one; for, let them say the least word to her, and she’ll
            curl back without respect of any one. She’ll snap at the master himself, and as good as
            dares him to thrash her; and the more hurt she gets, the more venomous she grows.” At
            first, on hearing this account from Zillah, I determined to leave my situation, take a
            cottage, and get Catherine to come and live with me: but Mr. Heathcliff would as soon
            permit that as he would set up Hareton in an independent house; and I can see no remedy,
            at present, unless she could marry again; and that scheme it does not come within my
            province to arrange. * * * * * </p>
         <p>   Thus ended Mrs. Dean’s story. Notwithstanding the
            doctor’s prophecy, I am rapidly recovering strength; and though it be only the second
            week in January, I propose getting out on horseback in a day or two, and riding over to
            Wuthering Heights, to inform my landlord that I shall spend the next six months in
            London; and, if he likes, he may look out for another tenant to take the place after
            October. I would not pass another winter here for much. </p>
         <p>Chapter 31</p>
         <p> Yesterday was bright, calm, and frosty. I went to the Heights as I proposed: my
            housekeeper entreated me to bear a little note from her to her young lady, and I did not
            refuse, for the worthy woman was not conscious of anything odd in her request. The front
            door stood open, but the jealous gate was fastened, as at my last visit; I knocked and
            invoked Earnshaw from among the garden-beds; he unchained it, and I entered. The fellow
            is as handsome a rustic as need be seen. I took particular notice of him this time; but
            then he does his best apparently to make the least of his advantages. I asked if Mr.
            Heathcliff were at home? He answered, No; but he would be in at dinner-time. It was
            eleven o’clock, and I announced my intention of going in and waiting for him; at which
            he immediately flung down his tools and accompanied me, in the office of watchdog, not
            as a substitute for the host. We entered together; Catherine was there, making herself
            useful in preparing some vegetables for the approaching meal; she looked more sulky and
            less spirited than when I had seen her first. She hardly raised her eyes to notice me,
            and continued her employment with the same disregard to common forms of politeness as
            before; never returning my bow and good-morning by the slightest acknowledgment. “She
            does not seem so amiable,” I thought, “as Mrs. Dean would persuade me to believe. She’s
            a beauty, it is true; but not an angel.” Earnshaw surlily bid her remove her things to
            the kitchen. “Remove them yourself,” she said, pushing them from her as soon as she had
            done; and retiring to a stool by the window, where she began to carve figures of birds
            and beasts out of the turnip-parings in her lap. I approached her, pretending to desire
            a view of the garden; and, as I fancied, adroitly dropped Mrs. Dean’s note on to her
            knee, unnoticed by Hareton—but she asked aloud, “What is that?” And chucked it off. “A
            letter from your old acquaintance, the housekeeper at the Grange,” I answered; annoyed
            at her exposing my kind deed, and fearful lest it should be imagined a missive of my
            own. She would gladly have gathered it up at this information, but Hareton beat her; he
            seized and put it in his waistcoat, saying Mr. Heathcliff should look at it first.
            Thereat, Catherine silently turned her face from us, and, very stealthily, drew out her
            pocket-handkerchief and applied it to her eyes; and her cousin, after struggling awhile
            to keep down his softer feelings, pulled out the letter and flung it on the floor beside
            her, as ungraciously as he could. Catherine caught and perused it eagerly; then she put
            a few questions to me concerning the inmates, rational and irrational, of her former
            home; and gazing towards the hills, murmured in soliloquy: “I should like to be riding
            Minny down there! I should like to be climbing up there! Oh! I’m tired—I’m stalled,
            Hareton!” And she leant her pretty head back against the sill, with half a yawn and half
            a sigh, and lapsed into an aspect of abstracted sadness: neither caring nor knowing
            whether we remarked her. “Mrs. Heathcliff,” I said, after sitting some time mute, “you
            are not aware that I am an acquaintance of yours? so intimate that I think it strange
            you won’t come and speak to me. My housekeeper never wearies of talking about and
            praising you; and she’ll be greatly disappointed if I return with no news of or from
            you, except that you received her letter and said nothing!” She appeared to wonder at
            this speech, and asked,— “Does Ellen like you?” “Yes, very well,” I replied,
            hesitatingly. “You must tell her,” she continued, “that I would answer her letter, but I
            have no materials for writing: not even a book from which I might tear a leaf.” </p>
         <p>   “No
            books!” I exclaimed. “How do you contrive to live here without them? if I may take the
            liberty to inquire. Though provided with a large library, I’m frequently very dull at
            the Grange; take my books away, and I should be desperate!” “I was always reading, when
            I had them,” said Catherine; “and Mr. Heathcliff never reads; so he took it into his
            head to destroy my books. I have not had a glimpse of one for weeks. Only once, I
            searched through Joseph’s store of theology, to his great irritation; and once, Hareton,
            I came upon a secret stock in your room—some Latin and Greek, and some tales and poetry:
            all old friends. I brought the last here—and you gathered them, as a magpie gathers
            silver spoons, for the mere love of stealing! They are of no use to you; or else you
            concealed them in the bad spirit that, as you cannot enjoy them, nobody else shall.
            Perhaps your envy counselled Mr. Heathcliff to rob me of my treasures? But I’ve most of
            them written on my brain and printed in my heart, and you cannot deprive me of those!”
            Earnshaw blushed crimson when his cousin made this revelation of his private literary
            accumulations, and stammered an indignant denial of her accusations. “Mr. Hareton is
            desirous of increasing his amount of knowledge,” I said, coming to his rescue. “He is
            not envious, but emulous of your attainments. He’ll be a clever scholar in a few years.”
            “And he wants me to sink into a dunce, meantime,” answered Catherine. </p>
         <p> “Yes, I hear him
            trying to spell and read to himself, and pretty blunders he makes! I wish you would
            repeat Chevy Chase as you did yesterday: it was extremely funny. I heard you; and I
            heard you turning over the dictionary to seek out the hard words, and then cursing
            because you couldn’t read their explanations!” The young man evidently thought it too
            bad that he should be laughed at for his ignorance, and then laughed at for trying to
            remove it. I had a similar notion; and, remembering Mrs. Dean’s anecdote of his first
            attempt at enlightening the darkness in which he had been reared, I observed,—“But, Mrs.
            Heathcliff, we have each had a commencement, and each stumbled and tottered on the
            threshold; had our teachers scorned instead of aiding us, we should stumble and totter
            yet.” “Oh!” she replied, “I don’t wish to limit his acquirements: still, he has no right
            to appropriate what is mine, and make it ridiculous to me with his vile mistakes and
            mispronunciations! Those books, both prose and verse, are consecrated to me by other
            associations; and I hate to have them debased and profaned in his mouth! Besides, of
            all, he has selected my favourite pieces that I love the most to repeat, as if out of
            deliberate malice.” Hareton’s chest heaved in silence a minute: he laboured under a
            severe sense of mortification and wrath, which it was no easy task to suppress. I rose,
            and, from a gentlemanly idea of relieving his embarrassment, took up my station in the
            doorway, surveying the external prospect as I stood. He followed my example, and left
            the room; but presently reappeared, bearing half a dozen volumes in his hands, which he
            threw into Catherine’s lap, exclaiming,—“Take them! I never want to hear, or read, or
            think of them again!” “I won’t have them now,” she answered. </p>
         <p>    “I shall connect them with
            you, and hate them.” She opened one that had obviously been often turned over, and read
            a portion in the drawling tone of a beginner; then laughed, and threw it from her. “And
            listen,” she continued, provokingly, commencing a verse of an old ballad in the same
            fashion. But his self-love would endure no further torment: I heard, and not altogether
            disapprovingly, a manual check given to her saucy tongue. The little wretch had done her
            utmost to hurt her cousin’s sensitive though uncultivated feelings, and a physical
            argument was the only mode he had of balancing the account, and repaying its effects on
            the inflictor. He afterwards gathered the books and hurled them on the fire. I read in
            his countenance what anguish it was to offer that sacrifice to spleen. I fancied that as
            they consumed, he recalled the pleasure they had already imparted, and the triumph and
            ever-increasing pleasure he had anticipated from them; and I fancied I guessed the
            incitement to his secret studies also. He had been content with daily labour and rough
            animal enjoyments, till Catherine crossed his path. Shame at her scorn, and hope of her
            approval, were his first prompters to higher pursuits; and instead of guarding him from
            one and winning him to the other, his endeavours to raise himself had produced just the
            contrary result. “Yes, that’s all the good that such a brute as you can get from them!”
            cried Catherine, sucking her damaged lip, and watching the conflagration with indignant
            eyes. “You’d better hold your tongue, now,” he answered fiercely. And his agitation
            precluded further speech; he advanced hastily to the entrance, where I made way for him
            to pass. But ere he had crossed the door-stones, Mr. Heathcliff, coming up the causeway,
            encountered him, and laying hold of his shoulder asked,—“What’s to do now, my lad?”
            “Naught, naught,” he said, and broke away to enjoy his grief and anger in solitude.
            Heathcliff gazed after him, and sighed. “It will be odd if I thwart myself,” he
            muttered, unconscious that I was behind him. “But when I look for his father in his
            face, I find her every day more! How the devil is he so like? I can hardly bear to see
            him.” He bent his eyes to the ground, and walked moodily in. There was a restless,
            anxious expression in his countenance, I had never remarked there before; and he looked
            sparer in person. His daughter-in-law, on perceiving him through the window, immediately
            escaped to the kitchen, so that I remained alone. “I’m glad to see you out of doors
            again, Mr. Lockwood,” he said, in reply to my greeting; “from selfish motives partly: I
            don’t think I could readily supply your loss in this desolation. I’ve wondered more than
            once what brought you here.”</p>
         <p>    “An idle whim, I fear, sir,” was my answer; “or else an
            idle whim is going to spirit me away. I shall set out for London next week; and I must
            give you warning that I feel no disposition to retain Thrushcross Grange beyond the
            twelve months I agreed to rent it. I believe I shall not live there any more.” “Oh,
            indeed; you’re tired of being banished from the world, are you?” he said. “But if you be
            coming to plead off paying for a place you won’t occupy, your journey is useless: I
            never relent in exacting my due from any one.” “I’m coming to plead off nothing about
            it,” I exclaimed, considerably irritated. “Should you wish it, I’ll settle with you
            now,” and I drew my note-book from my pocket. “No, no,” he replied, coolly; “you’ll
            leave sufficient behind to cover your debts, if you fail to return: I’m not in such a
            hurry. Sit down and take your dinner with us; a guest that is safe from repeating his
            visit can generally be made welcome. Catherine! bring the things in: where are you?”
            Catherine reappeared, bearing a tray of knives and forks. “You may get your dinner with
            Joseph,” muttered Heathcliff, aside, “and remain in the kitchen till he is gone.” She
            obeyed his directions very punctually: perhaps she had no temptation to transgress.
            Living among clowns and misanthropists, she probably cannot appreciate a better class of
            people when she meets them. With Mr. Heathcliff, grim and saturnine, on the one hand,
            and Hareton, absolutely dumb, on the other, I made a somewhat cheerless meal, and bade
            adieu early. I would have departed by the back way, to get a last glimpse of Catherine
            and annoy old Joseph; but Hareton received orders to lead up my horse, and my host
            himself escorted me to the door, so I could not fulfil my wish. “How dreary life gets
            over in that house!” I reflected, while riding down the road. “What a realisation of
            something more romantic than a fairy tale it would have been for Mrs. Linton Heathcliff,
            had she and I struck up an attachment, as her good nurse desired, and migrated together
            into the stirring atmosphere of the town!” </p>
         <p>Chapter 32</p>
         <p> 1802.—This September I was invited to devastate the moors of a friend in the north, and
            on my journey to his abode, I unexpectedly came within fifteen miles of Gimmerton. The
            ostler at a roadside public-house was holding a pail of water to refresh my horses, when
            a cart of very green oats, newly reaped, passed by, and he remarked,—“Yon’s frough
            Gimmerton, nah! They’re allas three wick’ after other folk wi’ ther harvest.”
            “Gimmerton?” I repeated—my residence in that locality had already grown dim and dreamy.
            “Ah! I know. How far is it from this?” “Happen fourteen mile o’er th’ hills; and a rough
            road,” he answered. A sudden impulse seized me to visit Thrushcross Grange. It was
            scarcely noon, and I conceived that I might as well pass the night under my own roof as
            in an inn. Besides, I could spare a day easily to arrange matters with my landlord, and
            thus save myself the trouble of invading the neighbourhood again. Having rested awhile,
            I directed my servant to inquire the way to the village; and, with great fatigue to our
            beasts, we managed the distance in some three hours. I left him there, and proceeded
            down the valley alone. The grey church looked greyer, and the lonely churchyard
            lonelier. I distinguished a moor-sheep cropping the short turf on the graves. It was
            sweet, warm weather—too warm for travelling; but the heat did not hinder me from
            enjoying the delightful scenery above and below: had I seen it nearer August, I’m sure
            it would have tempted me to waste a month among its solitudes. In winter nothing more
            dreary, in summer nothing more divine, than those glens shut in by hills, and those
            bluff, bold swells of heath. I reached the Grange before sunset, and knocked for
            admittance; but the family had retreated into the back premises, I judged, by one thin,
            blue wreath, curling from the kitchen chimney, and they did not hear. I rode into the
            court. Under the porch, a girl of nine or ten sat knitting, and an old woman reclined on
            the housesteps, smoking a meditative pipe. “Is Mrs. Dean within?” I demanded of the
            dame. “Mistress Dean? Nay!” she answered, “she doesn’t bide here: shoo’s up at th’
            Heights.” </p>
         <p>  “Are you the housekeeper, then?” I continued. “Eea, Aw keep th’ hause,” she
            replied. “Well, I’m Mr. Lockwood, the master. Are there any rooms to lodge me in, I
            wonder? I wish to stay all night.” “T’ maister!” she cried in astonishment. “Whet,
            whoiver knew yah wur coming? Yah sud ha’ send word. They’s nowt norther dry nor mensful
            abaht t’ place: nowt there isn’t!” She threw down her pipe and bustled in, the girl
            followed, and I entered too; soon perceiving that her report was true, and, moreover,
            that I had almost upset her wits by my unwelcome apparition, I bade her be composed. I
            would go out for a walk; and, meantime she must try to prepare a corner of a
            sitting-room for me to sup in, and a bedroom to sleep in. No sweeping and dusting, only
            good fire and dry sheets were necessary. She seemed willing to do her best; though she
            thrust the hearth-brush into the grates in mistake for the poker, and malappropriated
            several other articles of her craft: but I retired, confiding in her energy for a
            resting-place against my return. Wuthering Heights was the goal of my proposed
            excursion. An after-thought brought me back, when I had quitted the court. “All well at
            the Heights?” I inquired of the woman. “Eea, f’r owt ee knaw!” she answered, skurrying
            away with a pan of hot cinders. I would have asked why Mrs. Dean had deserted the
            Grange, but it was impossible to delay her at such a crisis, so I turned away and made
            my exit, rambling leisurely along, with the glow of a sinking sun behind, and the mild
            glory of a rising moon in front—one fading, and the other brightening—as I quitted the
            park, and climbed the stony by-road branching off to Mr. Heathcliff’s dwelling. Before I
            arrived in sight of it, all that remained of day was a beamless amber light along the
            west: but I could see every pebble on the path, and every blade of grass, by that
            splendid moon. I had neither to climb the gate nor to knock—it yielded to my hand. That
            is an improvement, I thought. And I noticed another, by the aid of my nostrils; a
            fragrance of stocks and wallflowers wafted on the air from amongst the homely
            fruit-trees. Both doors and lattices were open; and yet, as is usually the case in a
            coal-district, a fine red fire illumined the chimney: the comfort which the eye derives
            from it renders the extra heat endurable. But the house of Wuthering Heights is so large
            that the inmates have plenty of space for withdrawing out of its influence; and
            accordingly what inmates there were had stationed themselves not far from one of the
            windows. I could both see them and hear them talk before I entered, and looked and
            listened in consequence; being moved thereto by a mingled sense of curiosity and envy,
            that grew as I lingered. </p>
         <p>    “Con-trary!” said a voice as sweet as a silver bell. “That for
            the third time, you dunce! I’m not going to tell you again. Recollect, or I’ll pull your
            hair!” “Contrary, then,” answered another, in deep but softened tones. “And now, kiss
            me, for minding so well.” “No, read it over first correctly, without a single mistake.”
            The male speaker began to read: he was a young man, respectably dressed and seated at a
            table, having a book before him. His handsome features glowed with pleasure, and his
            eyes kept impatiently wandering from the page to a small white hand over his shoulder,
            which recalled him by a smart slap on the cheek, whenever its owner detected such signs
            of inattention. Its owner stood behind; her light, shining ringlets blending, at
            intervals, with his brown locks, as she bent to superintend his studies; and her face—it
            was lucky he could not see her face, or he would never have been so steady. I could; and
            I bit my lip in spite, at having thrown away the chance I might have had of doing
            something besides staring at its smiting beauty. The task was done, not free from
            further blunders; but the pupil claimed a reward, and received at least five kisses;
            which, however, he generously returned. Then they came to the door, and from their
            conversation I judged they were about to issue out and have a walk on the moors. I
            supposed I should be condemned in Hareton Earnshaw’s heart, if not by his mouth, to the
            lowest pit in the infernal regions if I showed my unfortunate person in his
            neighbourhood then; and feeling very mean and malignant, I skulked round to seek refuge
            in the kitchen. There was unobstructed admittance on that side also; and at the door sat
            my old friend Nelly Dean, sewing and singing a song; which was often interrupted from
            within by harsh words of scorn and intolerance, uttered in far from musical accents.
            “I’d rayther, by th’ haulf, hev’ ’em swearing i’ my lugs fro’h morn to neeght, nor
            hearken ye hahsiver!” said the tenant of the kitchen, in answer to an unheard speech of
            Nelly’s. “It’s a blazing shame, that I cannot oppen t’ blessed Book, but yah set up them
            glories to sattan, and all t’ flaysome wickednesses that iver were born into th’ warld!
            Oh! ye’re a raight nowt; and shoo’s another; and that poor lad ’ll be lost atween ye.
            Poor lad!” he added, with a groan; “he’s witched: I’m sartin on’t. Oh, Lord, judge ’em,
            for there’s norther law nor justice among wer rullers!” “No! or we should be sitting in
            flaming fagots, I suppose,” retorted the singer. “But wisht, old man, and read your
            Bible like a Christian, and never mind me. This is ‘Fairy Annie’s Wedding’—a bonny
            tune—it goes to a dance.” </p>
         <p>    Mrs. Dean was about to recommence, when I advanced; and
            recognising me directly, she jumped to her feet, crying—“Why, bless you, Mr. Lockwood!
            How could you think of returning in this way? All’s shut up at Thrushcross Grange. You
            should have given us notice!” “I’ve arranged to be accommodated there, for as long as I
            shall stay,” I answered. “I depart again to-morrow. And how are you transplanted here,
            Mrs. Dean? tell me that.” “Zillah left, and Mr. Heathcliff wished me to come, soon after
            you went to London, and stay till you returned. But, step in, pray! Have you walked from
            Gimmerton this evening?” “From the Grange,” I replied; “and while they make me lodging
            room there, I want to finish my business with your master; because I don’t think of
            having another opportunity in a hurry.” “What business, sir?” said Nelly, conducting me
            into the house. “He’s gone out at present, and won’t return soon.” “About the rent,” I
            answered. “Oh! then it is with Mrs. Heathcliff you must settle,” she observed; “or
            rather with me. She has not learnt to manage her affairs yet, and I act for her: there’s
            nobody else.” I looked surprised. “Ah! you have not heard of Heathcliff’s death, I see,”
            she continued. “Heathcliff dead!” I exclaimed, astonished. “How long ago?” “Three months
            since: but sit down, and let me take your hat, and I’ll tell you all about it. Stop, you
            have had nothing to eat, have you?” “I want nothing: I have ordered supper at home. You
            sit down too. I never dreamt of his dying! Let me hear how it came to pass. You say you
            don’t expect them back for some time—the young people?” “No—I have to scold them every
            evening for their late rambles: but they don’t care for me. At least, have a drink of
            our old ale; it will do you good: you seem weary.” She hastened to fetch it before I
            could refuse, and I heard Joseph asking whether “it warn’t a crying scandal that she
            should have followers at her time of life? And then, to get them jocks out o’ t’
            maister’s cellar! He fair shaamed to ’bide still and see it.” She did not stay to
            retaliate, but re-entered in a minute, bearing a reaming silver pint, whose contents I
            lauded with becoming earnestness. And afterwards she furnished me with the sequel of
            Heathcliff’s history. He had a “queer” end, as she expressed it. * * * * * </p>
         <p>  I was
            summoned to Wuthering Heights, within a fortnight of your leaving us, she said; and I
            obeyed joyfully, for Catherine’s sake. My first interview with her grieved and shocked
            me: she had altered so much since our separation. Mr. Heathcliff did not explain his
            reasons for taking a new mind about my coming here; he only told me he wanted me, and he
            was tired of seeing Catherine: I must make the little parlour my sitting-room, and keep
            her with me. It was enough if he were obliged to see her once or twice a day. She seemed
            pleased at this arrangement; and, by degrees, I smuggled over a great number of books,
            and other articles, that had formed her amusement at the Grange; and flattered myself we
            should get on in tolerable comfort. The delusion did not last long. Catherine, contented
            at first, in a brief space grew irritable and restless. For one thing, she was forbidden
            to move out of the garden, and it fretted her sadly to be confined to its narrow bounds
            as spring drew on; for another, in following the house, I was forced to quit her
            frequently, and she complained of loneliness: she preferred quarrelling with Joseph in
            the kitchen to sitting at peace in her solitude. I did not mind their skirmishes: but
            Hareton was often obliged to seek the kitchen also, when the master wanted to have the
            house to himself; and though in the beginning she either left it at his approach, or
            quietly joined in my occupations, and shunned remarking or addressing him—and though he
            was always as sullen and silent as possible—after a while, she changed her behaviour,
            and became incapable of letting him alone: talking at him; commenting on his stupidity
            and idleness; expressing her wonder how he could endure the life he lived—how he could
            sit a whole evening staring into the fire, and dozing. </p>
         <p>    “He’s just like a dog, is he not,
            Ellen?” she once observed, “or a cart-horse? He does his work, eats his food, and sleeps
            eternally! What a blank, dreary mind he must have! Do you ever dream, Hareton? And, if
            you do, what is it about? But you can’t speak to me!” Then she looked at him; but he
            would neither open his mouth nor look again. “He’s, perhaps, dreaming now,” she
            continued. “He twitched his shoulder as Juno twitches hers. Ask him, Ellen.” “Mr.
            Hareton will ask the master to send you upstairs, if you don’t behave!” I said. He had
            not only twitched his shoulder but clenched his fist, as if tempted to use it. “I know
            why Hareton never speaks, when I am in the kitchen,” she exclaimed, on another occasion.
            “He is afraid I shall laugh at him. Ellen, what do you think? He began to teach himself
            to read once; and, because I laughed, he burned his books, and dropped it: was he not a
            fool?” “Were not you naughty?” I said; “answer me that.” “Perhaps I was,” she went on;
            “but I did not expect him to be so silly. Hareton, if I gave you a book, would you take
            it now? I’ll try!” She placed one she had been perusing on his hand; he flung it off,
            and muttered, if she did not give over, he would break her neck. “Well, I shall put it
            here,” she said, “in the table-drawer; and I’m going to bed.” Then she whispered me to
            watch whether he touched it, and departed. But he would not come near it; and so I
            informed her in the morning, to her great disappointment. </p>
         <p>     I saw she was sorry for his
            persevering sulkiness and indolence: her conscience reproved her for frightening him off
            improving himself: she had done it effectually. But her ingenuity was at work to remedy
            the injury: while I ironed, or pursued other such stationary employments as I could not
            well do in the parlour, she would bring some pleasant volume and read it aloud to me.
            When Hareton was there, she generally paused in an interesting part, and left the book
            lying about: that she did repeatedly; but he was as obstinate as a mule, and, instead of
            snatching at her bait, in wet weather he took to smoking with Joseph; and they sat like
            automatons, one on each side of the fire, the elder happily too deaf to understand her
            wicked nonsense, as he would have called it, the younger doing his best to seem to
            disregard it. On fine evenings the latter followed his shooting expeditions, and
            Catherine yawned and sighed, and teased me to talk to her, and ran off into the court or
            garden the moment I began; and, as a last resource, cried, and said she was tired of
            living: her life was useless. Mr. Heathcliff, who grew more and more disinclined to
            society, had almost banished Earnshaw from his apartment. Owing to an accident at the
            commencement of March, he became for some days a fixture in the kitchen. His gun burst
            while out on the hills by himself; a splinter cut his arm, and he lost a good deal of
            blood before he could reach home. The consequence was that, perforce, he was condemned
            to the fireside and tranquillity, till he made it up again. </p>
         <p>   It suited Catherine to have
            him there: at any rate, it made her hate her room upstairs more than ever: and she would
            compel me to find out business below, that she might accompany me. On Easter Monday,
            Joseph went to Gimmerton fair with some cattle; and, in the afternoon, I was busy
            getting up linen in the kitchen. Earnshaw sat, morose as usual, at the chimney corner,
            and my little mistress was beguiling an idle hour with drawing pictures on the
            window-panes, varying her amusement by smothered bursts of songs, and whispered
            ejaculations, and quick glances of annoyance and impatience in the direction of her
            cousin, who steadfastly smoked, and looked into the grate. At a notice that I could do
            with her no longer intercepting my light, she removed to the hearthstone. I bestowed
            little attention on her proceedings, but, presently, I heard her begin—“I’ve found out,
            Hareton, that I want—that I’m glad—that I should like you to be my cousin now, if you
            had not grown so cross to me, and so rough.” Hareton returned no answer. “Hareton,
            Hareton, Hareton! do you hear?” she continued. “Get off wi’ ye!” he growled, with
            uncompromising gruffness. “Let me take that pipe,” she said, cautiously advancing her
            hand and abstracting it from his mouth. Before he could attempt to recover it, it was
            broken, and behind the fire. He swore at her and seized another. “Stop,” she cried, “you
            must listen to me first; and I can’t speak while those clouds are floating in my face.”
            “Will you go to the devil!” he exclaimed, ferociously, “and let me be!”</p>
         <p>     “No,” she
            persisted, “I won’t: I can’t tell what to do to make you talk to me; and you are
            determined not to understand. When I call you stupid, I don’t mean anything: I don’t
            mean that I despise you. Come, you shall take notice of me, Hareton: you are my cousin,
            and you shall own me.” “I shall have naught to do wi’ you and your mucky pride, and your
            damned mocking tricks!” he answered. “I’ll go to hell, body and soul, before I look
            sideways after you again. Side out o’ t’ gate, now, this minute!” Catherine frowned, and
            retreated to the window-seat chewing her lip, and endeavouring, by humming an eccentric
            tune, to conceal a growing tendency to sob. “You should be friends with your cousin, Mr.
            Hareton,” I interrupted, “since she repents of her sauciness. It would do you a great
            deal of good: it would make you another man to have her for a companion.” “A companion!”
            he cried; “when she hates me, and does not think me fit to wipe her shoon! Nay, if it
            made me a king, I’d not be scorned for seeking her good-will any more.” “It is not I who
            hate you, it is you who hate me!” wept Cathy, no longer disguising her trouble. “You
            hate me as much as Mr. Heathcliff does, and more.” “You’re a damned liar,” began
            Earnshaw: “why have I made him angry, by taking your part, then, a hundred times? and
            that when you sneered at and despised me, and—Go on plaguing me, and I’ll step in
            yonder, and say you worried me out of the kitchen!” “I didn’t know you took my part,”
            she answered, drying her eyes; “and I was miserable and bitter at everybody; but now I
            thank you, and beg you to forgive me: what can I do besides?” She returned to the
            hearth, and frankly extended her hand. He blackened and scowled like a thunder-cloud,
            and kept his fists resolutely clenched, and his gaze fixed on the ground. Catherine, by
            instinct, must have divined it was obdurate perversity, and not dislike, that prompted
            this dogged conduct; for, after remaining an instant undecided, she stooped and
            impressed on his cheek a gentle kiss. The little rogue thought I had not seen her, and,
            drawing back, she took her former station by the window, quite demurely. I shook my head
            reprovingly, and then she blushed and whispered—“Well! what should I have done, Ellen?
            He wouldn’t shake hands, and he wouldn’t look: I must show him some way that I like
            him—that I want to be friends.” Whether the kiss convinced Hareton, I cannot tell: he
            was very careful, for some minutes, that his face should not be seen, and when he did
            raise it, he was sadly puzzled where to turn his eyes. Catherine employed herself in
            wrapping a handsome book neatly in white paper, and having tied it with a bit of ribbon,
            and addressed it to “Mr. Hareton Earnshaw,” she desired me to be her ambassadress, and
            convey the present to its destined recipient. “And tell him, if he’ll take it, I’ll come
            and teach him to read it right,” she said; “and, if he refuse it, I’ll go upstairs, and
            never tease him again.” I carried it, and repeated the message; anxiously watched by my
            employer. Hareton would not open his fingers, so I laid it on his knee. He did not
            strike it off, either. I returned to my work. </p>
         <p>   Catherine leaned her head and arms on the
            table, till she heard the slight rustle of the covering being removed; then she stole
            away, and quietly seated herself beside her cousin. He trembled, and his face glowed:
            all his rudeness and all his surly harshness had deserted him: he could not summon
            courage, at first, to utter a syllable in reply to her questioning look, and her
            murmured petition. “Say you forgive me, Hareton, do. You can make me so happy by
            speaking that little word.” He muttered something inaudible. “And you’ll be my friend?”
            added Catherine, interrogatively. “Nay, you’ll be ashamed of me every day of your life,”
            he answered; “and the more ashamed, the more you know me; and I cannot bide it.” “So you
            won’t be my friend?” she said, smiling as sweet as honey, and creeping close up. I
            overheard no further distinguishable talk, but, on looking round again, I perceived two
            such radiant countenances bent over the page of the accepted book, that I did not doubt
            the treaty had been ratified on both sides; and the enemies were, thenceforth, sworn
            allies. The work they studied was full of costly pictures; and those and their position
            had charm enough to keep them unmoved till Joseph came home. He, poor man, was perfectly
            aghast at the spectacle of Catherine seated on the same bench with Hareton Earnshaw,
            leaning her hand on his shoulder; and confounded at his favourite’s endurance of her
            proximity: it affected him too deeply to allow an observation on the subject that night.
            His emotion was only revealed by the immense sighs he drew, as he solemnly spread his
            large Bible on the table, and overlaid it with dirty bank-notes from his pocket-book,
            the produce of the day’s transactions. At length he summoned Hareton from his seat.
            “Tak’ these in to t’ maister, lad,” he said, “and bide there. I’s gang up to my own
            rahm. This hoile’s neither mensful nor seemly for us: we mun side out and seearch
            another.” </p>
         <p>   “Come, Catherine,” I said, “we must ‘side out’ too: I’ve done my ironing. Are
            you ready to go?” “It is not eight o’clock!” she answered, rising unwillingly. “Hareton,
            I’ll leave this book upon the chimney-piece, and I’ll bring some more to-morrow.” “Ony
            books that yah leave, I shall tak’ into th’ hahse,” said Joseph, “and it’ll be mitch if
            yah find ’em agean; soa, yah may plase yerseln!” Cathy threatened that his library
            should pay for hers; and, smiling as she passed Hareton, went singing upstairs: lighter
            of heart, I venture to say, than ever she had been under that roof before; except,
            perhaps, during her earliest visits to Linton. The intimacy thus commenced grew rapidly;
            though it encountered temporary interruptions. Earnshaw was not to be civilized with a
            wish, and my young lady was no philosopher, and no paragon of patience; but both their
            minds tending to the same point—one loving and desiring to esteem, and the other loving
            and desiring to be esteemed—they contrived in the end to reach it. You see, Mr.
            Lockwood, it was easy enough to win Mrs. Heathcliff’s heart. But now, I’m glad you did
            not try. The crown of all my wishes will be the union of those two. I shall envy no one
            on their wedding day: there won’t be a happier woman than myself in England! </p>
         <p>Chapter 33</p>
         <p> On the morrow of that Monday, Earnshaw being still unable to follow his ordinary
            employments, and therefore remaining about the house, I speedily found it would be
            impracticable to retain my charge beside me, as heretofore. She got downstairs before
            me, and out into the garden, where she had seen her cousin performing some easy work;
            and when I went to bid them come to breakfast, I saw she had persuaded him to clear a
            large space of ground from currant and gooseberry bushes, and they were busy planning
            together an importation of plants from the Grange. I was terrified at the devastation
            which had been accomplished in a brief half-hour; the black-currant trees were the apple
            of Joseph’s eye, and she had just fixed her choice of a flower-bed in the midst of them.
            “There! That will be all shown to the master,” I exclaimed, “the minute it is
            discovered. And what excuse have you to offer for taking such liberties with the garden?
            We shall have a fine explosion on the head of it: see if we don’t! Mr. Hareton, I wonder
            you should have no more wit than to go and make that mess at her bidding!” “I’d
            forgotten they were Joseph’s,” answered Earnshaw, rather puzzled; “but I’ll tell him I
            did it.” We always ate our meals with Mr. Heathcliff. I held the mistress’s post in
            making tea and carving; so I was indispensable at table. Catherine usually sat by me,
            but to-day she stole nearer to Hareton; and I presently saw she would have no more
            discretion in her friendship than she had in her hostility. “Now, mind you don’t talk
            with and notice your cousin too much,” were my whispered instructions as we entered the
            room. “It will certainly annoy Mr. Heathcliff, and he’ll be mad at you both.” “I’m not
            going to,” she answered. The minute after, she had sidled to him, and was sticking
            primroses in his plate of porridge.</p>
         <p>  He dared not speak to her there: he dared hardly
            look; and yet she went on teasing, till he was twice on the point of being provoked to
            laugh. I frowned, and then she glanced towards the master: whose mind was occupied on
            other subjects than his company, as his countenance evinced; and she grew serious for an
            instant, scrutinizing him with deep gravity. Afterwards she turned, and recommenced her
            nonsense; at last, Hareton uttered a smothered laugh. Mr. Heathcliff started; his eye
            rapidly surveyed our faces. Catherine met it with her accustomed look of nervousness and
            yet defiance, which he abhorred. “It is well you are out of my reach,” he exclaimed.
            “What fiend possesses you to stare back at me, continually, with those infernal eyes?
            Down with them! and don’t remind me of your existence again. I thought I had cured you
            of laughing.” “It was me,” muttered Hareton. “What do you say?” demanded the master.
            Hareton looked at his plate, and did not repeat the confession. Mr. Heathcliff looked at
            him a bit, and then silently resumed his breakfast and his interrupted musing. We had
            nearly finished, and the two young people prudently shifted wider asunder, so I
            anticipated no further disturbance during that sitting: when Joseph appeared at the
            door, revealing by his quivering lip and furious eyes that the outrage committed on his
            precious shrubs was detected. He must have seen Cathy and her cousin about the spot
            before he examined it, for while his jaws worked like those of a cow chewing its cud,
            and rendered his speech difficult to understand, he began:— “I mun hev’ my wage, and I
            mun goa! I hed aimed to dee wheare I’d sarved fur sixty year; and I thowt I’d lug my
            books up into t’ garret, and all my bits o’ stuff, and they sud hev’ t’ kitchen to
            theirseln; for t’ sake o’ quietness. It wur hard to gie up my awn hearthstun, but I
            thowt I could do that! But nah, shoo’s taan my garden fro’ me, and by th’ heart,
            maister, I cannot stand it! Yah may bend to th’ yoak an ye will—I noan used to ’t, and
            an old man doesn’t sooin get used to new barthens. I’d rayther arn my bite an’ my sup
            wi’ a hammer in th’ road!” </p>
         <p>   “Now, now, idiot!” interrupted Heathcliff, “cut it short!
            What’s your grievance? I’ll interfere in no quarrels between you and Nelly. She may
            thrust you into the coal-hole for anything I care.” “It’s noan Nelly!” answered Joseph.
            “I sudn’t shift for Nelly—nasty ill nowt as shoo is. Thank God! shoo cannot stale t’
            sowl o’ nob’dy! Shoo wer niver soa handsome, but what a body mud look at her ’bout
            winking. It’s yon flaysome, graceless quean, that’s witched our lad, wi’ her bold een
            and her forrard ways—till—Nay! it fair brusts my heart! He’s forgotten all I’ve done for
            him, and made on him, and goan and riven up a whole row o’ t’ grandest currant-trees i’
            t’ garden!” and here he lamented outright; unmanned by a sense of his bitter injuries,
            and Earnshaw’s ingratitude and dangerous condition. “Is the fool drunk?” asked Mr.
            Heathcliff. “Hareton, is it you he’s finding fault with?” “I’ve pulled up two or three
            bushes,” replied the young man; “but I’m going to set ’em again.” “And why have you
            pulled them up?” said the master. Catherine wisely put in her tongue. “We wanted to
            plant some flowers there,” she cried. “I’m the only person to blame, for I wished him to
            do it.” “And who the devil gave you leave to touch a stick about the place?” demanded
            her father-in-law, much surprised. “And who ordered you to obey her?” he added, turning
            to Hareton. The latter was speechless; his cousin replied—“You shouldn’t grudge a few
            yards of earth for me to ornament, when you have taken all my land!” “Your land,
            insolent slut! You never had any,” said Heathcliff. “And my money,” she continued;
            returning his angry glare, and meantime biting a piece of crust, the remnant of her
            breakfast. “Silence!” he exclaimed. “Get done, and begone!” “And Hareton’s land, and his
            money,” pursued the reckless thing. “Hareton and I are friends now; and I shall tell him
            all about you!” The master seemed confounded a moment: he grew pale, and rose up, eyeing
            her all the while, with an expression of mortal hate. “If you strike me, Hareton will
            strike you,” she said; “so you may as well sit down.” “If Hareton does not turn you out
            of the room, I’ll strike him to hell,” thundered Heathcliff. “Damnable witch! dare you
            pretend to rouse him against me? Off with her! Do you hear? Fling her into the kitchen!
            I’ll kill her, Ellen Dean, if you let her come into my sight again!” Hareton tried,
            under his breath, to persuade her to go. “Drag her away!” he cried, savagely. “Are you
            staying to talk?” </p>
         <p>   And he approached to execute his own command. “He’ll not obey you,
            wicked man, any more,” said Catherine; “and he’ll soon detest you as much as I do.”
            “Wisht! wisht!” muttered the young man, reproachfully; “I will not hear you speak so to
            him. Have done.” “But you won’t let him strike me?” she cried. “Come, then,” he
            whispered earnestly. It was too late: Heathcliff had caught hold of her. “Now, you go!”
            he said to Earnshaw. “Accursed witch! this time she has provoked me when I could not
            bear it; and I’ll make her repent it for ever!” He had his hand in her hair; Hareton
            attempted to release her locks, entreating him not to hurt her that once. Heathcliff’s
            <tc:racedesc type="implied">black eyes</tc:racedesc> flashed; he seemed ready to tear
            Catherine in pieces, and I was just worked up to risk coming to the rescue, when of a
            sudden his fingers relaxed; he shifted his grasp from her head to her arm, and gazed
            intently in her face. Then he drew his hand over his eyes, stood a moment to collect
            himself apparently, and turning anew to Catherine, said, with assumed calmness—“You must
            learn to avoid putting me in a passion, or I shall really murder you some time! Go with
            Mrs. Dean, and keep with her; and confine your insolence to her ears. As to Hareton
            Earnshaw, if I see him listen to you, I’ll send him seeking his bread where he can get
            it! Your love will make him an outcast and a beggar. Nelly, take her; and leave me, all
            of you! Leave me!” I led my young lady out: she was too glad of her escape to resist;
            the other followed, and Mr. Heathcliff had the room to himself till dinner. I had
            counselled Catherine to dine upstairs; but, as soon as he perceived her vacant seat, he
            sent me to call her. He spoke to none of us, ate very little, and went out directly
            afterwards, intimating that he should not return before evening. The two new friends
            established themselves in the house during his absence; where I heard Hareton sternly
            check his cousin, on her offering a revelation of her father-in-law’s conduct to his
            father. He said he wouldn’t suffer a word to be uttered in his disparagement: if he were
            the devil, it didn’t signify; he would stand by him; and he’d rather she would abuse
            himself, as she used to, than begin on Mr. Heathcliff. Catherine was waxing cross at
            this; but he found means to make her hold her tongue, by asking how she would like him
            to speak ill of her father? </p>
         <p>   Then she comprehended that Earnshaw took the master’s
            reputation home to himself; and was attached by ties stronger than reason could
            break—chains, forged by habit, which it would be cruel to attempt to loosen. She showed
            a good heart, thenceforth, in avoiding both complaints and expressions of antipathy
            concerning Heathcliff; and confessed to me her sorrow that she had endeavoured to raise
            a bad spirit between him and Hareton: indeed, I don’t believe she has ever breathed a
            syllable, in the latter’s hearing, against her oppressor since. When this slight
            disagreement was over, they were friends again, and as busy as possible in their several
            occupations of pupil and teacher. I came in to sit with them, after I had done my work;
            and I felt so soothed and comforted to watch them, that I did not notice how time got
            on. You know, they both appeared in a measure my children: I had long been proud of one;
            and now, I was sure, the other would be a source of equal satisfaction. His honest,
            warm, and intelligent nature shook off rapidly the clouds of ignorance and degradation
            in which it had been bred; and Catherine’s sincere commendations acted as a spur to his
            industry. His brightening mind brightened his features, and added spirit and nobility to
            their aspect: I could hardly fancy it the same individual I had beheld on the day I
            discovered my little lady at Wuthering Heights, after her expedition to the Crags. While
            I admired and they laboured, dusk drew on, and with it returned the master. He came upon
            us quite unexpectedly, entering by the front way, and had a full view of the whole
            three, ere we could raise our heads to glance at him. Well, I reflected, there was never
            a pleasanter, or more harmless sight; and it will be a burning shame to scold them. The
            red fire-light glowed on their two bonny heads, and revealed their faces animated with
            the eager interest of children; for, though he was twenty-three and she eighteen, each
            had so much of novelty to feel and learn, that neither experienced nor evinced the
            sentiments of sober disenchanted maturity. </p>
         <p>   They lifted their eyes together, to encounter
            Mr. Heathcliff: perhaps you have never remarked that their eyes are precisely similar,
            and they are those of Catherine Earnshaw. The present Catherine has no other likeness to
            her, except a breadth of forehead, and a certain arch of the nostril that makes her
            appear rather haughty, whether she will or not. With Hareton the resemblance is carried
            farther: it is singular at all times, then it was particularly striking; because his
            senses were alert, and his mental faculties wakened to unwonted activity. I suppose this
            resemblance disarmed Mr. Heathcliff: he walked to the hearth in evident agitation; but
            it quickly subsided as he looked at the young man: or, I should say, altered its
            character; for it was there yet. He took the book from his hand, and glanced at the open
            page, then returned it without any observation; merely signing Catherine away: her
            companion lingered very little behind her, and I was about to depart also, but he bid me
            sit still. “It is a poor conclusion, is it not?” he observed, having brooded a while on
            the scene he had just witnessed: “an absurd termination to my violent exertions? I get
            levers and mattocks to demolish the two houses, and train myself to be capable of
            working like Hercules, and when everything is ready and in my power, I find the will to
            lift a slate off either roof has vanished! My old enemies have not beaten me; now would
            be the precise time to revenge myself on their representatives: I could do it; and none
            could hinder me. But where is the use? I don’t care for striking: I can’t take the
            trouble to raise my hand! That sounds as if I had been labouring the whole time only to
            exhibit a fine trait of magnanimity. It is far from being the case: I have lost the
            faculty of enjoying their destruction, and I am too idle to destroy for nothing. “Nelly,
            there is a strange change approaching; I’m in its shadow at present. I take so little
            interest in my daily life that I hardly remember to eat and drink. </p>
         <p>   Those two who have
            left the room are the only objects which retain a distinct material appearance to me;
            and that appearance causes me pain, amounting to agony. About her I won’t speak; and I
            don’t desire to think; but I earnestly wish she were invisible: her presence invokes
            only maddening sensations. He moves me differently: and yet if I could do it without
            seeming insane, I’d never see him again! You’ll perhaps think me rather inclined to
            become so,” he added, making an effort to smile, “if I try to describe the thousand
            forms of past associations and ideas he awakens or embodies. But you’ll not talk of what
            I tell you; and my mind is so eternally secluded in itself, it is tempting at last to
            turn it out to another. “Five minutes ago Hareton seemed a personification of my youth,
            not a human being; I felt to him in such a variety of ways, that it would have been
            impossible to have accosted him rationally. In the first place, his startling likeness
            to Catherine connected him fearfully with her. That, however, which you may suppose the
            most potent to arrest my imagination, is actually the least: for what is not connected
            with her to me? and what does not recall her? I cannot look down to this floor, but her
            features are shaped in the flags! In every cloud, in every tree—filling the air at
            night, and caught by glimpses in every object by day—I am surrounded with her image! The
            most ordinary faces of men and women—my own features—mock me with a resemblance. The
            entire world is a dreadful collection of memoranda that she did exist, and that I have
            lost her! </p>
         <p>     Well, Hareton’s aspect was the ghost of my immortal love; of my wild
            endeavours to hold my right; my degradation, my pride, my happiness, and my anguish—
            “But it is frenzy to repeat these thoughts to you: only it will let you know why, with a
            reluctance to be always alone, his society is no benefit; rather an aggravation of the
            constant torment I suffer: and it partly contributes to render me regardless how he and
            his cousin go on together. I can give them no attention any more.” “But what do you mean
            by a change, Mr. Heathcliff?” I said, alarmed at his manner: though he was neither in
            danger of losing his senses, nor dying, according to my judgment: he was quite strong
            and healthy; and, as to his reason, from childhood he had a delight in dwelling on dark
            things, and entertaining odd fancies. He might have had a <tc:racedesc type="implied"
               >monomania</tc:racedesc> on the subject of his departed idol; but on every other
            point his wits were as sound as mine. “I shall not know that till it comes,” he said;
            “I’m only half conscious of it now.” “You have no feeling of illness, have you?” I
            asked. “No, Nelly, I have not,” he answered. “Then you are not afraid of death?” I
            pursued. “Afraid? No!” he replied. “I have neither a fear, nor a presentiment, nor a
            hope of death. Why should I? With my hard constitution and temperate mode of living, and
            unperilous occupations, I ought to, and probably shall, remain above ground till there
            is scarcely a black hair on my head. And yet I cannot continue in this condition! I have
            to remind myself to breathe—almost to remind my heart to beat! And it is like bending
            back a stiff spring: it is by compulsion that I do the slightest act not prompted by one
            thought; and by compulsion that I notice anything alive or dead, which is not associated
            with one universal idea. I have a single wish, and my whole being and faculties are
            yearning to attain it. They have yearned towards it so long, and so unwaveringly, that
            I’m convinced it will be reached—and soon—because it has devoured my existence: I am
            swallowed up in the anticipation of its fulfilment. My confessions have not relieved me;
            but they may account for some otherwise unaccountable phases of humour which I show. O
            God! It is a long fight; I wish it were over!” He began to pace the room, muttering
            terrible things to himself, till I was inclined to believe, as he said Joseph did, that
            conscience had turned his heart to an earthly hell. </p>
         <p>   I wondered greatly how it would end.
            Though he seldom before had revealed this state of mind, even by looks, it was his
            habitual mood, I had no doubt: he asserted it himself; but not a soul, from his general
            bearing, would have conjectured the fact. You did not when you saw him, Mr. Lockwood:
            and at the period of which I speak, he was just the same as then; only fonder of
            continued solitude, and perhaps still more laconic in company. </p>
         <p>Chapter 34</p>
         <p> For some days after that evening, Mr. Heathcliff shunned meeting us at meals; yet he
            would not consent formally to exclude Hareton and Cathy. He had an aversion to yielding
            so completely to his feelings, choosing rather to absent himself; and eating once in
            twenty-four hours seemed sufficient sustenance for him. One night, after the family were
            in bed, I heard him go downstairs, and out at the front door. I did not hear him
            re-enter, and in the morning I found he was still away. We were in April then: the
            weather was sweet and warm, the grass as green as showers and sun could make it, and the
            two dwarf apple-trees near the southern wall in full bloom. After breakfast, Catherine
            insisted on my bringing a chair and sitting with my work under the fir-trees at the end
            of the house; and she beguiled Hareton, who had perfectly recovered from his accident,
            to dig and arrange her little garden, which was shifted to that corner by the influence
            of Joseph’s complaints. I was comfortably revelling in the spring fragrance around, and
            the beautiful soft blue overhead, when my young lady, who had run down near the gate to
            procure some primrose roots for a border, returned only half laden, and informed us that
            Mr. Heathcliff was coming in. “And he spoke to me,” she added, with a perplexed
            countenance. “What did he say?” asked Hareton. “He told me to begone as fast as I
            could,” she answered. “But he looked so different from his usual look that I stopped a
            moment to stare at him.” “How?” he inquired. </p>
         <p>  “Why, almost bright and cheerful. No,
            almost nothing—very much excited, and wild, and glad!” she replied. “Night-walking
            amuses him, then,” I remarked, affecting a careless manner: in reality as surprised as
            she was, and anxious to ascertain the truth of her statement; for to see the master
            looking glad would not be an every-day spectacle. I framed an excuse to go in.
            Heathcliff stood at the open door; he was pale, and he trembled: yet, certainly, he had
            a strange joyful glitter in his eyes, that altered the aspect of his whole face. “Will
            you have some breakfast?” I said. “You must be hungry, rambling about all night!” I
            wanted to discover where he had been, but I did not like to ask directly. “No, I’m not
            hungry,” he answered, averting his head, and speaking rather contemptuously, as if he
            guessed I was trying to divine the occasion of his good humour. I felt perplexed: I
            didn’t know whether it were not a proper opportunity to offer a bit of admonition. “I
            don’t think it right to wander out of doors,” I observed, “instead of being in bed: it
            is not wise, at any rate this moist season. I daresay you’ll catch a bad cold, or a
            fever: you have something the matter with you now!” </p>
         <p>  “Nothing but what I can bear,” he
            replied; “and with the greatest pleasure, provided you’ll leave me alone: get in, and
            don’t annoy me.” I obeyed: and, in passing, I noticed he breathed as fast as a cat.
            “Yes!” I reflected to myself, “we shall have a fit of illness. I cannot conceive what he
            has been doing.” That noon he sat down to dinner with us, and received a heaped-up plate
            from my hands, as if he intended to make amends for previous fasting. “I’ve neither cold
            nor fever, Nelly,” he remarked, in allusion to my morning’s speech; “and I’m ready to do
            justice to the food you give me.” He took his knife and fork, and was going to commence
            eating, when the inclination appeared to become suddenly extinct. He laid them on the
            table, looked eagerly towards the window, then rose and went out. We saw him walking to
            and fro in the garden while we concluded our meal, and Earnshaw said he’d go and ask why
            he would not dine: he thought we had grieved him some way. “Well, is he coming?” cried
            Catherine, when her cousin returned. “Nay,” he answered; “but he’s not angry: he seemed
            rarely pleased indeed; only I made him impatient by speaking to him twice; and then he
            bid me be off to you: he wondered how I could want the company of anybody else.” I set
            his plate to keep warm on the fender; and after an hour or two he re-entered, when the
            room was clear, in no degree calmer: the same unnatural—it was unnatural—appearance of
            joy under his black brows; the same bloodless hue, and his teeth visible, now and then,
            in a kind of smile; his frame shivering, not as one shivers with chill or weakness, but
            as a tight-stretched cord vibrates—a strong thrilling, rather than trembling. I will ask
            what is the matter, I thought; or who should? And I exclaimed—“Have you heard any good
            news, Mr. Heathcliff? You look uncommonly animated.” “Where should good news come from
            to me?” he said.</p>
         <p>   “I’m animated with hunger; and, seemingly, I must not eat.” “Your
            dinner is here,” I returned; “why won’t you get it?” “I don’t want it now,” he muttered,
            hastily: “I’ll wait till supper. And, Nelly, once for all, let me beg you to warn
            Hareton and the other away from me. I wish to be troubled by nobody: I wish to have this
            place to myself.” “Is there some new reason for this banishment?” I inquired. “Tell me
            why you are so queer, Mr. Heathcliff? Where were you last night? I’m not putting the
            question through idle curiosity, but—” “You are putting the question through very idle
            curiosity,” he interrupted, with a laugh. “Yet I’ll answer it. Last night I was on the
            threshold of hell. To-day, I am within sight of my heaven. I have my eyes on it: hardly
            three feet to sever me! And now you’d better go! You’ll neither see nor hear anything to
            frighten you, if you refrain from prying.” Having swept the hearth and wiped the table,
            I departed; more perplexed than ever. He did not quit the house again that afternoon,
            and no one intruded on his solitude; till, at eight o’clock, I deemed it proper, though
            unsummoned, to carry a candle and his supper to him. He was leaning against the ledge of
            an open lattice, but not looking out: his face was turned to the interior gloom. The
            fire had smouldered to ashes; the room was filled with the damp, mild air of the cloudy
            evening; and so still, that not only the murmur of the beck down Gimmerton was
            distinguishable, but its ripples and its gurgling over the pebbles, or through the large
            stones which it could not cover. I uttered an ejaculation of discontent at seeing the
            dismal grate, and commenced shutting the casements, one after another, till I came to
            his. </p>
         <p>    “Must I close this?” I asked, in order to rouse him; for he would not stir. The
            light flashed on his features as I spoke. Oh, Mr. Lockwood, I cannot express what a
            terrible start I got by the momentary view! Those <tc:racedesc type="implied">deep black
               eyes</tc:racedesc>! That smile, and ghastly paleness! It appeared to me, not Mr.
            Heathcliff, but a <tc:racedesc type="implied">goblin</tc:racedesc>; and, in my terror, I
            let the candle bend towards the wall, and it left me in darkness. “Yes, close it,” he
            replied, in his familiar voice. “There, that is pure awkwardness! Why did you hold the
            candle horizontally? Be quick, and bring another.” I hurried out in a foolish state of
            dread, and said to Joseph—“The master wishes you to take him a light and rekindle the
            fire.” For I dared not go in myself again just then. Joseph rattled some fire into the
            shovel, and went: but he brought it back immediately, with the supper-tray in his other
            hand, explaining that Mr. Heathcliff was going to bed, and he wanted nothing to eat till
            morning. We heard him mount the stairs directly; he did not proceed to his ordinary
            chamber, but turned into that with the panelled bed: its window, as I mentioned before,
            is wide enough for anybody to get through; and it struck me that he plotted another
            midnight excursion, of which he had rather we had no suspicion. “Is he a <tc:racedesc
               type="implied">ghoul or a vampire</tc:racedesc>?” I mused. I had read of such hideous
            incarnate demons. And then I set myself to reflect how I had tended him in infancy, and
            watched him grow to youth, and followed him almost through his whole course; and what
            absurd nonsense it was to yield to that sense of horror. “But where did he come from,
            the little dark thing, harboured by a good man to his bane?” muttered Superstition, as I
            dozed into unconsciousness. </p>
         <p>   And I began, half dreaming, to weary myself with imagining
            some fit parentage for him; and, repeating my waking meditations, I tracked his
            existence over again, with grim variations; at last, picturing his death and funeral: of
            which, all I can remember is, being exceedingly vexed at having the task of dictating an
            inscription for his monument, and consulting the sexton about it; and, as he had no
            surname, and we could not tell his age, we were obliged to content ourselves with the
            single word, “Heathcliff.” That came true: we were. If you enter the kirkyard, you’ll
            read, on his headstone, only that, and the date of his death. Dawn restored me to common
            sense. I rose, and went into the garden, as soon as I could see, to ascertain if there
            were any footmarks under his window. There were none. “He has stayed at home,” I
            thought, “and he’ll be all right to-day.” I prepared breakfast for the household, as was
            my usual custom, but told Hareton and Catherine to get theirs ere the master came down,
            for he lay late. They preferred taking it out of doors, under the trees, and I set a
            little table to accommodate them. On my re-entrance, I found Mr. Heathcliff below. He
            and Joseph were conversing about some farming business; he gave clear, minute directions
            concerning the matter discussed, but he spoke rapidly, and turned his head continually
            aside, and had the same excited expression, even more exaggerated. When Joseph quitted
            the room he took his seat in the place he generally chose, and I put a basin of coffee
            before him. He drew it nearer, and then rested his arms on the table, and looked at the
            opposite wall, as I supposed, surveying one particular portion, up and down, with
            glittering, restless eyes, and with such eager interest that he stopped breathing during
            half a minute together. </p>
         <p>  “Come now,” I exclaimed, pushing some bread against his hand,
            “eat and drink that, while it is hot: it has been waiting near an hour.” He didn’t
            notice me, and yet he smiled. I’d rather have seen him gnash his teeth than smile so.
            “Mr. Heathcliff! master!” I cried, “don’t, for God’s sake, stare as if you saw an
            unearthly vision.” “Don’t, for God’s sake, shout so loud,” he replied. “Turn round, and
            tell me, are we by ourselves?” “Of course,” was my answer; “of course we are.” Still, I
            involuntarily obeyed him, as if I was not quite sure. With a sweep of his hand he
            cleared a vacant space in front among the breakfast things, and leant forward to gaze
            more at his ease. Now, I perceived he was not looking at the wall; for when I regarded
            him alone, it seemed exactly that he gazed at something within two yards’ distance. And
            whatever it was, it communicated, apparently, both pleasure and pain in exquisite
            extremes: at least the anguished, yet raptured, expression of his countenance suggested
            that idea. The fancied object was not fixed, either: his eyes pursued it with unwearied
            diligence, and, even in speaking to me, were never weaned away. I vainly reminded him of
            his protracted abstinence from food: if he stirred to touch anything in compliance with
            my entreaties, if he stretched his hand out to get a piece of bread, his fingers
            clenched before they reached it, and remained on the table, forgetful of their aim. I
            sat, a model of patience, trying to attract his absorbed attention from its engrossing
            speculation; till he grew irritable, and got up, asking why I would not allow him to
            have his own time in taking his meals? and saying that on the next occasion I needn’t
            wait: I might set the things down and go. Having uttered these words he left the house,
            slowly sauntered down the garden path, and disappeared through the gate. The hours crept
            anxiously by: another evening came. I did not retire to rest till late, and when I did,
            I could not sleep. He returned after midnight, and, instead of going to bed, shut
            himself into the room beneath. I listened, and tossed about, and, finally, dressed and
            descended. It was too irksome to lie there, harassing my brain with a hundred idle
            misgivings. </p>
         <p>   I distinguished Mr. Heathcliff’s step, restlessly measuring the floor, and
            he frequently broke the silence by a deep inspiration, resembling a groan. He muttered
            detached words also; the only one I could catch was the name of Catherine, coupled with
            some wild term of endearment or suffering; and spoken as one would speak to a person
            present; low and earnest, and wrung from the depth of his soul. I had not courage to
            walk straight into the apartment; but I desired to divert him from his reverie, and
            therefore fell foul of the kitchen fire, stirred it, and began to scrape the cinders. It
            drew him forth sooner than I expected. He opened the door immediately, and said—“Nelly,
            come here—is it morning? Come in with your light.” “It is striking four,” I answered.
            “You want a candle to take upstairs: you might have lit one at this fire.” “No, I don’t
            wish to go upstairs,” he said. “Come in, and kindle me a fire, and do anything there is
            to do about the room.” “I must blow the coals red first, before I can carry any,” I
            replied, getting a chair and the bellows. He roamed to and fro, meantime, in a state
            approaching distraction; his heavy sighs succeeding each other so thick as to leave no
            space for common breathing between. “When day breaks I’ll send for Green,” he said; “I
            wish to make some legal inquiries of him while I can bestow a thought on those matters,
            and while I can act calmly. I have not written my will yet; and how to leave my property
            I cannot determine. I wish I could annihilate it from the face of the earth.” “I would
            not talk so, Mr. Heathcliff,” I interposed. “Let your will be a while: you’ll be spared
            to repent of your many injustices yet! I never expected that your nerves would be
            disordered: they are, at present, marvellously so, however; and almost entirely through
            your own fault. The way you’ve passed these three last days might knock up a Titan. Do
            take some food, and some repose. You need only look at yourself in a glass to see how
            you require both. Your cheeks are hollow, and your eyes blood-shot, like a person
            starving with hunger and going blind with loss of sleep.” “It is not my fault that I
            cannot eat or rest,” he replied. </p>
         <p>    “I assure you it is through no settled designs. I’ll do
            both, as soon as I possibly can. But you might as well bid a man struggling in the water
            rest within arms’ length of the shore! I must reach it first, and then I’ll rest. Well,
            never mind Mr. Green: as to repenting of my injustices, I’ve done no injustice, and I
            repent of nothing. I’m too happy; and yet I’m not happy enough. My soul’s bliss kills my
            body, but does not satisfy itself.” “Happy, master?” I cried. “Strange happiness! If you
            would hear me without being angry, I might offer some advice that would make you
            happier.” “What is that?” he asked. “Give it.” “You are aware, Mr. Heathcliff,” I said,
            “that from the time you were thirteen years old you have lived a selfish, unchristian
            life; and probably hardly had a Bible in your hands during all that period. You must
            have forgotten the contents of the book, and you may not have space to search it now.
            Could it be hurtful to send for some one—some minister of any denomination, it does not
            matter which—to explain it, and show you how very far you have erred from its precepts;
            and how unfit you will be for its heaven, unless a change takes place before you die?”
            “I’m rather obliged than angry, Nelly,” he said, “for you remind me of the manner in
            which I desire to be buried. It is to be carried to the churchyard in the evening. You
            and Hareton may, if you please, accompany me: and mind, particularly, to notice that the
            sexton obeys my directions concerning the two coffins! No minister need come; nor need
            anything be said over me.—I tell you I have nearly attained my heaven; and that of
            others is altogether unvalued and uncoveted by me.” “And supposing you persevered in
            your obstinate fast, and died by that means, and they refused to bury you in the
            precincts of the kirk?” I said, shocked at his godless indifference. “How would you like
            it?” </p>
         <p>  “They won’t do that,” he replied: “if they did, you must have me removed secretly;
            and if you neglect it you shall prove, practically, that the dead are not annihilated!”
            As soon as he heard the other members of the family stirring he retired to his den, and
            I breathed freer. But in the afternoon, while Joseph and Hareton were at their work, he
            came into the kitchen again, and, with a wild look, bid me come and sit in the house: he
            wanted somebody with him. I declined; telling him plainly that his strange talk and
            manner frightened me, and I had neither the nerve nor the will to be his companion
            alone. “I believe you think me a fiend,” he said, with his dismal laugh: “something too
            horrible to live under a decent roof.” Then turning to Catherine, who was there, and who
            drew behind me at his approach, he added, half sneeringly,—“Will you come, chuck? I’ll
            not hurt you. No! to you I’ve made myself worse than the devil. Well, there is one who
            won’t shrink from my company! By God! she’s relentless. Oh, damn it! It’s unutterably
            too much for flesh and blood to bear—even mine.” He solicited the society of no one
            more. At dusk he went into his chamber. Through the whole night, and far into the
            morning, we heard him groaning and murmuring to himself. Hareton was anxious to enter;
            but I bid him fetch Mr. Kenneth, and he should go in and see him. When he came, and I
            requested admittance and tried to open the door, I found it locked; and Heathcliff bid
            us be damned. He was better, and would be left alone; so the doctor went away. The
            following evening was very wet: indeed, it poured down till day-dawn; and, as I took my
            morning walk round the house, I observed the master’s window swinging open, and the rain
            driving straight in. He cannot be in bed, I thought: those showers would drench him
            through. </p>
         <p>   He must either be up or out. But I’ll make no more ado, I’ll go boldly and
            look. Having succeeded in obtaining entrance with another key, I ran to unclose the
            panels, for the chamber was vacant; quickly pushing them aside, I peeped in. Mr.
            Heathcliff was there—laid on his back. His eyes met mine so keen and fierce, I started;
            and then he seemed to smile. I could not think him dead: but his face and throat were
            washed with rain; the bed-clothes dripped, and he was perfectly still. The lattice,
            flapping to and fro, had grazed one hand that rested on the sill; no blood trickled from
            the broken skin, and when I put my fingers to it, I could doubt no more: he was dead and
            stark! I hasped the window; I combed his black long hair from his forehead; I tried to
            close his eyes: to extinguish, if possible, that frightful, life-like gaze of exultation
            before any one else beheld it. They would not shut: they seemed to sneer at my attempts;
            and his parted lips and sharp white teeth sneered too! Taken with another fit of
            cowardice, I cried out for Joseph. Joseph shuffled up and made a noise, but resolutely
            refused to meddle with him. “Th’ <tc:racedesc type="explicit">divil’s harried off his
               soul</tc:racedesc>,” he cried, “and he may hev’ his carcass into t’ bargin, for aught
            I care! Ech! what a wicked ’un he looks, girning at death!” and the old sinner grinned
            in mockery. </p>
         <p>   I thought he intended to cut a caper round the bed; but suddenly composing
            himself, he fell on his knees, and raised his hands, and returned thanks that the lawful
            master and the ancient stock were restored to their rights. I felt stunned by the awful
            event; and my memory unavoidably recurred to former times with a sort of oppressive
            sadness. But poor Hareton, the most wronged, was the only one who really suffered much.
            He sat by the corpse all night, weeping in bitter earnest. He pressed its hand, and
            kissed the sarcastic, savage face that every one else shrank from contemplating; and
            bemoaned him with that strong grief which springs naturally from a generous heart,
            though it be tough as tempered steel. Mr. Kenneth was perplexed to pronounce of what
            disorder the master died. I concealed the fact of his having swallowed nothing for four
            days, fearing it might lead to trouble, and then, I am persuaded, he did not abstain on
            purpose: it was the consequence of his strange illness, not the cause. We buried him, to
            the scandal of the whole neighbourhood, as he wished. Earnshaw and I, the sexton, and
            six men to carry the coffin, comprehended the whole attendance. The six men departed
            when they had let it down into the grave: we stayed to see it covered. Hareton, with a
            streaming face, dug green sods, and laid them over the brown mould himself: at present
            it is as smooth and verdant as its companion mounds—and I hope its tenant sleeps as
            soundly. But the country folks, if you ask them, would swear on the Bible that he walks:
            there are those who speak to having met him near the church, and on the moor, and even
            within this house. Idle tales, you’ll say, and so say I. Yet that old man by the kitchen
            fire affirms he has seen two on ’em looking out of his chamber window on every rainy
            night since his death:—and an odd thing happened to me about a month ago. I was going to
            the Grange one evening—a dark evening, threatening thunder—and, just at the turn of the
            Heights, I encountered a little boy with a sheep and two lambs before him; he was crying
            terribly; and I supposed the lambs were skittish, and would not be guided. “What is the
            matter, my little man?” I asked.</p>
         <p>  “There’s Heathcliff and a woman yonder, under t’ nab,”
            he blubbered, “un’ I darnut pass ’em.” I saw nothing; but neither the sheep nor he would
            go on, so I bid him take the road lower down. He probably raised the phantoms from
            thinking, as he traversed the moors alone, on the nonsense he had heard his parents and
            companions repeat. Yet, still, I don’t like being out in the dark now; and I don’t like
            being left by myself in this grim house: I cannot help it; I shall be glad when they
            leave it, and shift to the Grange. “They are going to the Grange, then?” I said. “Yes,”
            answered Mrs. Dean, “as soon as they are married, and that will be on New Year’s Day.”
            “And who will live here then?” “Why, Joseph will take care of the house, and, perhaps, a
            lad to keep him company. They will live in the kitchen, and the rest will be shut up.”
            “For the use of such ghosts as choose to inhabit it?” I observed. “No, Mr. Lockwood,”
            said Nelly, shaking her head. “I believe the dead are at peace: but it is not right to
            speak of them with levity.” At that moment the garden gate swung to; the ramblers were
            returning. “They are afraid of nothing,” I grumbled, watching their approach through the
            window. “Together, they would brave Satan and all his legions.” As they stepped on to
            the door-stones, and halted to take a last look at the moon—or, more correctly, at each
            other by her light—I felt irresistibly impelled to escape them again; and, pressing a
            remembrance into the hand of Mrs. Dean, and disregarding her expostulations at my
            rudeness, I vanished through the kitchen as they opened the house-door; and so should
            have confirmed Joseph in his opinion of his fellow-servant’s gay indiscretions, had he
            not fortunately recognised me for a respectable character by the sweet ring of a
            sovereign at his feet. My walk home was lengthened by a diversion in the direction of
            the kirk. </p>
         <p>   When beneath its walls, I perceived decay had made progress, even in seven
            months: many a window showed black gaps deprived of glass; and slates jutted off, here
            and there, beyond the right line of the roof, to be gradually worked off in coming
            autumn storms. I sought, and soon discovered, the three headstones on the slope next the
            moor: the middle one grey, and half buried in heath; Edgar Linton’s only harmonized by
            the turf and moss creeping up its foot; Heathcliff’s still bare. I lingered round them,
            under that benign sky: watched the moths fluttering among the heath and harebells,
            listened to the soft wind breathing through the grass, and wondered how any one could
            ever imagine unquiet slumbers for the sleepers in that quiet earth. </p>
      </body>
   </text>
</TEI>
